Sennett 1996 Flesh and Stone
Sennett 1996 Flesh and Stone
Sennett 1996 Flesh and Stone
__ _____ :NDTRE-DAME
LANDING
HOTEL-DIEU
. JEAN
ROND
NOTRE-DAME
S E I N E
"'Om
;- :
o lOO Vd'
Hou"ng '0'
church off ici als
_
__ Walled enclosure
of the cloister
Map of parish surrounding Notre-Dame in Paris, ca. 1300.
Community 15 3
European population, behind their walls these rowns gathered in
food, cloth, and luxury goods acquired through trade.
In medieval Paris, the year 1250 saw two landmarks of this rebirth.
In that year Jehan de Chelles began the final phase of work on the
Cathedral of Notre-Dame. Beautifully sited in the center of the city
on the eastern end of an island with branches of the Seine River
flowing around and behind it, a tall mountain of exquisitely carved
stone, the Cathedral testified to the power of Christianity in this new
center of Western civilization. Yet Parisians did not mark its erection
as Romans had inaugurated Constantine's Lateran Basilica centuties
before. Although both the King of France and the Bishop of Paris
basked in the event, representing Church and State, Parisians cele-
brated Notre-Dame also as a triumph of the building trades, feting
the carvers, glass blowers, weavers, and carpenters who did the man-
ual labor, and the bankers who financed the work. A third party,
Economy, made its debut on the stage of civilization.
In 1250 the greatest illustrated Bible of the Middle Ages appeared
The garden side of Notre-Dame in Paris roday.
154
FLESH AND STONE
The Sr. Louis Bible, ca. 1250. TruJteeJ 0/ the Pierpont Morgan Library,
1987.
Community 155
in Paris, sponsored by rhe King later known as St. Louis. In its color-
ing and elaborate script, the book was as sensuous an object as the
Lateran Basilica. Here too that third parry appeared in the celebra-
tions. Thanks in large parr to the growth of trade, masses of students
had swarmed into Paris from all of Europe. "Because scholastic activ-
ity shifted from the [rural) monasteries to the cathedrals," the histo-
rian Georges Duby writes, "the principal centers of artistic creativity
moved to the heart of the city."\ The professional editing and pro-
duction of the St. Louis Bible depended on the presence of this large
and flourishing university. The St. Louis Bible, a supreme work of
art, appeared at the end of a chain of events which began in the fish
and grain markets on the banks of the Seine River.
The economic foundations of civilization received scant acknowl-
edgment in the ancient world; both trade and manual labor seemed
little more than dismal, bestial activity. The medieval city made this
beast into a human being. "The medieval citizen [was) on the way
toward becoming an economic man," in the words of the sociologist
Max Weber, whereas "the ancient citizen was a political man."2
Beyond material abundance, the forces of the economy promised
rwo distinct freedoms to those few who lived behind the city's walls.
Today the visitor can see above the city gates, in cities which
belonged to the medieval trade network called the Hanseatic
League, the motto Stadt Luft macht frei ("The air of a city makes
people free") . In Paris, as in the Hanseatic cities, the economy prom-
ised to set them free from the inherited dependence embodied in the
feudallabor COntract. More, the city promised people new individual
rights of property; John of Paris in the mid-thirteenth century
asserted that individuals "had a right to property which was not with
impunity to be interfered with by superior authority-because it was
acquired by [the individual's) own effortS."3
The medieval economy, the state, and religion did not live in a
happy mariage d troiJ-nor could the celebration of Jehan de Chelles'
Notre-Dame and the publication of the St. Louis Bible obscure the
tensions among these three great forces. The power of St. Louis
rested in large part on feudal obligations he exacted from his own
vassal , lesser lords; the Church often conflated the possession of
individual thoughts and rights with heresy. More, those possessing
economic power, particularly the urban merchants and bankers, fre-
quendy affronted the sensibility of their partners.
The year 1250 culminates the era the historian R. W. Southern
has called "scientific humanism." For more than a hundred years
156 FLESH AND STONE
medieval thinkers had sought to apply human knowledge systemati-
cally to the problems of human society. St. Thomas Aquinas said that
it was possible to make the world cohere as a logical system. The
imagery of the "body politic" conveyed this coherence, uniting biol-
ogy and politics. Yet economics could not be easily assimilated into
the scientific humanism of the time.
We recall that, in the Policraticus, John of Salisbury imagined the
merchants in his body politic to be the stomach of society. It was the
greedy organ of the body, as of the body politic. He wrote that "if
(these men of private wealth} have been stuffed thtough excessive
greed and if they hold in their contents toO obstinately, (they} give
rise to countless and incurable illnesses and, thtough their vices, can
bring about the ruin of the body as a whole."4 More than simple
greed, though, created the afftont; the fact that they had earned their
rights challenged the very concept of hierarchy which placed kings
and bishops in the head of the body politic. For John of Salisbury, in
the words of the historian Waiter Ullmann, wanted "the individual's
standing within society ... based upon his office or his official func-
tion," not upon individual capacities; in John of Salisbury's view, the
greater a person's formal position, "the more scope it had, the
weightier it was, the more rights the individual had.'"
The greedy man of affairs existed immemorially before John of
Salisbury wtote about him. But a more distinctive puzzlement per-
vades the Policraticus: this most obsessively geographical of all medi-
eval writers had trouble describing the stomach of society. Of course
merchants trade in fairs and markets, but go month after month to a
particular market, he observed, and you will not see the same faces
trading, and the goods wiH be different. Go to the quays lining the
Seine year after year and again you will see merchants and goods
vanishing and appearing. The stomach of the body politic seemed
continually to change its diet. John of Salisbury, not econometricaHy
adept, searched but could not find a way to explain why economic
freedom should erode durable routine.
Looking backward to the cities of the Middle Ages, Max Weber
asserted that "the medieval urban community enjoyed political
autonomy" because of the market, trade giving the city an economic
power to rule its own affairs
6
John of Salisbury, on the contrary,
thought the "commonwealth" had no secure governance in the hands
of men of wealth. John of Salisbury's conviction made sense to the
French urban historian Henri Pirenne, writing a generation after
Max Weber. Pirenne sought painstakingly to explain how trade
Community 1 5 7
between cities brought them individually back to life; medieval cities
were interdependent rather than autonomous and medieval traders
had to act flexibly. Pirenne wrote,
Under the influence of trade the old Roman cities [Oak on new life
and were repopulated. or mercantile groups formed round about the
military burgs and established themselves along the sea coasts, on river
banks, at confluences. at the junction points of the natural routes of
communication. Each of them constituted a market which exercised
an attraction, proportionate to its importance, on (he surrounding
country or made itself felt afar.
7
The Hanseatic League formed such a trading chain spreading
goods throughout Northern Europe. The Hanseatic League, begun
in 1161, was based on the sea-goods moving from Genoa and Ven-
ice in Italy, from London and the Low Countries along the way, end-
ing in northern German porrs from which they filtered inland. Paris
had its own trade chain by the twelfth century, which stretched east
and west along the Seine River, north and south from Flanders to
Marseilles. The modern historian was less cataclysmic in his views
than the medieval theologian. Medieval city dwellers had strong
attachments to their own cities, Pirenne argued, but these frequently
conflicted with their economic interests, which made them more
mobile and minded to a larger geography. Profit lay on the horizon
of the possible, in the land of perhaps, toward which one travelled
as often as one could, from which one often failed to return. Risk
and chance took economics outside the tight, logical circle of scien-
tific humanism.
The Christian religion was global in its theology, but it fostered
intensely local attachments. A believer's bonds to Paris consum-
mated the great reversal which began when early Roman Christians
made peace with Rome. As medieval towns and cities revived under
the Christian aegis, the stones of the churches and cathedrals were
the materials with which Christians expressed their life-long and pas-
sionate attachment to the places in which they lived. Just as the soar-
ing, gigantic churches put up even in small towns expressed
commitment to a place, so did the Christian's need for community.
This need for community took form through a new understanding
of the Christian body. The "alien body of Christ" modulated in the
158 FLESH AND STONE
High Middle Ages into a body whose sufferings ordinary people
could understand and with whom they could identify; the union of
human and divine suffering took form in those medieval movements
founded on the "Imitation of Christ." These movements renewed
the Christian experience of compassion for one's neighbors, based
on imagining the sufferings of others as one's own. Medieval doctors
thought they had found a medical explanation for compassion, by
observing how organs within the body responded when one of their
number was cut or removed during surgery, a response they called
"syncope." In a way, this new understanding of the body fit the larger
science of the time, for phenomena like syncope seemed to show
concretely the human organism as a connected, mutually responsive
system of organs. But the Imitation of Christ was far more than an
inrellectual movement.
As Christ's bodily suffering became more comprehensible to the
ordinary man and woman, a vast outpouring of popular religious fer-
vor took form. Georges Duby may claim toO much in asserting that,
until the time of Jehan de Chelles, "Europe had displayed the exter-
nals of Chri stendom; Christianity was truly experienced only by rare
elites. After ... it was to have every appearance of being a people's
religion."s But the great religious revival which took form in the
Imitation of Christ altered relations berween men and women in the
Church, changed the experience of confession, and the practices of
charity. These changes transformed convents and monasteries, hos-
pitals and almshouses, parish churches and cathedrals. They had a
particular meaning to Christians in the city.
In ordinary usage, "community" denotes the place in which people
care about people they know well or immediate neighbors. When
religious communities first took form in the darkest days of the Dark
Ages, they worked in this way, but the conjunction of fervent reli-
gious impulses and urban growth gave "community" in medieval
Paris a somewhat different meaning. The a1mshouses, the hospitals,
and the convents in the city opened their doors more freely to
strangers than in the countryside, taking in travellers, homeless peo-
ple, and abandoned babies, the unknown sick and the insane. The
religious community did not comprehend the whole city, but served
rather as a place of moral reference; the almshouse, the parish
church, the hospital, and the episcopal garden set standards against
which to measure behavior in other parts of the city, particularly tlie
aggressive economic competition which ruled the street markets and
the loading docks along the Seine.
Thus, though Paris had filled with large crowds of strangers, its
Community
159
Streets were rampant with gratuitous violence, its economy shuffled
human beings from town to town as well as goods, the ciry could
nonetheless be shaped into a moral geography. For those under the
sway of the new religious values, sanctuary was the point of commu-
nity-a place where compassion bonded strangers. In Jehan de Chel-
les' Paris, the sense of Christian community also rejuvenated local
parish life; both the parish church and the site of de Chelles' work
the great episcopal community clustered around Notre-Dame, w e r ~
urban sanctuaries.
Medieval economic and religious developments pushed the sense
of place in opposite directions, a dissonance which echoes down
in our own times. The economy of the city gave people a freedom
of individual action they could nor have in other places; the religion
of the city made places where people cared about each other. UStadt
Lllfl macht frei" opposed "the Imitation of Christ." This great ten-
sion between economy and religion produced the first signs of the
duality which marks the modern city: on one side, the desire to cut
free of communal bonds in the name of individual liberty; on the
other side, the desire to find a place in which people care about
each other.
Aquinas sought to reconcile these contraries, in the Summa Theo-
logica, in a master image of Christ, a Being which contains everything
that exists in the world. For his contemporaries that unity did nOt
hold-any more than today we have found a way to combine eco-
nomic individualism and communal bonds.
This chapter examines the convictions that underlay the formation
of Christian communities in medieval Paris, and the way these com-
munities functioned. The next chapter analyzes the economic spaces
in the city which challenged the Christian sense of place. One conse-
quence of this conflict appeared in a dark episode in the history of
VenIce, the greatest international trading city of the Renaissance'
Christian culture sought to reconcile the money of individuals and
the morals of community by repression of those who did not fit the
master image of the Christian. Venetian culture used repression as a
tool to salve its own inner conflicts by imprisoning its Jews in
ghettos.
2. THE COMPASSIONATE BODY
Framing the front doors of Notre-Dame, the visitor sees today sculp-
tures of human beings constructed at a little more than human scale;
160
FLESH AND STONE
View of the west doot, Notre-Dame, Paris, built 1250. FolO MarburglArl
Resource, N. Y.
Community 1 61
though they seem somewhat dwatfed by the immense size of the
cathedral building, their size is an act of faith. Beginning in the elev-
enth century, church builders sought to carve figures at human scale
to show, in the words of a modern art historian, the "relationship
berween human values and those values immanent in the world."9
The carved figures made a direct appeal to the viewer to see him- or
herself as part of the church, an act of inclusion which began in an
earlier age through the preaching of St. Francis of Assisi, who spoke
directly to the ordinary Christian in simple language. By the year
Jehan de Chelles began to complete Notre-Dame, such a union of
flesh and stone had grown ever stronger as Christians began to con-
nect their own bodily suffering to the suffering of Jesus.
Christ "was, as it were, roasted and slowly baked to save us, " Jean
Barthelemy wrote consolingly in Le Livre de Crainte Amoureuse.!O
Such an earthy, homey image made the Crucifixion a comprehensi-
ble experience in terms of daily life. Rather than Christ the King,
people identified with "the suffering Christ, the Christ of the Pas-
sion. The Crucifixion was increasingly portrayed, and increasingly
realistic."!! This movement of passionate identification with Christ's
bodily suffering was known as the "Imitation of Christ," just because
Christ's sorrows seemed imitated by the human body's sufferings.
This was no casual figure of speech. The image of imitation stood
directly opposed to Origen's conviction that Christ's body is alien to
our own. St. Francis of Assisi told his parishioners that if they
thought about their everyday experience, their own sensations, the
world around them, they would realize what God is. Theologically,
St. Francis recovered Nature for Christianity: God is in the world,
God is Flesh as well as Light.
By caring about the sufferings of other people, we imitate our
religious feelings about Jesus on the Cross: St. Francis reaffirmed
that identification with the poor and outcast which marked the earli-
est Christianity. Sociologically, he exploded a bomb. He taught that
in our bodies we contain the ethical yardstick for judging rules,
rights, and privileges in society: the more these cause pain, the more
our bodies know they are unjust. If the Imitation of Christ recovered
the flesh for religion, it thus made the flesh the judge of social hierat-
chy. More, this religious view contrasted the bonds among those
who care about one another to societal structures like commercial
dealings where love for others may be entirely absent.
To be sure, the Middle Ages practiced tortures and other bodily
cruelties with an abandon that would have done credit to the Romans
162
FLESH AND STONE
who slaughtered Christians in the Colosseum. But this new ethos of
compassion introduced at least rudimentary ideas of respecting the
pain of others during torture. The public torture in Paris of persons
afflicted by devils, for instance, was nOt quite the casual affair from
about 1250 onward that it had earlier been; the torturers sought
ecclesiastical assurances that they were causing pain to the devils
inside, nOt to the person in whose body they lodged.
By its very nature, the Imitation of Christ affirmed the life of the
masses against the privileges of the elite. But it drew support, and
indeed was articulated, by certain elements of medieval science
because it accorded with what educated men and women believed
about their own bodies.
Galen's Ars medica
"The medical and scientific assumptions of the ancient world," the
medical historian Vern Bullough argues, "were incorporated into
medieval thinking with but little challenge."12 Ancient ideas of body
heat, sperm, menstrual blood, and the architecture of the body did
indeed pass into the medieval world with the authority of received
wisdom-yet these beliefs were modified, often unwittingly, by the
needs of a Christian society that received them a thousand years
later.
One of the principal means by which ancient medicine passed into
the medieval era was the publication of the Roman physician Galen's
AYS medica, an edition that first appeared in Salerno before 1200, was
later re translated in Cremona, and by 1280 was taught in Paris as in
other European centers of learning. Galen was born in Hadrian's era,
probably in A.D. 130, and died sometime around 200. His own medi-
cal education derived from the ideas of Aristotle and Hippocrates,
and his medical writings attracted Christian attention because he had
shown himself friendly to Christians, though not a believer, and
because he was reputed in the High Middle Ages never to have
charged his patients for his services.
Galen had originally written in Greek. The edition of the Ars med-
ica which medieval people read was translated from Arabic into
Latin, since the early Islamic world had preserved many a n c i e n ~ texts
and Islamic medicine had enriched the European knowledge It had
received. The great Islamic doctor Ali ibn Ridwan added commelT-
taries to the Ars medica, as did various European translators who
worked on the manuscript. The Ars medica thus reads more as a com-
Community 163
pendium of received ideas than as the work of one man.
In this text Galen defines medicine as "knowledge of what is
healthy, morbid, and neutral," a knowledge which depends on
understanding how body heats and fluids interact in the principal
organs of the body, the brain, heart, liver, and testes (the female
genitalia, we recall, were treated by the ancients as reversed tes-
tes).1 3 Body heat, Galen thought, ascended gradually along a sliding
scale; body fluids, however, were of four types or "humors," blood,
phlegm, yellow bile, and black bile. The combination of heat and
fluid produced in turn four different psychological states in the body.
Galen, following Hippocrates, called them the four "temperaments":
sanguine, phlegmatic, choleric, and melancholic. Unlike a modern
psychologist, Galen argued that a person's temperament depended
on how hot or cold, dry or juicy, his or her body was at a given
moment, and which juices were flowing hot and full, which trickled
through the body cold.
In Galen's view, ethical behavior such as aggression or compassion
derived from the temperaments created by the heat and fluids in
the body. Here, for instance, is how Galen describes the choleric
temperament of someone whose heart is warm and dry:
The pulse is hard, big, rapid, and frequent, and breathing is deep,
rapid, and frequent ... . Of all people, these have the hairiest chest ...
they are ready for anion, courageous, quick, wild, savage, rash, and
impudent. They have a tyrannical character, for they are quick-tem-
pered and hard to appease. 14
We may balk at correlating a hairy chest to a tyrannical character,
but this totalizing was the very essence of Galenism, and formed
part of its appeal to medieval readers under the sway of scientific
humanism. It tied the body to the soul.
Galen's Islamic preserver and commentator Ali ibn Ridwan had
linked the four temperaments to four social types: the choleric tem-
perament described above characterizes the soldier; the sanguine
temperament marks the statesman; the phlegmatic temperament is
typical of the scientist; and the melancholic temperament pervades a
man or woman full of religious feeling. 15 The merchant was missing
in this typology, and indeed from Western commentary on the Ars
medica-a significant absence; the aggressive behavior necessary for
economic success could be slotted neither under the heroic exploits
of a soldier nor the equable impulses to rule of a statesman. The
164 FLESH AND STONE
person sorrowing for others is in a melancholic state; compassion
makes the black bile in particular run hot in the heart; this was the
physiology of a body experiencing the Imitation of Christ.
Health appeared to Galen as a well-tempered body, that is, a body
whose heats and humors were in equilibrium in the four major
organs. Was religious compassion therefore a state of ill health, even
a bodily disease? We might reason so, but Galen's medieval readers
approached the question another way. They observed the operations
of compassionate melancholy at work when human bodies fell under
the surgeon's knife.
Henri de Mondeville'J diJcovery of Jyncope
A surgeon working in fourteenth-century Paris, Henri de Monde-
ville, thought he had discovered through surgical experiment the
mechanics of compassion within the human body, that is, the way
the body distributes heat and fluid during times of crisis. De Monde-
ville began to publish his medical opinions in 131416 These bear the
imprint of Galen, yet de Mondeville organized the body's architec-
ture in a distinctive way. " De Mondeville divided the body into two
general regions, the noble region of head and heart and the produc-
tive region of rhe stOmach; each region has its own physiological
"oven. " Illnesses occur when rhese two zones heat at different tem-
peratures, unbalancing the body's fluid humors.
De Mondeville nored that during and after the performance of
an operation, one organ of the body tended to compensate for the
weakness of another; as a result of surgery, he wrote, "the other
members pity [the wounded member' s) sufferings, and to succour
it send all their spirits and warmth. " Another doctor, Barthelmey
I' Anglais, also explained this compassionate mechanism in terms of
the flow of heated blood tOward the wounded organ: "There is such
a great love among the [members of the body) that one takes pity
on the other, that is to say the one which suffers less takes pity on
the one which suffers more; hence when a member is injured, the
blood of the other [members) immediately comes to succour it."I S
De Mondeville called this compassionate reaction "syncope." (In
modern medicine, it has taken on quite another meaning. )
De Mondeville sought further to describe the syncopes of people
who witness a surgical operation (done at the time without anesthesia
and with scalpels as blunt as modern bread knives), in order to show
Community
. -.
:
I
,
"
t
16 5
. ......
.;?:: ,
. ):;,- .. ..
. no .
hj.- - '
...
.\ ."
, .. " . ' .
.. ..... ..
Jot.l . o, f .
... .." .. ,.
..c-.. . . "....-.
ft. l' ....... _1
I : . ' r ./:. ,,',
"' t' .. ,., "
..
' ,." 1'
, . cJ,
.. ,... .
.... : .
"1' t ,
.. :-.. . .. ..1
.. \. ' .. : ' . '"
,...,' \ .
..... . ,_. ' .'0
" "0' '' '
,,. ;
, ' I .
&" 1" '"
0' .. ol, " ' , .... , .
'. ,. .... ..
. . ...... . , ...... ,
....\ .. I . C
p", . '0" " ,
.... ,. ' ,:. ...
"" ..
'!.""
:.-,: -,:.r,:
'.' ., .. ,
.......
.... " ...
' " I - .....
.... ,. ",'
I . .- ,
'f ., ,- .
!: fo .. ' ...
. , . .... I
"' --...-,
......... . ...-
" -.- ' r . , "J--::;-.r...
_ ..
The dual body. Illustration from Art de la mMecine et de fa chirJlrgie, edition
of 1412.
166 FLESH AND STONE
that the response to suffering which occurs within the body occurs
berween bodies as well. He wrote:
Syncope occurs in the following way in healthy men wicnessing terri-
ble surgical operations: the fear they feel pains their heart; there is a
sort of meeting of the general chapter of the spirits, so that, they being
gathered IOgether and stimulated, the vital force of the heart is suc-
coured.
19
De Mondeville carefully used, and underlined, the word "chapter"
to describe people gathered together to watch an operation. A chap-
ter was a religious body, and also referred to members of a guild. To
him, the origins of community could thus be explained by the physi-
cal responses people have to another's suffering during surgery. The
author of the thirteenth-century Menag;" de Paris had similarly
declared that a person feels "the same friendship towards your neigh-
bor who is a member [using the same French word for a bodily
'member'] of you, for we are all members of God, who is the
body."2o Surgery revealed the physical reality of Christ's Passion and
Crucifixion, teaching the lesson of moral arousal thtough suffering.
If "medieval piety had always sought to fortify the inclinations of
the soul by the adhesion of the body," yet the discovery of syncope
suggested social relations as well, a melancholic social scene.
21
In the
Policraticus, John of Salisbury argued that "The soveteign [potestas],
when he cannOt with benevolent hand save the lives of his subjects
... by a virtuous cruelty, attacks the evil until the safety of the good
is assured."22 If people rebel against their place in the hierarchy, a
ruler knows what to do: expel Ot kill the unruly, just as a surgeon
curs out diseased organs. Christian compassion played little role in
the Policrat;cus. De Mondeville thought it overkill to follow John of
Salisbury'S advice. In surgery, organs come to the aid of the body's
diseased parts, helping it recover. So, in society, crises have their
positive side; it is during social crises that people respond most viv-
idly to each other.
The century separating John of Salisbury and Henri de Mondeville
may have made for the difference in their view. John of Salisbury
lived in a Europe just beginning to make itself secure; his grandpar-
ents knew a time when small villages easily fell prey to marauders
and internal anatchy. The walled city seemed to guarantee physical
safety; within the walls medical knowledge, codified in an hierarchi-
cal image of the body, revealed the principles of social order. De
Community 167
John of Salisbury's "body politic," showing social hierarchy. Manuscript
illustration, chineench century.
168 FLESH AND STONE
Mondeville lived in a more secure time, and imagined the meaning
of walls, for instance, in a different way. In syncope, the organs seek
to send their own fluids and heat across zones, crossing the tissue
walls of the body. In a socijll crisis, the walls berween people are
breached, leading them to perform unusual acts of generosity.
Like John of Salisbury, Henri de Mondeville thought there was a
direct analogy berween the structure of the body and the structure
of the city, yet his image of the body showed him a different city,
a city of continually unequal heats and stresses.
23
For instance, de
Mondeville's colleagues likened to a knife wound the appearance in
a city of foreign exiles driven from their own homes; these doctors
imagined a more humane outcome than the other organs in the body
politic recoiling. The natural impulse would be to extend mercy to
the exiles. There is, they maintained, a medical foundation for the
impulse to aid others during a crisis; as we would say in modern
jargon, there is a biological foundation for altruism.
Between John of Salisbury and Henri de Mondeville there lay a
great divide in imagery of the body politic. One asked: Where do
you belong? The other asked: How will you respond to others? One
envisioned the city as a space which ranks bodies living together; the
other envisioned the city as a space which connects bodies living
together.
The medicine allied to the Imitation of Christ would challenge cer-
tain social barriers in the ordinary dealing of Christians in a city,
most notably the great human boundary conceived by ancient medi-
cine and carried into the medieval world, the boundary of gender.
Medieval women, even those as forceful as Heloise of Paris, the
abbess of the powerful Convent of the Paraclete, seemed to accept
without question their supposed biological weakness in relation to
men. In John of Salisbury'S concept of the body politic, its heart was
a place in the body politic filled by men, by state counselors. Yet,
as the historian Caroline Bynum has shown, those inspired by the
Imitation of Christ began to think of the heart, its blood, and its
placement under the breasts as an androgynous, if not female, zone
of the body, linked to the powers of the Virgin Mary2 4 Jesus also
appeared to cross the lines of gender, many medieval clerics and
thinkers conceiving of him as a mother
25
St. Anselm asked, "But
you, Jesus, good lord, are you not also a mother? Are you not that
Community
169
mother who, like a hen, collects her chickens under her wings'
Truly, master, you are a mother."26
The blurring of Christ's gender, like the celebration of Mary's
powers in the body and the growth of Marian cults, all put an empha-
sis on nurturing, that is, on compassion expressed through maternal
images. Bernard of Clairvaux in particular sharpened this compas-
sionate, maternal imagery of Christ; ''To Bernard, the maternal
image [appears] ... nOt as giving birth or even as conceiving or shel-
tering in a womb, but as nurturing, particularly suckling."27 The dig-
nity now accorded women's bodies helped women acquire a stronger
voice in religious affairs in the rwelfth century, evinced in the flow-
ering of many convents like the Paraclete with educated leaders and
serious spiritual purposes.
Yet the impulse to nurture did not neatly accord with the melan-
cholic temperament of the body. Melancholy, as the historian Ray-
mond K1ibansky observes, was the most inward-turning of the four
temperaments. Under its sway a person tried to fathom a soul-secret
which seemed contained within, rather than mull over a problem
in the world as did the more scientific, phlegmatic temperament. 28
Melancholy provoked meditation on the evils that caused people to
suffer and on the secrets of God's grace. The traditional spaces of
melancholy were thus enclosures, cells and walled gardens.
Modern medicine often confuses melancholy with clinical depres-
sion. The comportment of the medieval melancholic little resembled
the heavy movements, sluggish response to others, and pained dull-
ness of the clinically depressed. The way a melancholic could more
actively show compassion and nurturance appeared in the medieval
orchestration of death. In front of the Cathedral Church of Notre-
Dame, Parisians saw in the Passion plays the death of Jesus depicted
with stark realism, the actor playing Jesus often flagellated until he
bled. This intensely physical scene served to draw them close to
Jesus' suffering as a fellow human being. Within the Cathedral the
new, popular piety on Easter sought to eliminate "all forms of enclo-
sure . . . all partitions. Everyone everywhere had to be able to hear
the sermon, to see the body of Christ being raised."29 This same
open and vivid experience of bearing witness to another's suffering
orchestrated the last moments before an ordinary human died. In
Perikles' Athens, as we have seen, "the Ancients feared being near
the dead and kept them at a distance."3o In the Middle Ages the
death chamber had become the space of "a public ceremony ... . It
170 FLESH AND STONE
was essential that parents, friends, and neighbors be present," the
historian Philippe Aries writes.
31
Deathbed scenes show crowds of
people chatting, drinking and eating as well as praying; they kept the
dying company.
How was the person supported in this way to respond ? The dying,
Aries observes, were meant to depart "in a ceremonial manner . ..
but with no theatrics, with no great show of emotion."3' In a study
of gestures of despair in the visual arts, Moshe Barasch observes that
"the artists of the late Middle Ages expressed the grief of the Virgin
Mary holding the dead Christ on her lap in a variety of ways, but
they usually renounced frantic gesticulation as a means of conveying
her sorrow."33 Through this restraint in gesture, the body expressed
a dignified melancholy. The proper way to die was to say a word, if
possible, to each person in the room, or make a movement of the
hand or eyes to recognize them, but to go no further . In life, as in
art, the moment of death is to be a moment of meditation rather
than depression.
To serve the Christian duality of compassion and inwardness in
the city, among the living, required more than such bodily comport-
ment. The ideal of nurturing spaces first appeared in the writings of
Pierre Abelard, the rwelfth-century Parisian philosopher. He
asserted that "cities are ' convents' for married people . ... Cities are
... bound together by charity. Every city is a fraternity."34 It
required new conceptions and uses of convents, monasteries, and
sacred gardens-the traditional spaces of melancholy.
3. THE CHRISTIAN COMMUNITY
At this point, we might look at how medieval Paris was divided
between Church and State. There was anything but a neat geographic
division, because state and religion were deeply interrwined. When
a king was crowned in a cathedral , "the coronation rite transformed
him sacramentally into a Christus Domini, that is, not only into a
person of episcopal rank, but into an image of Christ himself," Otto
von Simson writes.
35
The medieval King, as a Christus Domini,
echoed the Roman emperor's image as a living god. Similarly, the
Bishop of Paris stood on the same level "as that of counts, dukes,
and of the king," in the words of another historian; "he was served
by the same high and petty officers. He had his seneschal or steward,
his cupbearer, his marshal, his chamberlain or treasurer, his equerry,
,
Commtmity 1 7 1
his master of the pantry, secretaries, chaplains .... "36 The eleventh
century saw the bishop loosen his feudal bond to the King; the
bishop took an oath of loyalty but no longer an oath of homage-the
sort of distinction which seemed to that age of privileges to mark an
enormous gulf.
Palace, cathedral, and abbey
For centuries Paris had been a royal city, but by the time of Jehan
de Chelles the meaning of a royal seat had changed. Before the spurt
of urban growth in the rwelfth century, the King and his circle spent
time constantly on the roads of the kingdom, staying at the castles of
principal nobles. By making such "progresses," the King put the
stamp of personal dominion on his lands; the physical presence of
the King helped define what the kingdom was. As his cities revived,
the French King travelled somewhat less. His palace on the lie de la
Cite became imbued with the symbolism of his office; kingship
became a construction in stone as well as a set of geographical pos-
sessions, again like a Roman emperor.
Philip 1I, known as Philip Augustus (1165-1223), lived in a palace
on the lie de la Cite hard by the religious complex of buildings sur-
rounding the Cathedral of Notre-Dame, at the eastern end of the
lie. The great nobles of his court built palaces for themselves to the
south of the lie, on the Left Bank of Paris, on lands owned by
abbeys. Charles V later removed the space of kingship from this con-
finement . He built the first of the palaces of the Louvre, just beyond
the protection of Phi lip Augustus' wall. This first Louvre was a great
square tower, its center a donjon, an immense open ceremonial hall,
with arms and prisoners kept beneath its /loor, and the offices of the
court on rooms around the sides. The Louvre of Charles V was one
of the first buildings in which military protection became more an
architectural symbol than a matter of practical defense. The four
great turrets on the corners of the Louvre donjon were a declaration
of kingly might to the inhabitants of Paris; actual physical protection
came from new city walls beyond the grounds of the palace.
During the time of Philip Augustus the estates of the nobles
within the city echoed the country; their gardens, for instance, were
used to grow grapes, other fruits and vegetables. Now these gardens
began to be more decorative than agricultural. And whereas Philip
Augustus lived in his palace amid orphans, students, and clerics, the
new palace of the Louvre soon became crowded, around what is now
172
FLESH AND STONE
the rue de Rivoli, with palaces of the principal nobles of his court,
each with its own ceremonial halls, turrets, and gardens. From these
urban turrets, a noble might look to the outside, not to see if enemy
troops were approaching, but who his neighbor had invited to din-
ner. The court thus became a community within the city; but it was
not a community of the sort Abelard would have approved. The
buildings of the great nobles pressed ever closer to the Louvre and
to each other, forming a great honeycombed structure of intrigue.
Paris was also an episcopal city, a seat of religious wealth, power, and
culture in the city balancing the powers lodged in the palace. The
Bishop of Paris rivalled the King in urban possessions; he owned the
entire lie St.-Louis, the land around his own Cathedral of Notre-
Dame, and land elsewhere in the city. When Maurice de Sully began
to build the Cathedral of Notre-Dame in 1160, the "Cathedral"
included not just the great church building, bur a religious cluster of
buildings where monks lived, a hospital, storehouses, and extensive
gardens. Boats came to the private landings of the Cathedral com-
plex to supply the physical needs of the members of the chapters and
Cathedral, boats often sent from Saint-Germain and other abbeys
which had their own gardens and storehouses. The Left Bank of the
city remained in 1200 more agricultural than the Right Bank, an
extensive vineyard surrounding Saint-Germain.
By 1250, when Jehan de Chelles launched the final phase of con-
structing Notre-Dame, this religious enclave within the city con-
tained conflicting interests. "The episcopal community was not quite
rationally divided," the historian Allan Temko writes with admirable
restraint "within and without the Cathedral, the territory of the
Church 'was marked by curious feudal boundaries. "37 The bishop
controlled the chapel sanctuaries and some aisles within the church,
while the chapter of canons, nominally the subjects of the bishop,
controlled the rest of the building. "The chapter's jurisdiction wan-
dered south of the Cathedral, through the Bishop's gate to the
entrance of his palace," while "the Bishop's traveled north, following
certain streets to little isles of authority within the c1oister."38 Con-
trol of these spaces in Notre-Dame defined particular groups' power
within the Church hierarchy. Moreover, the seductions of city life
pressed in on the forty houses of the chapter clustered around
Notre-Dame; King, Pope, and Bishop sought, usually in vain, to
tame the roughhousing and whoring of many of the canons. Again,
it was not quite what Abelard had in mind.
Community 1 73
An abbey had both a precise meaning, as a place controlled by
specific Church functionaries-abbots and abbesses-and also a
looser meaning, to include a complex of buildings which created a
"church home." An abbey might incorporate monastic or convent
living quarters, a hospital, almshouse, and garden as well as a church.
One of the earliest and best known today is the abbey-monastery of
St. Gall in Switzerland, since detailed plans for it have survived. In
Carolingian times there were few large seignorial castles, so it fell to
the abbeys to provide for the general public during wars or famines
as well as for the members of their own orders. Yet these early reli-
gious settlements, too, would not have suited Abelard's image of the
community a city should become, for they were hardly places of free
and generous charity. The keepers of the gates rigorously screened
who was to be admitted; the alms house served only the local poor in
a parish, those eligible being entered in an official poor list called
the matricula.
In Paris, the Dominicans and Franciscans settled near the city's
Left Bank walls early in the thirteenth century. The space behind
these walls was the least populated on the Left Bank, so that these
orders had least contact with urban problems. The Servites had
more, because they made a church home on the Right Bank near the
central market. The mendicant orders were the most urbanized of all
religious orders, relative latecomers on the scene who nevertheless
actively sought to aid the sick on the streets and to root out heresy.
The Benedictines controlled the Abbey of Saint-Germain-des-Pres,
a large religious "home" as well as vineyard. New orders, like the
Knights of the Temple, which participated in the Crusades, sent an
army of pilgrims back and forth across Europe in need of local aid.
As trade revived in Paris, travellers from place to place sought tem-
porary shelter and food in the church homes, first in the Cathedral
complex and Saint-Germain-des-Pres, then in the Servite quarters,
later in the homes of the mendicant orders.
The most important religious place was the parish. "If the cathe-
dral was the pride of the bourgeois [the urban dwellers]," the urban-
ist Howard Saalman writes, "his birth, life, and death-his very
identity-were inextricably bound up in [the parish)."39 All legal
documents depended on parish records; markets formed around par-
ish churches; the parish was the first source of help for people in
need. Yet as Paris swelled with people, the parishes could no longer
cope with these local needs, and the canons of larger religious insti-
tutions took charge of many of the charitable functions previously
performed by parish church wardens. Hospitals for the poor and
1 74
FLESH AND STONE
their alms houses expanded; many of the new hospitals in the city
were founded by higher Church authorities, "at the instigation of
bishops. Built near the bishop's or canons' residence, the descen-
dants of these institutions are still found today near the old cathe-
drals: for example, the modern religious hospitals of Paris .... "40 By
1328, there were about sixty hospitals in the city, concentrated m
the center on the lie de la Cite and the RIght Bank; the largest was
near Notre-Dame, the hospital of the H6tel-Dieu. The central
Church authorities also increased the houses which gave out alms,
the almonries, spreading these widely throughout the city. . .
Yet as the scale of these activities increased, becommg Cltywlde
rather than local the sense of what the Church did became more
personal rather bureaucratically cold, thanks to the religious
revival. To see how this occurred, let us look at the work of the
confessor, the almoner, and the gardener in Jehan de Chelles' Paris.
C on/eH or, almoner, and gardener
In the early Middle Ages, confession was a relatively passionless
affair. The confessee gave a circumstantial account of hIS or her
actions the confessor prescribed a penance or directed his charge to
change' behavior. During the twelfth century, confession became a
much more personal, emotionally charged exchange between twO
individuals due to the tide of religious renewal. The space of the
remained physically what it had been earlier, a closed
box divided by a screen so that priest and parishioner could not see
each other. In the confessional space, nOW "the friars came forward
with a new approach to confession and penance"; in place of the
older practice of simply issuing orders according to an abstract calen-
dar of sins, priests "willingly entered into negonanon wIth the con-
fessee to determine, through a series of questions and responses, the
relative seriousness of the fault and hence the appropriate harshness
of the penance.''''' By exchanging questions and confidences, confes-
sion drew priest and parishioner into a more personal relanonshlp.
The priest, for his part, could no longer simply speak a formal
language of duties and obligations; he had to listen harder to the
parishioner to make sense of what he heard. ConfesslO
n
became a
narrative, a story neither the teller nor the Itstener at first under-
stood. The priest was expected to express feelings of compassIon
toward his parishioner's sins at the moment when the story began to
make sense. The act of confession was a melancholIc occaSIon, In
Community 1 75
the medieval sense of melancholia: it required openness between
confessor and confessee, and it required inwardness, as the one who
confessed sought to make sense of his or her sins. Since the parishio-
ner sought not merely to follow an abstract formula in speaking of
his or her own sins, but to interpret his own case with the aid of the
priest, these melancholic exchanges empowered the parishioner. He
or she was seen as capable of participating actively in the faith.
The Imitation of Christ pervaded Catholic practice, in rural con-
vents as much as urban cathedrals. The idea of an urban Middle Ages
in northern Europe can be misleading, for the sheer numbers of peo-
ple living in cities at the time was very small; within what we now
call France, the population of Paris formed about 1 percent of the
whole. Bur there was an urban dimension to the practice of confes-
sion in the new way. The condition of confession is strict anonymity.
In a small village, however, the priest would likely recognize the
confessee's voice, know the situations to which the confessee re-
ferred, and make judgments and suggestions based on that external
knowledge. In a city, the fiction of the confession would become a so-
cial face. The actual words spoken in the urban confessional mattered
more than in a small town or parish. The confessor had to attend
to them as significant, a stranger's story he could not manage simply
by formula. InJehan de Chelles' Paris, this would have been particular-
ly so in the confessional booths of Notre-Dame and Saint-Germain-
des-Pres, since these two churches drew communicants from be-
yond their local parishes. For the mendicant orders, who ministered
to the poor and sick not otherwise assisted, the importance of lis-
tening seriously to strangers was even greater, since the "parishion-
ers" had no parish. The religious revival disposed the cleric to listen;
the city obliged him to do so when confronted with the unknown.
The almoner's tale resembled the confessor's. Although Christianity
emphasized identification with the poor, early medieval charity was
nOt based on feeling compassion for them. In doing the work of
charity, the almoner obeyed a higher power; he was obliged to per-
form acts of charity no matter what his own inclinations. The twelfth-
century Parisian scholar Humbert de Romans evoked this traditional
view of charity in a sermon he delivered to those who ran a charity
hospital for the poor: charity is an act in "service of the Creator," in
which the Christian's own emotions do not enter into discharging his
obligations
42
No more did compassion need to motivate those who
1 76 FLESH AND STONE
donated wealth to the earl y monasteries for the care of the poor and
the sick. These gifts brought honor to the benefactors; moreover,
the benefactors sought the goodwill of monks, for "the best available
means of assuring eternal salvation was to have the monks intercede
for the living and to [bury and) commemorate the dead."43
The religious revival altered both the spirit and the practice of
urban charity. The Franciscans and the Dominicans urged engage-
ment in the world, not spiritual isolation. By serving others, the
Christian purified his or her own soul. The Imitation of Christ
strengthened this engagement. In medieval Paris, one historian
argues, chariry administered in a spirit of compassion for those who
suffered "included an ethical justification for urban society itself as
well as for the characteristic activities of its more influential mem-
bers.'>44 To be sure, the city concentrated people in need, but a more
specific change marked this justification. The Servite community
near the central market on the Right Bank began to make extensive
use of lay members as almoners in the mid-1200s. The fact that lay
persons now frequently engaged in giving alms, formerly a privilege
of clergy (and a significant source of graft), meant that the urban
citizen now played a significant role in the power structure of the
Church.
The medieval urban almoner worked quite differently from a
modern welfare bureaucrat, who deals with human needs as just so
many forms to be filled out. As charitable institutions spread
throughout the city, and drew upon the Servite example, the almo-
ner frequently took to the streets, acting on priests' reports or popu-
lar rumor; like the mendicant friars, the lay almoner sought to round
up lepers, to discover where the dying had been abandoned, or to
bring the sick into hospital. Work on the streets required an active
engagement in the lives of people beyond parish boundaries, and
was unlike the passive local charity of earlier eras, regulated by entry
or refusal of entry at the church's gates. The advent of lay almoners
and then mendicants on the streets in turn encouraged ordinary peo-
ple in need to come to churches, churches they felt to be responsive
beyond the letter of duty.
This charitable bonding altered somewhat the physical forms of
Notre-Dame's immediate surroundings. The cloister walls Jehan de
Chelles made surrounding the great Cathedral garden on the south
side of Notre-Dame were low-one estimate puts them at only three
feet high. Because the cloister walls were low, and also ungated, any-
Commllnity 177
Christian charity in [he city. Good Deeds, miniature, ca. l500.
178
FLESH AND STONE
11 11
11 11
An urban garden.
Pierre de Crescens, Le Livre des proufftlz champeslres, fifteenth centuty.
one could enter easily. Prompted by the greater responsiveness of
the Church to the people, the garden filled with abandoned babies,
homeless people, lepers, and the dying; they spent the day waiting
for the monks to come out among them and the night sleeping on
straw pallets strewn on the ground. Yet the gardens of cloisters were
also meant to encourage people to consider the state of their souls.
The cloister gardens of Notre-Dame exemplified melancholy in
space, open, filled with suffering, and also contemplative.
Community 1 79
A long tradition had established, by 1250, how to plant a garden to
arouse the impulses of melancholic contemplation. Unfortunately,
almost all information about the specific plantings in the medieval
garden of Notre-Dame is lost, but we know at least the rules which
Jehan de Chelles' gardeners possessed to set about this task.
Urban French castles with ornamented gardens began to appear in
the late ninth century. In Paris, traces of large ornamented gardens
outside monasteries, attached to secular houses or standing alone,
appeared In the tenth century, on the !le de la Cite on its southern
side. Originally, urban gardens produced herbs, fruits, and vegeta-
bles for the city. By the 1250s, it was more profitable to build than
tofarm in the city and, correspondingly, it was cheaper to buy food
shIpped to Paris. The working gardens surrounding Notre-Dame in
1160 had shrunk by 1250.
Parisians used the gardens of Notre-Dame instead as a place to
relieve the sheer pressure of population in the city's houses "nd
streets. Within the house, as on the street, people lived packed
tightly together. The rooms of urban houses functioned like stree's
people coming and going at will at all hours, "crowded togeth,,;
cheek by jowl, living in promiscuity, sometimes in the midst of ,1
mob. In feudal residences there was no room for individual soli-
tude."45 The medieval Parisian did not know the notion of a private
room reserved for an individual. The gardens of Notre-Dame also
were crowded with people, but gardening practice meant that here
one could find calm and tranquility, if not solitude.
Three elements of garden design were thought in the medieval
era to create a place that encouraged introspection: the bower, the
labyrinth, and the garden pool. A bower was simply a place to sit
sheltered from the sun. Ancient gardeners made bowers by con-
structing wooden roofs or bare trellises over benches. The medieval
gardener began to grow plants, most often roses and honeysuckle,
on the trellises to create a thick enclosure of leaves and flowers
within which a person could sit, hidden from others.
Medieval gardeners adapted the labyrinth-another ancient
form-to their own quest for respite. The Greeks made labyrinths
by using low bushes; they set lavender, myrtle, and santolina in a
circle with a well-defined center and many, if confusing, lines out to
the circumference. A stroller could simply step over the bushes if he
or she couldn't find the right path out, whereas in the medievallaby-
rinth "there were paths between hedges taller than a man, so that
Bird's-eye view of the monastery at St. Gall, based on the Master Plan of
816 and 817. Modern rendering by Karl Gruber. Horn and Born, from The
Plan of SI. Gall (University of California Press). All rights reserved.
anyone wandering about and taking a wrong turn could not see over
and set himself right."46 The plants used for such a maze were mostly
box, or box mixed with yew, as in a famous medieval maze of box
planted in the garden of the Hotel des Tournelles in Paris. Fragmen-
tary evidence suggests Jehan de Chelles planted a tall labyrinth in
the cloister garden of Notre-Dame shaped, for reasons now not
understood, like the Jewish Star of David. In the early Middle Ages,
labyrinths symbolized the soul's struggle to find God at the soul's
own center; in the city, the labyrinth served a more secular purpose.
Once a person had worked out the pattern of the maze, he or she
could retreat to its center without fear of being found easily by
others.
The garden pool served as a mirror of the person looking into it,
a reflective surface. Wells could be found on every Parisian street;
to protect them from the urine, faeces, and garbage running in the
streets, builders raised the well walls several feet high. In the time
of Jehan de Chelles, ornamental fountains graced a few street wells,
but not many. The relative protection of the cloister gardens meant
Community 1 81
a builder could lower the well walls; moreover, the maker of a pool
in a cloister thought twice about putting a fountain in it, for the
stream of water would disturb the pool's surface. The cloister pool
was meant to be a liquid mirror one stood over, a mirror in which to
contemplate oneself.
The plants a garden contained also were used to create a sense of
tranquility. The sacristan set cut roses within the church to indicate
the shrines near which people must be silent, and placed lilac bows
beneath statues of the Virgin during time of plague, their scent
seeming a tranquilizer. On the streets of Paris, people carried little
bunches of herbs which they frequently pressed to their noses to
ward off noxious smells; these same herbs in the cloister took on
both an introspective and a medicinal value. At Christmas, smelling
dried myrrh was thought to arouse memories of one's own, as well
as Christ's birth. During Lent, the sacristan made incense from dried
bergamot; the smell was thought to calm the anger that marked this
time of year.
We can only guess what a person thought, sitting in a rose bower
outside Notre-Dame, when suddenly aware of a leper whose body
was covered in running sores. Not sheer surprise, for now the tradi-
The Hotel de Cluny in Paris, built between 1485 and 1498. It consum-
mates military architecture as urban ornament.
182 FLESH AND STONE
The garden as earthly paradise from which the world and its dangers are
excluded. Anonymous artist, The Cloister Garden, 1519. All rights reserved.
The Metropolitan Museum of Art, Harris Brisbane Dick Fund, 1925.
Community 183
tional space of melancholy had opened to the city: if the hopes of
Henri de Mondeville were realized, the jolt might have induced an
altruistic response. We can be more certain what the gardener felt
about the lab or of creating this place. It was labor which diverged
in its very digniry from the effort required of people who engaged
in trade.
Christian tabor
The dream of finding sanctuary IS age-old; In the Eclogues, the
Roman poet Virgil wrote,
For them, far from the strife of arms, the earth, ever juSt, pours an
easy living on the land of its own accord . ... By their own will the
trees and the fields bear produce, and he picks it. His peace is secure
and his living cannot fai1.
47
Early Christian ascetics, particularly in the East, had sought spiritual
sanctuary by living as hermits. Later Western European ideas of sanc-
tuary on the contrary were "coenobitic," commanding people to live
together in a monastery. St. Benedict, who gave sanctuary this com-
munal, place-bound form, also decreed how monks should live
together: "laborare et orare," work and pray. That labor focused on
the garden
48
Christian labor had always been tied to providing a refuge from a
sinful world. By the time monasteries began to flourish in the French
countryside, in the late ninth century and the tenth, the provisioning
of sanctuary occurred in twO locations in the religious house. One
was in small chapels along the sides of a church; the other was in
the cloisters attached to church buildings. Chapel sanctuaries were
oriented to the veneration of a saint. Cloister sanctuaries were tied
symbolically and practically to the veneration of Nature, specifically
to creating and maintaining the garden contained within the cloister's
walls. Christian meditation set in the cloister garden drew upon the
imagery of the Garden of Eden, which set the scene for thinking
about the human self-destructiveness that led to Adam and Eve's
expulsion from the Garden. For the monks who first dwelt in rural
sanctuaries, tending a garden was meant to be a restorative act, a
Christian's restitution of Adam and Eve's exile. Nicolas of Clairvaux
"divided all creation into five regions: the world, purgatory, hell,
heaven, and the paradisus claustralis."49 The last of the five, the clois-
184 FLESH AND STONE
ter garden, aimed to be a paradise regained on earth. To labor here
was to regain one's dignity.
The paradiJIIJ clallJtraliJ of the monastery contrasted in this to the
Islamic "paradise gardens," as described in the Koran, and planted in
cities like Cordoba. The Islamic gardens sought to provide relief
from labor; when William of Malmesbury wrote about the gardens
of Thorney Abbey, by contrast, he declared that "not a particle of
the soil is left to lie fallow .. . in this place cultivation rivals nature;
what the latter has forgotten the former brings forth."5o
Christian monastic reformers thought that work in the garden not
only restored the worker to the original Garden, but also created
spiritual discipline; the harder the work, the greater its moral value.
This was specially emphasized by the Cistercians, who sought to
recall monks through labor from the sloth and corruption into which
many religious orders had sunk. And for this reason, also, the monk's
labors in the garden came to be silent labor-a rule of silence
observed in the garden by Franciscans and Cistercians, as well as
many Benedictines. Laborare et orare indicated how early medieval
Christians thought labor dignified the body in making a place.
The connection in the High Middle Ages between human pain
and God's pain intensified the dignity of work, as the person making
a physical effort considered in a new light the relations between flesh
and soul. To be sure, as Caroline Bynum remarks, the personal
awareness gained by labor "was nOt what we mean by ' the individ-
ual' "; the monk labored for the community. 51
The monks of St. Gall or Clairvaux worked in a guarded space.
The city made the dignity of labor stand forth in a less controlled
world, dignity and indignity mixed in the fabric of urban space. The
stones of Notre-Dame were hard by the stone quays of the Seine.
The spires of the Cathedral told those in need where to come in
the city for help, these spires which reached up to Heaven, offering
sanctuary from the quays, the streets, and the urban hovels. Still, the
celebrations in 1250 of the workers who made Notre-Dame testified
to the spread of laborare et orare beyond the garden into the city:
the gardener was now joined by the mason, the glassblower, and
the carpenter.
If the merchants who helped fund these sanctuaries were also cele-
brated in 1250, their honor was less certain, their dignity more ques-
tioned. Trade was no melancholic labor in the medieval sense, no
introspective effort. Indeed, trading puzzled the traders as much as
it did Bernard of Clairvaux in his cloister or John of Salisbury in his
Commllnity
185
study. The adage UStadt Llllt macht Irei" seemed to cut traders free
of the emotional attachments which they sought as Christians. If the
urban Christian garden of medieval Paris meant to renew humanity
in its state of grace before the Fall, if this new garden harbored labor-
ers who had learned lessons of suffering unknown to Adam and Eve,
those who worked outside the sanctuary seemed to wander in an
urban wilderness.
CHAPTER SIX
"Each Man Is
a Devil to Himself"
The Paris 0/
Humbert de Romans
T
he member of the Athenian po lis was a citizen. The member
of a medieval tOwn called himself a bourgeois in French, a Bur-
gher in German. These words named more than middle-class
people; the carvers who worked on Notre-Dame were bourgeois,
yet in medieval Paris few bourgeois had voting rights like Greek
citizens. The histOrian Maurice Lombard describes the bourgeois
instead as a cosmopolitan, thanks to commerce and trade in the city.
"[The medieval bourgeois] is a man at a crossroads, the crossroads at
which different urban centers overlap," Lombard writes; "he is a man
open to the outside, receptive to influences which end in his city and
which come from other cities.'" This cosmopolitan outlook influ-
enced the sense of one's own city. The non-charitable labor of medi-
Map of medieval Paris, ca. 1300.
o ~ = ~ = ~ = ~ 5 0 0 m
, " ,
o
. '3 ,
"",..
188 FLESH AND STONE
eval Paris occurred in urban space rather than places: spaces to be
bought and sold, altered in form by buying and selling, space becom-
ing the territory in which, rather than for which, a person worked.
The bourgeois made use of urban space.
The distinction between space and place is a basic one in urban
form. It turns on more than emotional attachment to where one
lives, for it involves as well the experience of time. In medieval Paris,
the flexible use of space appeared in conjunction with the appear-
ance of the corporation, an institution with the right to change its
activities in the course of time. Economic time unfolded by following
up opportunities, taking advantage of unforeseen events. Economics
prompted a conjunction of functional use of space and opportunistic
use of time. Christian time, by contrast, was founded on the story of
Jesus' own life, a history people knew by heart. Religion prompted
emotional attachment to place coupled with a sense of narrative
time, a narrative fixed and certain.
The early Christian who "turned away" from the world felt preg-
nant with change but lacking in place; conversion provided no road-
map to show the early Christian's destination. Now the Christian had
a place in the world and a path to follow, yet economic endeavor
seemed to push him off both. People's sense of their own bodies
entered into this conflict between economics and religion. While
Christian time and place drew on the body's powers of compassion,
economic time and space drew on its powers of aggression. These
contraries of place and space, of opportunity and fixity, of compas-
sion and aggression, occurred within every bourgeois trying both to
believe and to profit in the city.
l. ECONOMIC SPACE
Cite, bourg, commune
The geography of medieval Paris, like other cities of the time,
consisted of three kinds of property. First there was land fortified by
a permanent wall, and owned within the wall by defined powers. In
Paris, stone walls protected the lie de la Cite, for instance, and the
island was also protected by the Seine, which served as a natural
moat; most of the island belonged to the King and the Church. Such
land the French called a cile.
The second kind of land had no walls but was still owned by large
"Each Man 15 a Devil 10 H imse/f" 189
Farming ourside a cite in medieval Paris. The Limbourg Brothers. us Tres
Rich" Heum dll duc de Berry, Calendar, fragment for month of June, ca.
1416.
and defined powers. This kind of territory the French called a bourg.
The oldest bourg in Paris lay on the Left Bank, the bourg of Saint-
Germain. It was like a dense village, save that all the land was owned
by the four churches which composed Saint-Germain parish, the
largest where the modern Church of Saint-Sulpice stands today. A
bourg need not have been controlled by a single power. On the
Right Bank across from Notre-Dame a new quarter had grown up
190 FLESH AND STONE
along the river by 1250, serving both as a POrt and a market; one
minor noble controlled the POrt, another the market.
The third kind of densely peopled land was neither protected by
permanent walls nor controlled by a well-defined power. The French
called it a commune. Communes dotted the periphery of Paris and
were usually small land holdings, villages without a master.
The rebirth of Paris in the Middle Ages transformed the status of
the communes and bourgs by enclosing ever more land within walls.
The walls expanded in rwo stages. King Philip Augustus walled in
both the north and south banks of Paris in the early thirteenth cen-
tury, protecting an area which had grown steadily in the previous
century; Charles V enlarged the walls of Paris again by the 13 50s,
entirely on the right bank. These changes forged what we would
call a city our of the original small, isolated cite, its bourgs, and its
communes; the King accorded and guaranteed economic privileges
to the bourgs and the communes within the walls.
Parisians measured urban improvement by the amount of stone in
the city. As Jacques Le Goff points out, "From the eleventh century
the great boom in building, a phenomenon which was essential in
the development of the medieval economy, very often consisted of
replacing a wooden construction with one in stone-whether
churches, bridges, or houses," a desire to invest in stone that marked
private investment as well as public works.
2
The use of stone in turn
encouraged the development of other craft industries. Jehan de
Chelles' final stages in building the Cathedral of Notre-Dame, for
instance, radically expanded the trade in glass, precious jewels, and
tapestries in the city.
The process of joining the old bourgs, cites, and communes
together did not, however, make the map of Paris any clearer.
The street
We would expect a large trading city like medieval Paris to have
well-made roads to move goods through the city. Along the banks
of the Seine River they existed; from 1000 to 1200, these banks
were lined with stone walls so that trade on the river could be moved
more efficiendy. But inland, the growth of the city did not create a
system of roads easily accommodating transport. "Roads were in a
poor state," Le Goff notes; "there was a limited number of carts and
waggons, which were expensive, and useful vehicles were absent";
even the lowly wheelbarrow did nOt appear on Parisian streets until
"Each Man Is a Devil to Himself'
191
the end of the Middle Ages
J
The Roman city, with its beaurifully
engineered roads bedded deep into the earth, was a construction
miracle of the past.
The messy form as well as sorry physical condition of the medieval
street resulted from the very processes of growth. The roads of one
commune had seldom been laid our to join those of a neigh boring
commune, since its boundaries were originally the end of a smaller,
villagelike setdement turning inward. Nor were the bourgs laid out
to connect to other bourgs. The chaotic shape of the streets also
arose from the use the owners made of the land they controlled.
Most pieces of land in a cite or bourg were leased, or the building
rights on them sold, to individuals. These diverse builders had the
right to construct as they saw fit on the land owned by a large institu-
tion like the Crown or the Church; moreover, the various parts of a
single building, on different lIoors or the same lIoor, might be owned
and developed by different persons. "There was," says the urbanist
]acques Heers, "a veritable colonization of building land within the
city or in its immediate environs. " 4 Rarely did the landholder
attempt to inlluence the builder in terms of urban design; indeed, on
a purely economic level only in exceptional cases could the King or
Bishop seize a building or force its owner to sell to someone else. In
Paris, King or Bishop invoked "eminent domain" mosdy to add to a
palace or a church.
Only medieval cities which had been founded in Roman times
were likely to have a street plan or an overall design, and the Roman
grids had, save in a very few cities like Trier and Milan, been cracked
by the growth process into disconnected bits and pieces. Neither
King nor Bishop nor bourgeois had an image of how the city as a
whole should look. "The cramped, fragmented nature of the public
sphere rellected, in the very topography of the city, the weakness,
lack of resources, and limited ambitions of the state," claims one
historian. ' Builders put up whatever they could get away with; neigh-
bors fought each other's constructions with lawsuits, and often mOre
brurally with hired gangs of thugs who ripped down a neighbor's
work. From this aggression came the Parisian urban fabric, "mazes
of twisting, tiny streets, impasses, and courts; squares were small,
and there were few broad vistas or buildings set back from the street ;
traffic was always clogged. " 6
Medieval Cairo and medieval Paris formed a telling contrast,
though to the modern eye they might have seemed equally jumbled.
The Koran lays down precise instructions fot the placement of doors
192
FLESH AND STONE
".
A surviving medieval street in Paris.
"Each Man Is a Devil 10 Himself" 19 3
and the spatial relationship of doors to windows. In medieval Cairo,
land owned by a Muslim had to be built according to these instruc-
tions, which were enforced by charitable foundations in the city.
Such buildings, moreover, had to relate in form to one another, had
to be aware of one another; one could not, for instance, block a
neighbor's door. Religion decreed contextual architecture, though
the context was not one of linear streets. The buildings of medieval
Paris were under no such divine-or royal, or noble---<:ommand to
take account of one another. Each was fenestrated and floored
according the single owner's will; it was common for builders to
block access to other buildings with impunity.
The space of the Parisian medieval street was no more and no less
than the space which remained after buildings had been constructed.
Before the great Renaissance palaces arose in the Marais, for
instance, this swampy settlement on the Right Bank had streets
which suddenly narrowed so that a single person could barely pass
between buildings that different owners had built out to the edge of
the lot lines. The abbeys and the King's quarter had more serviceable
streets, since the owner was also the builder, though even in the
episcopal district around Notre-Dame different orders pushed into
the street according to their own desires, and to test the limits of
their privileges.
The Street bore the imprint of aggressive assertion, then, it was
the space left over after people asserted their rights and powers. The
street was no garden, no coenobitic place created by common labor.
If the street lacked those qualities of place, however, it did possess
certain visual features which made it function well as an economic
space. These features could be read on its walls.
In the non-ceremonial and poorer districts of ancient Greece and
Rome, the wall related to the street as a solid barrier. The medieval
urban economy made the street wall permeable. In the Parisian dis-
trict of leather workers on the Right Bank, for example, the windows
of each shop displayed goods to people walking in the streets
through an innovation in window architecture: the windows had
wooden shutters that folded down to serve as counters. The first
building with windows known to be designed in this fashion dates
from the early 1100s. Using the walls in this way, the merchants
focused on the display of their goods, to make people on the street
aware a shop contained something worth looking at inside as well.
The buyer walking the street looked to the walls, their surfaces now
active economic zones.
194
FLESH AND STONE
The workshop of an urban artisan. Lace fifteenth-century miniature by
Jean Bourdichon.
The medieval courtyard became tied in the same way to the eco-
nomic activity of the street. The courtyard served as a showroom as
well as a workroom, its entrance gradually enlarged so that people
passing by could see what was happening within. Even in very grand
palaces in the Marais district, as late as the sixteenth century, the
Schematic plan of a medieval street-wall shop in Paris.
ground-lIoor courtyard was planned as a beehive of shops producing
and selling to the general public, as well as provisioning the noble
household above.
The development of this porous economic street space encour-
aged a change in street time. The ancient city depended on daylight;
trade in medieval Paris extended the hours of the street. People went
into the streets to shop before or after they had finished their own
labors; the dusk as well as dawn became hours of consumption, the
bakery at dawn, for instance, and the butcher shop late at night, after
the butcher had purchased, prepared, and roasted his meats during
the day. The counter stayed down and the courtyard stayed unlocked
as long as there were people in the Street.
These streets whose buildings arose from the aggressive assertion
of rights, whose porous surfaces and volumes encouraged economic
competition, were also famously violent. Modern experiences of
urban street crime give us no way to imagine (he viciousness which
I 96 FLESH AND STONE
ruled the medieval street. But this medieval street violence was not
also what we might logically deduce, a simple consequence of eco-
nomics.
Violence in the street was aimed far more frequently at persons
rather than property. In 1405-06 (when the first reliable crime fig-
ures are available for Paris), 54 percent of the cases that came before
the criminal courts of Paris concerned "passionate crimes," while 6
percent arose from robberies; in the decade from 1411 to 1420, 76
percent of the cases were about impulsive violence against persons, 7
percent concerned thefts.
7
One explanation for this lay in the nearly
universal practice among merchants of hiring guards; indeed, the
very wealthy maintained little private armies to protect their man-
sions. There were municipal police in Paris from 1160 onward, but
their numbers were small, and their duties consisted mostly in guard-
ing public officials when they travelled through the city.
The crime statistics from the High and late Middle Ages are far
toO crude for us to know who was attacked, whether family and
friends or strangers on the street. It is a plausible inference, from tbe
existence of so many hired guards and soldiers among the affluent
classes, that most of the violence practiced by poor people was
directed at other poor people. We do know, however, one of the
main causes of such attacks; it was drink.
Drinking was linked to about 35 percent of the murders or grave
violent attacks in the Touraine, largely a rural region of France. In
Paris the correlation was even higher, for drinking occurred not only
at home, where a drunk could go to sleep, but in the public cellars
and wine shops which lined the streets of the city.8 Groups of people
got drunk together and then late at night erupted into the street,
picking fights.
The need to drink had a compelling origin: it came from the need
for bodily heat. In this northern city, wine warmed people's bodies
in buildings that lacked effective heating; the fireplace set against a
reflecting wall, with a flue leading to an external chimney, made its
appearance only in the fifteenth century. Prior to this, open braziers
or fires built directly on the floor provided a building's heat, and the
smoke of these fires kept people from settling toO close. Moreover,
the heat was quickly dissipated, as few ordinary urban buildings had
windows sheathed with glass. Wine served also as a narcotic that
dulled pain. Like heroin or cocaine in modern cities, fortified wine
created a drug culture in the Middle Ages, particularly in the public
cellars and wine shops.
"Each Man Is a Devil to H imse!f"
I 97
To be sure, street violence could take a political turn, in Paris as
in other medieval cities. "U rban revolts were born, were propagated,
and were aggravated in the street.'>9 These revolts had impersonal
causes, such as corrupt officials charged with distributing grain. But
in Paris the constables of both King and Bishop suppressed these
uprisings quickly; most lasted for only a few hours, at mOst a few
days. The usual physical violence people experienced on the Streets
was unpredictable-an unprovoked knife thrust, a fist in one's stom-
ach by a man who lurched by, blind drunk. We need to imagine,
then, a street marked by different but discontinuous forms of aggres-
sion: purposeful economic competition and impulsive non-eco-
nomic violence.
Verbal violence did play an important role in economic competi-
tion, if it rarely translated into violent action. People came to houses
to threaten, without restraint and in the most gory detail, the person
or the families of debtors. Some historians believe the very violence
of this language served as a kind of emotional discharge, permitting
competitors to act aggressively without in fact coming to blows. Be
that as it may, the political and ecclesiastical powers ruling the city
made little effort to punish sellers who threatened to punch or stab
buyers who resisted concluding a sale, or who harassed other sellers
in the street.
The low levels of property crime signalled that an effective but
peculiar order reigned in urban space. It might have been invisible
to the contemporary resident of Cairo, whose trading followed the
overt dictates of religion. Beyond injunctions against usury and steal-
ing, neither the Old nor the New Testament offered much guidance
about how to behave economically. And perhaps this was why John
of Salisbury also could not make sense of economic behavior. Com-
petition was not choleric, in the sense the ArJ medica described
choler, the violent choler of the fighting soldier. It bore little resem-
blance to the sanguine civic command of the ruler, none to the
phlegmatic considerations of the scholar. Competition certainly was
not melancholic, nor nurturing. JUSt who was this economic creature
became a little more evident in the organization of fairs and markets,
spaces subject to more overt civic control than the streets.
Fairs and markets
The medieval city was an example of what we would today call a
mixed economy of government and market on the Japanese model.
198 FLESH AND STONE
The use of the Seine in medieval Paris gives an idea of how the
rwo mixed. iO
Imagine that one had travelled on a ship loaded with cargo from
elsewhere on the river. When the boat arrived in Paris, it was subject
to a toll at the Grand POnt and its goods registered by a local corpo-
ration called the marchands de "eau. If the shipment contained wine,
one of the city's major imports, only Parisians were allowed to
unload it at the quays, and a boat could rest at anchor filled with wine
for only three days. This regulation ensured a good volume of traffic,
but it put the merchant-seaman under immense pressure to sell. The
quays thus were scenes of frantic activity, where every minute
counted.
Only rwo major bridges crossed the Seine in 1200, the Grand
Pont and the Petit POnt. Each of them was lined with houses and
shops, and each bridge was the site of particular trades, apothecaries
on the Petit Pont, for example, taking the spices delivered at the
docks below and converting them into medicines. The city regulated
the purity of the ingredients and the strength of the medicines. Even
fishing in the river "was regulated by the king, the canons of Notre-
Dame, and the abbey of Saint-Germain-des-Pres. Three year con-
tracts were granted to fishermen who had to swear on the Bible that
they wouldn't take carp, pike, or eels under a certain size." 11
Once merchants bought goods on the bridges and the quays, they
transported their wares to the fairgrounds of the city, spaces meant
for trade in higher volumes than the streets. Some goods would
return from the fairs to the quays after they had been sold, to be
redistributed along the trade route ro other cities; some would filter
down into the more local economy of the streets. The most
important fair in medieval Paris was the Lendit Fair, convened annu-
ally on a fairground established near the city, a fair begun in the
darkest of the Dark Ages, in the seventh century. During the era of
urban collapse in Europe, trading at fairs like the Lendit meant small,
local deals, and barter of goods rather than the use of money; only
rarely did a professional middleman enter the picture. The fairs
developed, however, the first tissues berween cities, connecting mar-
ket ro market.
By the High Middle Ages, these panoramas of goods had become
vast and elaborate pageants. The great fairs were no longer con-
ducted physically in open-air stalls or tents. Instead they occurred,
as the economic historian Roberr Lopez writes, in "stately halls for
sectional or specialized trade, covered plazas and arcaded alleys." 12
"Each Man Is a Devil to Himself"
199
Flags and pendants hung over the booths; long tables spread out in
the aisles where people ate, drank, and dealt. The pageantry was
redoubled by the display of statues and painted images of saints, for
the timing of fairs coincided with religious holidays and feasts; this
meant the traders had the opportunity to deal with potential custom-
ers at leisure. Because fairs were tied to religious rituals, the desire
to prolong trading often encouraged the adoration of ever more
saints. Though the religious festivals seemed ro sanctify trade, many
clerics railed against the coupling, as the saints were enlisted to bless
deals in perfumes, spices, and wine.
The great splendor of these medieval fairs perhaps misleads the
modern eye, for their col or concealed a fatal irony. As the urban
economy promoted by the fairs grew, the fairs themselves weak-
ened. For instance, by the twelfth century the Lendit Fair provided
metalworkers and textile workers in Paris a chance to sell their Own
manufactures. The Parisians found that they had ever more CUStom-
ers for these products, coming from ever farther away from the city,
and the parties quite naturally wanted to continue trading wirh the
customers they found at the fair throughout the year, not JUSt sea-
sonally. Thus, "if the absolute volume of transactions ... kept
increasing as the Commercial Revolution progressed, [the fairs')
share of total trade inevitably diminished."1 3 Economic growth
weakened, that is, the location of trade in a single, controllable place.
The metalworkers and textile makers began to deal with the custom-
ers found first in seasonal fairs throughout the year in the streets
where they worked.
''Though markets and fairs are terms often used indiscriminately,
there is a difference between them," declared the cleric Humbert de
Romans, writing in the mid-thirteenth century. He referred particu-
larly to the markets set up weekly in the city's streets, markets which
often spilled Out of that porous space into courtyards, or even into
the numerous small graveyards dotting the city. During the rwelfth
century these street markets continued on a weekly basis the trade
inaugurated at the annual fairs, displaying leather and metal goods,
and selling financial services and capital in open-air offices with walls
of cloth, the firms' gold hidden far from the street.
These market spaces quite effectively frustrated the state's power
to regulate trade. Dealers in goods hounded by regulations at one
street market simply moved to another. More, these markets broke
the religious restraints, such they were, on the fairs; buying and sell-
ing took place on holy days, usury flourished . Perhaps because it
200 FLESH AND STONE
was unrestrained, to both contemporary and later writers the market
seemed a far more aggressive economic space than the fair or the
non-market days on the street. "Markets are usually morally worse
than fairs," Humbert de Romans noted, developing the contrast
between the twO as follows:
They are held on feast days, and men miss thereby the divine office.
... Sometimes, too, they are held in graveyards and other holy places.
Frequently you will hear men swearing there: "By God I will not give
you so much for it" ... "By God it is not worrh so much as that."
Sometimes again the lord is defrauded of market dues, which is perfidy
and disloyalty ... quarrels happen .... Drinking occurs. 14
To explain what made markets morally worse than fairs, Humbert
de Romans told a story. It concerned a man who,
entering an abbey, found many devils in the cloister but in the market-
place found but one, alone on a high pillar. This filled him with won-
der. But it was told him that in the cloister all is arranged to help souls
to God, so many devils are required there to induce monks to be led
astray. but in the market-place, since each man is a devil to himself,
only one other devil suffices
l
'
The phrase "each man is a devil to himself' in the market makes the
story curious. We can understand that economics would make a man
a devil to others, but why to himself? A religious interpretation of
course comes to mind: the devil of aggressive competition makes a
man insensitive to what is best in himself, his compassion. But a
more profane explanation was equally pervasive: unbridled eco-
nomic competition could prove self-destructive. By laying waste
established institutions like the fair, the economic animal who hoped
to gain in fact could lose. It was all a matter of time.
2. ECONOMIC TIME
Guild and corporation
The medieval guild began as an institution to protect against eco-
nomic self-destruction. A craft guild integrated all workers in an
industry into a single body, where duties, promotions, and profits
were defined by master workers for journeymen workers and
"Each Man Is a Devil to Himself" 201
apprentices in a contract meant to govern the worker's entire career;
each guild was also a community which provided for the health of
the workers as for their widows and orphans. Lopez describes the
urban guild as "a federation of autonomous workshops, whose own-
ers (the masters) normally made all decisions and established the
requirements for promotion from the lower ranks (journeymen or
hired helpers, and apprentices). Inner con/licts were usually mini-
mized by a common interest in the welfare of the craft."16 The
French called craft guilds corps de metiers; the Livre des Metiers, com-
piled in 1268, "enumerates about a hundred organized crafts at Paris,
divided into seven groups: foods, jewelry and fine arts, metals, tex-
tiles and clothes, furs, and building."! ) Though the guilds were in
principle independent bodies, in fact the King's ministers deter-
mined their functioning through royal charters written and revised
by ministers who, at best, took counsel from the guild masters.
Many of the charters for the metiers of Paris contained elaborate
rules for how competitors in the same commodity were to behave;
the charters laid down strict instructions, for instance, forbidding
one butcher to insult another, or on how two hawkers of clothes
were to shout at the same time to a potential group of customers in
the street. More consequently, early guild charters sought to stan-
dardize products, in an effort to create collective control over the
craft; the charters specified the amount of material to be used in a
given product, its weight, and most importantly, its price. By 1300,
for example, Parisian guilds had defined a "standard loaf' of bread,
which meant that the weight and the kinds of grain used in making
the bread determined its price, rather than market forces.
The guilds were highly aware of the destructive economic effects
of unbridled competition. As well as controlling price, they sought
to control the quantity of goods a shop manufactured, so that compe-
tition would focus on the quality of the workmanship. Thus, "a guild
would normally forbid overtime work after dark and sometimes limit
the number of dependents a master could employ."18 The guilds'
effort to regulate competition appeared in their dealings with the
fairs, through their control of sale prices as well as the volume of
goods on offer. Yet the control of competition did not make the
guilds strong.
For one thing, different guilds had competing interests. In towns
where food crafts were powerful, the economic historian Gerald
Hodgett writes, "attempts to keep down prices were less effective
than in those towns where merchant guilds wished to minimize food
202 FLESH AND STONE
prices"; the merchants had a greater interest in low food prices, since
this meant lower wages, and so cheaper goods to trade.
' 9
And,
though they grew ever more stringent in their formal rules, the
guilds could not cope in practice with the changes and shifts
attending economic growth over the course of time.
Guilds that handled goods shipped long distance had constantly to
deal with foreigners, and individuals within the guilds often tried to
do their own business with these strangers who weren't part of the
local fabric; when a few gOt away with violating the rules, others in
the guild broke ranks. In the rwelfth century, the standardization of
products also began to break down, as individuals sought market
niches when faced with stiff competition; in Paris, for instance, the
way in which meat was cut began to vary from butcher to butcher. In
some business dealings it was still possible to evade the destructive
pressures of the market; non-competitive trading occurred especially
in luxury goods like jewels, where credit arrangements berween
buyer and seller were as much at issue as the goods themselves. Yet
more generally within medieval urban guilds, though in principle a
worker might be bound to observing a fixed set of rules during the
course of his lifetime, this observance became ever more a ceremo-
nial show rather than a compelling practice.
As their hold over their members weakened, the guilds sought to
underline their importance as venerable institutions, firming up the
rituals and displaying the goods which marked their earlier days of
glory. At a fair in the mid-1250s, for example, metalworkers put on
display armor of an ancient, heavy, clumsy sort quite unlike what
they were selling daily throughout Europe. Still later, guild member-
ship meant little more than appearing resplendently dressed at din-
ners in the great guild halls, displaying the guild's chains and seals
among people one now treated mostly as threats to one's own sur-
vival.
The guilds were corporations, and while the guild form began to
weaken, other kinds of corporations, more adept at managing
change, started to flourish. The medieval corporation was no more
and no less than a university. The word "university" had no narrow
connection to education in the Middle Ages; rather, "it connoted any
corporate body or group with an independent juridical status.'>20 A
university became a corporation because it possessed a charter. And
a charter defined the rights and privileges of a particular group to
"Each Man Is a Devil to Himself" 203
act; it was not a constitution in the modern sense, not even a general
social charter such as the Magna Carta in England. The medieval era
conceived of "charters of liberties [rather) than of charters of lib-
erty," in the words of one legal historian.
2I
A group had collective
rights which might be written down, and more important, rewritten.
In this, the university differed from the rural medieval /eudum, a
contract which, even if written out, was meant to be permanent, or
if issued from the guild was meant to last a lifetime. Universities
could easily be--and often were--renegotiated about what they did
and where they did it, as changing circumstances dictated; they were
economic instruments set in time.
Feudalism "gave the masses a certain security, from which a rela-
tive well-being was born."22 The university might seem unstable, but
the right to rewrite its charter and reorganize actually made it more
durable. The historian Ernst Kantorowicz cites the medieval doctrine
rex qui nunquam "/Oritur-the King that never dies-to explain how,
in the state, though a particular King dies, the office does not die
with him: the doctrine of the "King's rwo bodies" supposed that
there were an enduring King, a kingship, which passes in and out
of the body of each flesh-and-blood King.
23
The rights of charter
paralleled in certain ways this medieval doctrine of the "King's rwo
bodies." The university continued to do business, no matter that the
individuals who started it died, or that the nature of the business
changed, or that the business changed locale.
Thus, medieval corporations in fact dedicated to education con-
sisted of teachers rather than buildings. A university began when
masters gave lessons to students in rented rooms or churches; the
educational university at first held no property of its own. Scholars
abandoned Bologna in order to found a university in 1222 in Padua,
as did scholars who left Oxford to create Cambridge in 1209. "This
lack of possessions paradoxically gave the universities their greatest
power; for it meant their complete freedom of movement. "24 The
autonomy of a corporation freed it from bondage to place, and to
the past.
The charter's powers joined the worlds of education and com-
merce in practice, for to revise charters required people skilled in
playing with language. Those language arts developed in the educa-
tional corporations. Early in the rwelfth century, Peter Abelard
taught theology at the University of Paris by staging debates with his
students; this process of intellectual competition (disputatio) con-
trasted to the older way of teaching (lectio), which consisted of a
204 FLESH AND STONE
teacher reading aloud Scripture sentence by sentence, and explaining
it, while the students wrote down the lesson. Disputatio cook an ini-
tial proposition and worked changes on it, like a theme and varia-
tions in music, passed back and forth berween teacher and student.
Though disputatio was anathema co much of the Church hierarchy,
seeming co threaten the very durability of the Word, it had a great
appeal co students for practical reasons that are not hard co seek:
disputatio taught a skill which would serve those students in adulc
competition.
In the medieval era the state did decide whether, when, and how
a particular corporation could rewrite itself. For instance, sometime
during the 1220s four Parisian nobles were persuaded co invest in
shoring up the northern quays of the Seine opposite the Jle St.-
Louis. The King cold the nobles that if they invested in the land, he
would guarantee CO the tenants of the nobles elsewhere in the city
that they were free of their old contractual obligations and could
move co these more modern quarters. It may seem simple co us, but
was an epochal event. Economic change had become a right, guaran-
teed by the state.
The power co make revisions in time thus first defined the modern
concept of the corporation. If a charter can be revised, the corpora-
tion defined by it has a structure which transcends its function at any
one time; if, for instance, the University of Paris dropped a subject
from its curriculum, or the teachers moved elsewhere, it would noe
have co go out of existence-in the same way that a modern corpora-
tion named the Universal Glass Corporation might no longer make
glass. The corporate structure which transcends fixed functions takes
advantage of changing market conditions, new goods, and the acci-
dents of chance. A firm can change yet be permanent.
The origins of the corporation suggest another meaning for us CO
the Weberian word "auconomy." Autonomy means the capacity CO
change; auconomy requires the right CO change. This formula, which
seems so self-evident co modern eyes, involved a great revolution
10 nme.
Economic time and Christian time
In 1284 King Phillip the Fair found that interest rates in his king-
dom were occasionally as high as 266 percent annually, but more
nearly 12 co 33 percent. Such charges seemed co make a mockery of
time. Guillaume d'Auxerre, in his Summa aurea wriccen in 1210-20,
"Each Man Is a Devil to Himself" 205
declared that the usurer "sells The Dominican monk
Etienne de Bourbon similarly declared that "usurers only sell the
hope of money, that is, time; they sell the day and the night."26 Guil-
laume d'Auxerre explained his meaning by invoking the powers of
compassion and communal feeling contained in the Imitation of
Christ. "Every creature is obliged co make a gift of himself," Guil-
laume said; "the sun is obliged co make a gift of itself co provide
light, the earth is obliged co make a gift of all it can produce"; but
the usurer blocks the power of a man or woman CO give, robs the
person of the means to contribute co the community. The debcor
cannOt participate in Christian hiscory.27 This explanation may be
more comprehensible co us if we reflect that many people in the
Middle Ages thought Christ's Second Coming imminent. Those who
had nOt participated in the community as Christians would be swept
away by the Day of Judgment only years, perhaps months, away.'8
But one needn't have been waiting for the Millennium or thought
only of usurers CO have perceived that a great gulf separated the
Christian sense of time from economic time.
The corporation could blot out the past with the stroke of a pen.
It was an arbitrary and, as Jacques Le Goff notes, a very urban time:
"the peasant submitted ... co a meteorological time, co the cycle of
the seasons," while in the market, "minutes and seconds could make
and destroy fortunes," as on the quays of Paris.
29
This urban, eco-
nomic time had another side. Time become a commodity, measured
in hours of labor for which fixed wages would be paid. In Humberc
de Romans' Paris, this measured time was just beginning co make its
appearance in the guilds: guild contracts, especially in the manufac-
turing trades, specified the hours of work and computed wages on
this basis, rather than on piecework, where a worker received money
for finishing a piece of goods.
30
Change time and clock time were the
Janus faces of the economy. This economic time possessed powers of
rupture and powers of definition, but lacked narrative-it unfolded
no scory.
The theologian Hugues de Saint-Viccor declared, on the contrary,
that Christian "hiscory is a narrative body."31 By this he meant that
all the significant signposts in a Christian's life hiscory have been put
in place by the scory of Christ's life. The closer one draws co Christ,
the clearer will the meaning of events become which otherwise seem
senseless or merely random. The belief that Christian hiscory is a
narrative body derived form the impulses contained in the Imitation
of Christ: His body tells not an alien scory, or a scory of what once
206 FLESH AND STONE
happened, but an ever contemporary story; draw closer to Him and
the direction in which time's arrow points will be clear.
This Christian time knew no idea of individual autonomy such as
the corporation defined it. Imitation of Christ rather than auronomy
should rule one's actions; the imitation should be strict, because
nothing happened by chance in Christ's life. Moreover, Christian
time had little in common with clock time. The length of a confes-
sion, for example, had little relation to its value; the old counting of
sins had given way by the High Middle Ages to what the modern
philosopher Henri Bergson calls duree, a "being in time" when con-
fessor and sinner emotionally connect. Whether it lasts a second or
an hour is of no consequence; the only thing that matters is that
It occurs.
Homo economicus
Now we can better understand why Humbert de Romans said the
man of the market "is a devil to himself." Homo economicus lived in
space rather than for place. The corporation which began to flourish
in the Commercial Revolution treated time like space. It was a struc-
ture with a flexible form; it endured because it could change. Its
fixities lay in the quantities of time in which it dealt, work organized
into daily or hourly wages. Neither its autonomy nor its quantities
of labor-time accorded with the narrative time of Christian belief. As
a trader driving his competitors to ruin, as a usurer, as a boss, as a
gambler with other people's lives, Homo economicus might be their
devil but he was a devil to himself because he could self-destruct;
the v ~ r y institutions through which he hoped to prosper could leave
him out at the Day of Judgment. Commitment was lacking in this
economic time and space.
The destructive powers of early capitalism do not appear in the
account the economic hisrorian Albert Hirschmann gives of the ori-
gins of Homo economicus. For Hirschmann, economic activity was a
calming pursuit, in contrast to the "striving for honor and glory ...
exalted by the medieval chivalric ethos. "32 Although Hirschmann
sets his sights in The Passions and the Interests on a later period, he
might have been thinking of the medieval writer William of
Conches, who praised a quality lacking in the choleric temperament
of the knight, the Crusader, or indeed the millenarian religious
believer. This quality is modestia, which William of Conches defined
as "the virtue which keeps manners, movements, and all our activity
"Each Man Is a Devil to Himself" 20 7
above insufficiency but below excess."33 St. Louis himself "both
observed and praised the juste milieu in everything, in clothing, in
food, in worship, in war. For him, the ideal man was the prudhomme,
the man of integrity, who could be distinguished from the brave
knight because he linked wisdom and measure to prowess."34 Yet
Homo economicus was inherently imprudent.
The weight of economic individualism hangs so heavily on modern
society that we cannot imagine altruism or compassion as necessities
in the conduct of life. Because of their faith, medieval people could.
It was imprudent, indeed sheer folly, to neglect the state of one's
soul. To lose one's place in a Christian community meant living the
degraded life of a beast. With reason, people looked upon economic
individualism as a form of spiritual temptation. What then could hold
the community together? The dilemma of resolving the tensions
between space and place first made manifest in Paris during the High
Middle Ages can perhaps be seen in three paintings executed else-
where, at the end of the medieval era.
3. THE DEATH OF ICARUS
The first retells an ancient srory. In 1564, Peter Brueghel the Elder
made his largest painting, telling a dark story through a barely visible
detail. The Procession to Calvary fills with a crowd of figures stretching
across a rolling landscape which meets a dark blue and cloud-thick-
ened sky. The painting has three zones from near to far: close up, a
small group of grieving figures seated on the brow of the hill; in the
middle distance, a crowd of hundreds moving across a field toward a
hill; at the back of the scene the cloudy sky which meets this hill at
the horizon.
The grieving figures close up are the family and disciples of Jesus;
Mary forms the centerpoint in this group, her eyes closed, her head
bent, her body sagging. Brueghel painted these figures with great
clarity and detail, a precision contrasting strongly to the obscure
action occurring in the middle distance. There we see a procession
of people painted in daubs and flecks of paint, the only visual order
created by a line of red color which denotes the uniforms of
mounted horsemen strung Out in the procession. At the center of
this procession, and dead center on the canvas, is a man in gray who
has fallen in crossing a stream; he has dropped something, which the
viewer can just barely make out, since this object is painted almost
the same light yellow as the bare earth. It is a cross.
Pieter Brueghel the Elder, The Procession 10 Calvary, 1564. KunJlhiJlor-
isches Museum, Vienna. Foto MarburglArt Resource N. Y.
Bmeghel buried Christ among the crowd, which seems to trample
over this speck of gray and yellow in blind movement along the red
line. Miniaturizing the Christian drama reduced the tragedy to a
minor visual detail. By so doing, Bmeghel conveys in the most tradi-
tional way the divide between the sacred and the profane. In the
words of Bmeghel's modern biographer, "The less we see of Christ
... the more room there is for a display of the indifference of the
common man .... "35 In this rendering of the ancient Christian story,
the human landscape is a wasteland, sere and cold. But in depicting
this scene, Brueghel invoked a traditional Christian theme, the need
to respond to suffering, to draw together. The sharply etched tableau
in the foreground shows us people who have done so, united by the
sufferings of Christ. But they are in a wilderness.
Piero della Francesca's Flagellation, painted between 1458 aod
1466 for a chapel in tbe Ducal Palace in Urbino, creates a sense of
Cbristian place in explicitly urban terms. Within tbis small painting
(58 by 81 cm), Piero depicts a scene divided into two complex pares.
One side of the painting looks into an open room in wbich Cbrist
"Each Man Is a Devil to Himself" 209
bas been tied to a column; a tormentor wbips Him while two otbers
stand by, a furtber seated figure in the background also watching tbe
flagellation. Tbe other half of tbe painting seems an unrelated scene,
taking place out of doors in an urban square. Here three figures, two
older men and a boy between them, stand in front of a group of
buildings. Tbe only immediate connection between the two parts of
tbe painting consists of white lines drawn on tbe ground, appearing
as inlaid floor tiles in tbe room; these continue outside as street
paving.
Thanks to tbe researches of modern art historians, we know that
in Piero's time tbe two parts would have appeared as one, tbougb
depending on tbe bistorian tbe connection varies. In the view of
Marilyn Lavin, tbe explanation is tbat twO older men in the city had
eacb lost sons, one to tbe plague, the otber to tuberculosis. Tbese
events "brought the two fathers togetber and caused the commission
of Piero's painting"; the young man between them "personifies the
'beloved son.' "36 The contemporary viewer thus saw a connection
between tbe suffering Son of Man within the building and tbe sbared
loss of a son outside it.
The two parts are also connected in purely visual terms. Piero was
a tbeorist of perspective, and tbe wbipping in tbe inner recesses of
tbe building and the three men in front fit precisely into a single
perspective. The two parts of the Flagellation join togetber as ifPiero
had created a single work of architecture, whicb he painted by stand-
ing directly in front. Tbe modern painter Philip Guston writes of tbis
enigmatic scene that "the picture is sliced almost in half, yet botb
parts act on each otber, repel and attract, absorb and enlarge one
anotber. "37 The viewer standing, like Piero, in front feels the com-
plex unity of place evoked by Guston's words, but tbese visual values
are tied to tbe religious story being told. By addressing himself to
tbe tbeme of solace for the grieving fatbers-tbeir pain reflected,
transfigured, and redeemed by Christ's own pain-Piero made a
cohering urban place. Tbis scene conveys tbe Imitation of Christ in
an urban landscape.
Bmeghel's Landscape with the Fall 0/ Icarus, painted six years
before The Procession to Calvary, depicts a pagan story wbicb suggests
a third possibility. Again, tbe painting turns on suffering represented
in a detail. Bmegbel doesn't sbow tbe young man flying up toward
tbe sun on bis wings of wax, nor tbe moment wben tbe wings melt
and !cams begins to fall out of tbe sky. Tbe painter shows only twO
small legs splasbing into water amidst a tranquil scene by tbe sea, tbe
Piero della Francesca, The Flagellation, 1444. Galleria Nazionale delle Mar-
che, Palazzo Ducale, Urbino. ScalalArt Resource, N. Y.
death but a small detail in the landscape. Even the colors hide the
event; Brueghel painted the flesh of the boy's legs in a bluish-white
tone that blends in with the blue-green of the sea. By contrast, he
boldly designed and painted in vivid colors a farmer ploughing his
fields, a shepherd tending his sheep, a fisherman casting his line.
Rather than to the legs in the water, the painter drew the viewer's
eye ro a ship sailing toward a Dutch city in the far distance along
the seashore.
A proverb of the time said that "no plough is stopped for the sake
of a dying man."38 The people in Brueghel's landscape pay no atten-
rion ro the strange and terrible death happening in the sea. In this,
the poet W. H. Auden has said, Brueghel painted again man's lack
of compassion ro man. The poem Auden wrote about the painting,
"Musee des Beaux Arts," runs in part:
In Bmeghel's harm, for instance: how everything turns away
Quite leisurely from the disaster; the ploughman may
Pieter Brueghel, Landscape with the Fall 0/ [cams, 1558(?). Musees Royaux
des Beaux-Arts, Brllssels. GiralldonlArt Resource, N. Y.
Have heard the splash, the forsaken cry,
But for him it was nor an important failure ... 39
Yet the painting is one of the gentlest landscapes Brueghel ever
made; it radiates peace. The rural scene is so beautiful that our eyes
are diverted from the story; we care more about the colors than the
death; the beauty of the painting is repressive. The sere wasteland of
Brueghel's Procession to Calvary is gone, the unity of place and suffer-
ing marking Piero's Flagellation absent. The sense of place has
become an end in itself; the beautiful Garden is restored.
This third painting suggests a resolution of the tensions arising
from the attachment ro place generated by the medieval world. Not
programmatically of course; Landscape with the Fall 0/ [carus throws
us into contraries of beauty and horror which know no time. It is no
more and no less than an image of place in which strange events and
alien presences have been denied. That denial came to be ever more
seductive, as Christian communities sought to survive in an ever
more alien world.
CHAPTER SEVEN
Fear of Touching
The Jewish Ghetto in
Renaissance Venice
T
he plot of Shakespeare's Merchant 0/ Venice (1596-97) turns
on a circumstance which seems odd the moment we think
about it. Shylock, the rich Jewish moneylender of Venice, has
lent Bassanio 3,000 ducats for three months, and Bassanio's friend
AntOnio has pledged to repay the loan to Shylock. If AntOnio fails,
Shylock, who hates the aristOcratic Christian Antonio and all he
stands for, wants a pound of Antonio's flesh as a forfeit. As things
tend to happen in plays, fortune goes against Antonio; ships carrying
all his wealth are ruined in a stOrm. The odd thing is that Antonio
and the Christian authorities who enter the play should feel obliged
to keep their word to aJew.
Outside the theatre, Shakespeare's audience treated Jews as half-
human animals due little respect at law. JUSt a few years before
Shakespeare wrOte The Merchant o/Venice, the most prominent Jew
in England had been denied legal protection. Elizabeth I's physician
Fear 0/ Touching 213
]acopo dei Barbari's woodcut drawing of the Venetian Ghetto, 1500.
Dr. Lopez was accused of having been in a plot to poison her; even
though the Queen insisted Dr. Lopez should be tried, the public
needed no other proof than his Jewish race, and Dr. Lopez was
lynched. In his play, Shakespeare compounds these prejudices by
making the Jewish moneylender intO a cannibal.
Thus one might expect the Duke (Doge) of Venice to enter, a pow-
erful dew ex machina, and throw the cannibal into prison, or at least
declare the contract immoral and therefore void. Yet when one of
the minor characters in The Merchant 0/ Venice says he is sure the
Duke is going to solve things exactly in this way, AntOnio responds
that "The Duke cannOt deny the course of law.'" The power Shylock
holds over AntOnio is the right of contract; once both parties have
"freely entered into it," nothing else matters. The Duke acknowl-
edges this when he meets Shylock, for all the Duke can do is plead
with Shylock, who, safe in his rights, turns a deaf ear to the supreme
power in the city. Portia, the woman who will eventually cur this
Gordian knot, declares, "There is no power in Venice can alter a
decree established."2
The plot of The Merchant o/Venice seems to display the power of
214 FLESH AND STONE
the economic forces first formed in the medieval universIty and
other corporations. Shylock's money rights rule, the state cannot
resist them. The play shows indeed a new extension of economic
might as weIJ in the binding power of a contract once, like Antonio
and Shylock, the parties have agreed to it.
The Jew's economic force attacks, moreover, Christian community
among Shakespeare's beleaguered Venetians. Antonio has gener-
ously agreed to help his friend Bassanio. Unlike Shylock, Antonio
asks for nothing in return; he feels compassion for Bassanio's plight.
Shakespeare's Venetians are English gentlemen in business. These
dream Venetians reappear in many guises in other plays of Shake-
speare, in A Midsummer Night 's Dream for instance, when Christian
compassion sets things right in the end. Bur Venice had a special
significance for Shakespeare and his contemporaries.
Venice was undoubtedly the most international city of the Renais-
sance, thanks to its trade, the gatepost between Europe and the East
and between Europe and Africa. Englishmen and continental Euro-
peans hoped they could develop navies like the great Venetian fleet,
and thus profit from this international trade. Although by the 1590s,
when Shakespeare wrote The Merchant o/Venice, the wealth of Ven-
ice was in fact beginning to fade, its image in Europe was of a golden
and luxuriant port. This image of the city Shakespeare could have
gleaned from books like the expatriate Italian John Florio's A World
o/Words, or through the music of another expatriate, Alfonso Ferra-
bosco; a little later Shakespeare's audience would have seen the
influences of the great Venetian architect Palladio on the architec-
ture of Inigo Jones.
Venetian society appeared as a city of strangers, vast numbers of
foreigners who came and went. The Venice which Elizabethans saw
in their imagination was a place of enormous riches earned by con-
tact with these heathens and infidels, wealth flowing from dealings
with the Other. But unlike ancient Rome, Venice was not a territo-
rial power; the foreigners who came and went in Venice were not
members of a common empire or nation-state. Resident foreigners
in the city-Germans, Greeks, Turks, Dalmatians, as well as Jews-
were barred from official citizenship and lived as permanent immi-
grants. Contract was the key to opening the doors of wealth in this
city of strangers. As Antonio declared,
For the commodity that strangers have
With us in Venice, 1/ it be denied,
Fear 0/ Touching
Will much impeach the justice 0/ the state,
Since that the trade and profit 0/ the city
Consisteth 0/ all nations.
3
215
In the real Venice where Shakespeare set his play, much of the
action of the story would have been impossible. At one point Anto-
nio invites Shylock to dinner. In the play, the Jew declines; in the
real Venice, he would have had no choice. A real Jewish money-
lender lived in the Ghetto the Venetians built for Jews in the course
of the sixteenth century. A real moneylender was let out of the
Ghetto, situated at the edge of the city, at dawn, where he made his
way to the financial district around the Rialto wooden drawbridge
near the city's center. By dusk the Jew was obliged to return to the
cramped Ghetto; at nightfall its gates were locked, the shutters of its
houses that looked outward closed; police patrolled the exterior.
The medieval adage UStadt Lu/t macht frei" would leave a bitter taste
in the Jew's mouth, for the right to do business in the city did not
bring a more general freedom. The Jew who contracted as an equal
lived as a segregated man.
In that real Venice, the desire for Christian community lay some-
where between a dream and an anxiety. The impurities of difference
haunted the Venetians: Albanians, Turks, and Greeks, Western
Christians like the Germans, all were segregated in guarded build-
ings or clusters of buildings. Difference haunted the Venetians, yet
exerted a seductive power.
When they shur the Jews inside the Ghetto, the Venetians claimed
and believed they were isolating a disease that had infected the
Christian community, for they identified the Jews in particular with
corrupting bodily vices. Christians were afraid of touchingJews:Jew-
ish bodies were thought to carry venereal diseases as well as to con-
tain more mysterious polluring powers. The Jewish body was
unclean. A little detail of ritual in business illuminated this unease of
touch; whereas among Christians a contract was sealed with a kiss or
with a handshake, contracts with Jews were sealed with a bow, so
that the bodies of the parries need not touch. The very contract Shy-
lock draws with Antonio, the payment in flesh, conveyed the fear
the Jew would defile a Christian's body by using his power of money.
In the medieval era, the Imitation of Christ made people more
sympathetically aware of the body, especially the suffering body. The
fear of touching Jews represents the frontier of that conception of a
common body; beyond the frontier lay a threat-a threat redoubled
216 FLESH AND STONE
because the impurity of the alien body was associated with sensual-
ity, with the lure of the Oriental, a body cut free from Christian
constraints. The touch of the Jew defiles, yet seduces. The segre-
gated space of the Ghetto represented a compromise berween the
economic need of Jews and these aversions to them, berween practi-
cal necessity and physical fear.
The making of the Ghetto occurred at a crucial moment for Ven-
ice. The city leaders had lost a great advantage in trade, and suffered
a crushing military defeat, a few years before. They blamed these
losses largely on the state of the city's morals, bodily vices provoked
by the very wealth now slipping from its grasp; from this moral cam-
paign to reform the city came the plan for the Ghetto. By segregating
those who were different, by no longer having to touch and see
them, the city fathers hoped peace and dignity would rerum to their
city. This was the Venetian version of Brueghel's tranquil dream-
scape in Landscape with the Fall 0/ [caruso
It is easy to imagine today that Jews had always lived in Europe
isolated in ghetto space. Indeed, from the Lateran Council of 11 79
forward, Christian Europe had sought to prevent Jews living in the
midst of Christians. In all European cities which harbored colonies
of Jews, such as London, Frankfurt, and Rome, they were forced to
live apart. Rome typified the problem of enforcing the edict of the
Lateran Council. Rome had what is now called its Ghetto from early
medieval times; a few streets in the Jewish quarter of medieval Rome
were gated, but the urban fabric was toO disordered for the Jews to
be totally sealed in. In Venice, the physical character of the city made
it possible finally to realize the rule prescribed by the Lateran Coun-
cil-Venice a city built on water, water the city's roads which sepa-
rated clusters of buildings into a vast archipelago of islands. In the
making of the Jewish Ghetto, the city fathers put the water to use to
create segregation: the Ghetto was a group of islands around which
the canals became like a moat.
If the Venetian Jews suffered from the struggle to impose a Chris-
tian community on the economic mosaic, they did not suffer as pas-
sive victims. The formation of the Jewish Ghetto tells the story of
a people who were segregated but who then made new forms of
community life out of their very segregation; indeed, the Jews of
Renaissance Venice gained a certain degree of self-determination in
the Ghettos. Moreover, the city protected a Jew or a Turk against
Christian mobs at Lent or at other times of high religious passion, so
long as the non-Christian was in the space reserved for the outsider.
Fear 0/ Touching 21 7
Segregation increased the Jew's daily Otherness, non-Christian
lives ever more enigmatic to the dominant powers beyond Ghetto
walls. For the Jews themselves, the Ghetto raised the stakes of con-
tact with the outside world: their own Jewishness seemed at risk
when they ventured outside the Ghetto. For over three thousand
years the Jews had survived in small cells mixed among their oppres-
sors, a people sustained in their faith no matter where they lived.
Now the bonds of faith among these People of the Word began to
depend more upon having a place of their own, where they could
be Jewish.
Community and repression: Venetian Christians sought to create
a Christian community by segregating those who were different,
drawing on the fear of touching alien, seductive bodies. Jewish iden-
tity became entangled in that same geography of repression.
1. VENICE AS A MAGNET
Henri Pirenne criticized Max Weber for discounting medieval cities
as porous places of trade, with all the ambiguity and mixture which
long-distance trade brings to the life of a city. Pirenne's great exam-
ple of the city as a magnet could have been Venice. The spice trade
showed the kind of commerce which made Venice wealthy at the
price of amactingJews and other foreigners to the city.
The earliest spice that Venice controlled was salt, the most ele-
mental means of preserving food. In early medieval times, Venetians
dried salt on the coastal marshes and then sold it locally; this
req uired control of land. Venetians became richer from trading in
spices like saffron which, like the trade in cloth and gold, came from
long distances. The immediate local market for saffron was small, the
European-wide market immense. This kind of trade depended more
on control of the seas rather than on possession of land. Saffron,
cumin, and juniper were grown in India and other countries of the
East, and Venice served, in William McNeill's phrase, as the "hinge
of Europe" by bringing them to the West
4
As early as the year lOOO, Venice had established itself as the
dominant power all around the Adriatic Sea, which served as one
route to Jerusalem; Venice thus also became a city of passage in the
European Crusades to the Holy Lands. After the Third Crusade, the
city had acquired trading rights with the East, and these it used to
import its spices: pepper, some of which came from India, some
218 FLESH AND STONE
from the east coast of Africa, via the Egyptian POrt of Alexandria;
saffron and nutmeg from India, cinnamon from Ceylon. The Crusad-
ers had returned from the East with the taste of these spices in their
memories, and the advent of spices changed the European diet. The
trade in spices became so great a part of the Venetian economy that
special bureaucracies, such as the Office of Saffron, were set up to
regulate it. In 1277, Venice's rival Genoa began to send annual con-
voys of goods to Bruges and other Channel POrtS in Northern
Europe; the Venetians controlled many of these goods as the first
European port of entry. Soon Venice itself began its own Northern
European trade via England.
Venice organized trade through joint venture partnerships
between individual merchant families and the Venetian state. "The
joint ventures lacked the permanence of the modern corporation
and they had quite limited objectives," the modern historian Freder-
ick Lane observes; "they lasted only for the duration of a voyage or
until a cargo had been sold."5 Only a few great families directed
these joint ventures; the Grimani family, for instance, took 20 per-
cent of the profits from that year, about 40,000 ducats.
6
The princi-
pal manufacture of Venice was the boats for these seagoing voyages.
Spices and other goods were carried by a special kind of merchant
galley ship, rowed by rwo hundred men near to land, powered by
sail only on the high seas. Longer and wider than military galleys,
these ships travelled in convoys called muda; the city owned the gal-
leys and rented them to merchants like the Grimani, who in turn
rented out space in the mammoth vessels to smaller spice merchants.
The convoy of galleys would sometimes set out from Venice to pick
up cargo around the south coast of the Mediterranean, but the costs
and structure of the giant galleys made them more profitable to oper-
ate on longer voyages, through the Straits of the Bosphorus into the
Black Sea. At the eastern edges of the Black Sea, the convoy
received spices brought overland from India and Ceylon. Then the
flotilla of ships returned, a fat target. In the fourteenth century,
before the growth of Turkish power, the principal danger ro the
returning vessels was pirates; in later years, the ships filled with their
precious cargoes had to blast their way back through Turkish attack-
ers as well. Shakespeare's drama thus drew on a real threat.
If a ship managed to survive at sea, it sailed up the Adriatic, passed
through the sand bars at the edge of the Venetian lagoon, and made
its way into the city. The water of the lagoon and the sand bars served
as the most effective walls Venice could have against foreign inva-
I
Fear of Touching
The Customs House of Venice.
219
sion, since they rigidly controlled access by ships. The Cathedral in
the Piazza of San Marco served as the steering point for a returning
vessel; as the convoy approached, vessels from the customs service
came out to meet it, and customs officers boarded the ship. The size
of these merchant galleys made it difficult for them to navigate very
far into the principal water road of Venice, the Grand Canal; the
cargo was unloaded into smaller boats, which proceeded to landings
all along the Grand Canal and its tributaries.
The moment ships returned safe to harbor, officials swarmed over
them, and their goods were reckoned and taxed. Surveillance was
the very lifeblood of the Venetian port, and the physical form of the
city made surveillance possible in many ways. The narrow entry
st raits of the lagoon, the promontory of the customs house, the great
mouth of the Grand Canal permitted government surveillance by the
eye as well as in law. The government supervised and taxed anew
the loading of ships with spices which then travelled through the
Mediterranean, the larger ships quitting the Straits of Gibraltar to
sail to Portugal, France, England, and the northern countries.
The middlemen in this system were the traders, financiers, and
bankers clustered around the Rialto Bridge spanning the Grand
220 FLESH AND STONE
A Jewish moneylender. From G, Grevembroch, Customs of the Venetians;
Museo Civico Con-er, Venice.
Canal a mile up from the great public square of San Marco. Here
Shakespeare had Shylock do business: "the banker ... sat behind a
bench under the portico of a church at the Rialro, with his big journal
spread out in front. The payor orally instructed the banker to make
a transfer to the account of the person being paid.'" The banker's
funds were sacks of gold or silver coins; written scrip or printed
Fear 0/ Touching 221
money was less used, since the traders came from places which
would be highly dubious about the worth of a piece of paper printed
in a foreign language. The buildings around the Rialto were filled
with strongrooms where the banker kept his gold or jewels. By
necessity, the Rialto also filled every day with gossip and rumor,
since the middlemen plied their trade without much information
about what passed far away on the seas.
"His word is his bond": Like the way business later developed in
the City of London, the brokers clustered around the Rialto Bridge
depended on informal, verbal agreement. Verbal trust was tied to
the use of untaxed or unregistered capital-which the brokers
wished to keep from the eyes of the state. They did so by putting as
little as possible on paper, and so could fiddle as well with the strict
regulations which controlled the entry and exit of boats from the
city. Illegal business, then, but nor dishonorable. "His word is his
bond" developed in little rituals played Out around the Rialto Bridge,
the rituals of coffee, the group of professional witnesses lingering
around the bridge whose stocks-in-trade were probity and silence.
Though the Doge was willing to oblige Antonio, Anronio's problem
with Shylock was "I have given him my word."
The fortunes of the spice trade also epitomized the forces which
came into play when the Venetians began to create the Ghetto. In
1501 the Venetians learned that the Portuguese had opened up a sea
route to India, by sailing around the southern tip of Africa, a route
that would cut out Venice as the point of delivery of spices to North-
ern and Western Europe. It was, in the words of one contemporary,
Girolamo Priuli, "the worst news the Venetian Republic could ever
have had, excepting only the loss of our freedom."s This safer if
longer route between East and West came at a time when the Vene-
tians realized the Turks could hem them in on their own sea, the
Adriatic. Now began a decade of disaster.
Throughout the fifteenth century the Venetians had sought to pro-
vision themselves against the uncertainties of international trade by
creating a land empire in northern Italy; traditionally, the town of
Mestre on the Venetian lagoon had been their principal link to solid
land, to terra firma. The Venetians had taken over towns like
Verona, Vicenza, and Padua. Now, in the spring of 1509, they were
to lose them all in the space of a few weeks. The French and other
powers moved against them, and defeated the Venetians at Agna-
dello, near Lodi, on May 14, 1509; three weeks later Venetians
222 PLESH AND STONE
could hear the sounds of foreign armies three miles off on the terra
firma of the lagoon. Eclipsed at sea, threatened by infidels, confined
to their island-city, the result of these blows was a city feeling "a
sudden loss of equilibrium in the assessment of its own energies," in
the words of the modern historian Alberto Tenenti, "with a conse-
quent unsteadying of the subjective sense of time and space."9
It was at this moment that Jews began to flee into Venice. As a
result of the wars of the League of Cambrai in 1509, about five hun-
dred Jews fled from Padua and Mestre. The magnet city seemed to
offer them safety. Jews had come into northern Italy from Germany
after 1300, when severe pogroms in Germany had sent waves of
refuges to Padua and Verona, and a small number to Venice itself.
Ashkenazic Jews had lived in Venice from 1090, their numbers
increased after the Sephardic Jews were expelled from Spain in
1492. These medieval Jews were mostly poor: peddlers and dealers
in second-hand goods. The sole liberal profession open to them was
medicine; only a few of these pre-disaster Jews worked as money-
lenders, the banking in the city done mostly by Venetians and Chris-
tian foreigners. A sizable number of the Jews who fled to Venice
after the disaster of Agnadello had become rich through moneylend-
ing, however, and brought their diamonds, gold, and silver with
them. Moreover, a small but eminent group of Jewish doctors also
fled. These high-status Jewish moneylenders and doctors became
highly visible refugees, since their lives intersected more with Chris-
tians in the Venetian community.
2. THE WALLS OF THE GHETTO
Corrupt bodies
In the seven years from the disaster of Agnadello to the making
of the first Jewish Ghetto in Venice, hatred against the increased
presence of Jews combined with a campaign for the moral reform of
Venice itself, as though the city's defeats in the world came from
moral rot. Attacks against the Jews were led, among others, by Friar
Lovato of Padua. His oratorical energies in 1511 aroused the Vene-
tians to destroy the homes ofJews living near the Campo San Paolo;
twO years earlier he had advocated seizing all the money of the
moneylenders, "and leave them nothing to live on."1O At the same
time, the historian Felix Gilbert writes, "the view that moral corrup-
Fear 0/ Touching 223
tion was the decisive reason for the decline of Venetian power was
expressed nOt only by private citizens but was an officially held and
recognized thesis." 11
Se.nsuality was a crucial element in the image of Venice in Europe,
and tn the Venetians' sense of themselves. The facades of the great
palaces along the Grand Canal were richly ornamented, light
reflecting their colors Onto the rippling water; the buildings were
diverse facades but roughly uniform in height so that they composed
an unbroken street wall of ornamented color. The canal itself was
filled with gondolas which in the Renaissance were often painted in
vivid reds, yellows, and blues, rather than the later obligatory black,
and hung with tapestries and flags woven of gold and silver threads.
Christian strictures on bodily pleasure had relaxed in the days of
Venetian affluence. There was a flourishing homosexual subculture
devoted to cross-dressing, young men lounging in gondolas on the
canals wearing nothing but women's jewels. The spice trade also con-
tributed to the image of a sensual city, since spices like saffron and
tumeric were thought to be aphrodisiacs for the human body as well
as seasonings reviving wilted, stale, or rotted food. Most of all, pros-
titution flourished in the port.
The work of the prostitutes spread a new and terrible disease,
syphilis, which appeared in Italy in 1494. Almost from the moment
it appeared, syphilis destroyed large numbers of people, both men
and women. It had no certain name, diagnosis, or treatment-syphi-
lis was recognized to be sexually transmitted, but the physiology of
the transfer seemed mysterious. By the 1530s, as the historian Anna
Foa points out, Europeans had decided that the appearance of syphi-
lis in the Old World had something to do with the conquest of the
New World, and blamed the origins of the disease on the American
Indians, using Col urn bus's voyages as an historical touchstone. 12 But
in the generation before, the more prevalent explanation held that
Jews spread syphilis throughout Europe when they were driven from
Spain in the crucial year 1494.
The bodies of Jews appeared to harbor a myriad of diseases due to
their religious practices. Sigismondo de'Contida Foligno connected
syphilis to Judaism via the proneness of Jews to leprosy, a link he
made sometime before 1512 as follows: first, "the Jews, because they
abstain from pork, are subject to leprosy more than other peoples";
second, "Sacred Scripture ... makes clear that leprosy was a sign
that revealed an even more vile incontinence: in fact, it began to
manifest itself in the genitals"; ergo, "this illness [syphilis] derived
224 FLESH AND STONE
. .. from the Marrani," the Jews expelled from Spain. 13 The confla-
tion of syphilis with leprosy in such explanations had an importance
to this first generation of victims not apparent to us. Since it was
thought that leprosy spread when a person touched the sores of a
leper, contracting syphilis could occur not only by sleeping with a
prostitute: you might also get it by touching the body of aJew.
On March 13, 1512, the Venetian Senate, at the behest of Giovanni
Sanuto, voted in a decree whose aim was "to placate the anger of our
Lord" by preventing "immoderate and excessive expenditure." The
decree defined moral reform in terms of a new bodily discipline. The
decree of 1512 sought to put an end to the overt display of sensual-
ity: jewelry was regulated for both men and women; "transparent
materials were forbidden and lace could not be used [by women).
Men were forbidden attire which would increase physical attrac-
tiveness. Shirts should cover the entire upper part of the body and
close neatly around the neck."14
Fifteen years before the Venetians enacted their laws against sen-
suality, the monk Girolamo Savonarola had led a similar campaign
against "vanities" in Florence, after that city had also been defeated
by a foreign power in 1494. In Florence, as later in Venice, "inglori-
ous defeat and inexplicable reversal were necessarily seen as signs of
God's displeasure."15 Like Sanuto, Savonarola had also called for a
stricter code of sexual behavior and a renunciation of jewels, per-
fumes, and silk clothes in order to restore the city's fortunes. How-
ever, Savonarola's attack on the sensuous body was meant as a
recovery of the supposedly severe virtues of the early Florentine
Republic; the Venetian revulsion against the sensual body could not
be framed in the same terms. It was a city whose fortunes were too
bound to pleasure; moreover, many of the diseased bodies in Venice
were heathens and infidels who could never have a place in a Chris-
tian community.
The Venetian attack against the Jews intercwined with this revul-
sion against bodily sensuality. Syphilis was one focus of the attack,
but the ways Jews made money also focused discussion and decision.
Jews made money through usury, and usury had a direct connection
to bodily vice.
As practiced in Venice from the cwelfth century on, usury con-
sisted in lending money at rates from 15 to 20 percent, which was
less on the whole than rates charged in late medieval Paris. Usury
Fear of Touching
225
contrasted to an honorable loan, which had a lower and also a vari-
able rate of interest. More, an honorable loan was one in which the
lender would not collect on the security offered for the loan, if it
w o ~ l d destroy the borrower; instead, as in modern bankruptcies, col-
lecting on a bad loan meant renegotiating the relations becween cred-
itor and debtor in future dealings.
Usury appeared to medieval Christians as a "theft of time." An
even more ancient charge was made against usury: its connection to
sex. In the Politics, Aristotle had condemned usury as a "gain out of
money itself," as though money could breed like an animal. 16 "Dur-
ing the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries," the sociologist Benja-
min Nelson writes, the definition of usury "took its shape from the
analogy of the prostitute in the brothel."I ' A contemporary of
Shakespeare's declared, in The Seven Deadly Sins of London, that "The
usurer lives by the lechery of money, and is bawd to his own bags."I B
The Jews who lent money were all thought to engage in usury, and
therefore to be like prostitutes; another Christian critic of the J ews
wrote that the usurer "puts his money to the unnatural act of genera-
tion. "19 Moreover, the sinful practice of usury among Jews could not
be cleansed through confession. In Venice, this economic stereotype
now co-existed with the official effort to purify the bodies of Vene-
tians and so recover the fortunes of the city-state.
The refugee doctors in Venice provoked Christians in the ci ty in
an even more direct way. Touch is a bodily experience deeply
encoded in Christian culture. ''The image of touch, from Eve touch-
ing Adam ... through the seduction of Bathsheba or the healing
touch of Christ's ministry that cleanses Mary Magdalene," asserts the
historian Sander Gilman, "haunts all of the representations of biblical
images of sexuality."2o For St. Thomas, the sense of touch was the
most base of all the body's sensations.
21
If the touch of Jews seemed
like a physical, sexual infection, as Jews became associated in the
public mind with the spread of syphilis, Jewish doctors were also
called on to treat the disease. The race of the doctor became in the
public mind inseparable from the taint of the disease itself. In 1520
Paracelsus railed against these Jews who "purge [syphiliticsJ, smear
them, wash them, and perform all manner of impious deceptions";
again in their impurity Jews were associated with the leper's touch:
''The Jews were more subject to [leprosy) than any other people ...
because they had neither linen, nor domestic baths. These people
were so negligent of cleanliness and the decencies of life that their
legislators were obliged to make a law to compel them even to wash
226
FLESH AND STONE
A Jewish doctOr Qutfitted {Q treat victims of plague. The c o ~ t u m e protects
him from plague vapors, protects other people from his bteath, and
emphasizes his inhuman qualities .. From Grevembroch, Customs of the
Venccians; Museo Civico Correr, Venice.
h
. h d ,, 22 Such were the risks of being treated by a Jewish doc-
t elr an s. d h d' d
tor, a man constantly exposed to sexual diseases, a Dctor w 0 1
not wash his hands except when ordered. ....
The study of religious prejudice is not an exerCIse In ratlonahty.
The desire for purity, the anthropologist Mary Douglas has wntten,
Fear of Touching 227
expresses a society's fears; in particular, the self-loathing a group may
feel can "migrate" to become attached to a group which represents
the impure
H
Such a migration occurred in Venice after Agnadello.
The Venetians believed they were threatened by sensual decline,
and displaced their self-loathing onto the Jews.
This displacement also had a class character-as Renaissance Ven-
ice defined the classes. The city was divided into three groups: aristo-
crats (nobili); rich bourgeois (cittadini); and common people
(pop,,/ani). The war on sensuality aimed at the nobili, who accounted
for about 5 percent of the population, and some of the children of
the cittadini, who accounted for another 5 percent in 1500, out of a
total population of about 120,000. Resentment of luxury and resent-
ment of aristocracy were inseparable: the immorality of the idle rich
had brought God's wrath down upon the industrious city. The Jews
of Venice at this time numbered between 1,500 and 2,000 at most.
Thus the purge focused on small groups of people at the top and an
ambiguous small element at the bottom; though the Jewish usurers
and doctors were economically and practically significant, culturally
they lay beneath the mass of the Christian populani. As often hap-
pens in purges, minorities became symbolically more populous and
more visible than their actual numbers.
This symbolic visibility caused an explosion on Good Friday, April
6, 1515. The Lenten season was usually a time when Jews kept out
of sight. This Good Friday, a doubly mournful occasion because of
Venetian defeats, a few Jews among the small minority in the city
did venture out. It seemed to one Venetian that "since yesterday
they are everywhere, and it's a terrible thing; and no one says any-
thing because, due to the war, [the Jews} are needed, and so they do
as they please."24 There were immediate calls for confiscation of]ew-
ish property, to pay for a new military campaign, or for the expulsion
of the Jews from the city. Yet the Jews could not be driven away.
Economic self-interest could not permit it. In the words of a leading
citizen, 'Jews are even more necessary to a city than bankers are, and
especially to this one.,,25 Even poor Jews were necessary to the city,
for instance, the Jews who dealt in second-hand goods. (In 1515 the
government officially licensed nine such Jewish shops.) All Jews paid
high taxes.
Given the practical necessity, Venice sought a spatial solution to
deal with its impure but necessary Jewish bodies. It opted, in the
words of the historian Brian Pullan, fot "the segregation, though not
the expulsion, of the Jewish community.,,26 Purity of the mass would
be guaranteed by isolation of the minority. One of the great themes
228
FLESH AND STONE
of modern urban society thus first appeared. The "city" would stand
for a legal, economic, and social entity toO large and various to bind
people together. "Community" of an emotionally intense sort would
require division of the city. The Venetians acted on this divisive
desire for community by availing themselves of their own watery
geography.
The urban condom
The Jews were not the first group of outsiders that the Venetians
shut away in a prophylactic space; Greeks, Turks, and other ethnic
groups were also segregated. Perhaps the least controversial of the
outsiders segregated before were the Germans, who were, after all,
fellow Christians. The link berween Germany and Venice was appar-
ent to Shakespeare in England, who has Shylock burst out at one
point in The Merchant o/Venice, "A diamond gone [that} cost me rwo
thousand ducats in Frankfurt."27
By Shakespeare's time, trade with Germans had become of great
importance to Venice. The Germans came to Venice to sell, as well
as to buy. In 1314, the Venetians decided they would make sure
that the Germans paid their taxes by concentrating them all in one
building; here the Germans registered themselves and their goods,
and were meant both to live and work. This building was the Fondaco
dei Tedeschi-the "Factory of the Germans." The original Fondaco
dei Tedeschi was a medieval house writ large, with the further condi-
tion that all its inhabitants be German. As a building, it provided the
model for later, more repressive spatial forms of segregation.
In its early form, the Fondaco served as a reception center for
distinguished foreigners in addition to resident Germans. But in
principle no one was supposed to leave it after dark; in fact night-
time proved the busiest part of the day for the Germans, who smug-
gled goods in and out under cover of darkness to avoid paying cus-
toms. In 1479, the government therefore took steps to ensure that
this place of segregation became a building of isolation; it was
decreed that at dusk the windows were to be shut and the doors to
the Fondaco locked-from the outside.
Within, the building also became a repressive space, the Germans
constantly under the watchful eyes of the Venetians. "Everything was
The locatio n of fore igners in Venice, ca. 1600.
,
,
,
,
w ------ ,
~ ,
<
z
w
~
" <
.>
..
@ z
c.
o
..
<.>
<.>
Co
()
"
,
'"
anV"lVHJ
u
u
230
FLESH AND STONE
The area around the Rialta Bridge in Venice; the large square building
was the Fondaco dei Tedeschi in the Renaissance.
arranged for them," says the historian Hugh Honour. "All the ser-
vants and higher functionaries were appointed by the State. The
merchants were allowed to transact business only with born Vene-
tians and only through the brokers who were allotted to them and
who took a percentage on every deal."28 The German Fondaco that
exists today in Venice was built in 1505. It is an enormous building,
and testified to the wealth of the Germans, yet in its very form
refined the principles of concentration and isolation which had
shaped the use of the older Fondaco. The new Fondaco dei Tedeschi,
which today serves Venice as a post office, is a squat, uniform build-
ing built around a central court; open galleries ran around this court-
yard at each story, and were policed by the Venetians, who could
thus practice surveillance day and night of their northern "guests."
These Germans, of course, were Christian. Their surveillance
began as a matter of pure economics. I n the decades after the disaster
of the League of Cambrai wars, however, the Venetians as good
Catholics were first becoming aware of the great tide of Reformation
caking place in Germany and in other lands to the north; and so the
city's control over its German merchants began to shift from a purely
Fear 0/ Touching
231
commercial basis to a cultural one as well. At this point, images of
the body intruded. The authorities wanted to halt the "infection" of
the Reformation, its heresies perceived as forms of self-indulgence,
free of the priests, leading to sins like sloth and luxury. The
Reformed German moved closer in the Catholic imagination to the
Jew
29
Until 1531 some few Germans, usually the very wealthiest,
could buy their way out of the Fondaco dei Tedeschi. In 1531 the
city ordered all Germans to live together in the Fondaco, once and
for all, and added spies to the guards in their midst to detect signs of
religious heresy.
As a consequence of segregation, herded together, isolated, these
foreigners began to feel a bond amongst themselves. They acted
cohesively in their dealings with the Italians, even though in fact
there were sharp divisions between the Protestants and the Catholics
in the building. The space of repression became incorporated into
their own sense of community. This was the future which awaited
the Jews.
In 1515 the Venetians started to explore the possibility of using the
Ghetto Nuovo as a site for segregating Jews. Ghetto originally meant
"foundry" in Italian (from gettare, "to pour"). The Ghetto Vecchio
and Ghetto Nuovo served as the old foundry districts of Venice, far
from the ceremonial center of the city; their manufacturing functions
had shifted by 1500 to the Arsenal. The Ghetto Nuovo was a rhom-
boid piece of land surrounded on all sides by water; buildings created
a wall all around its edges with an open space in the center. Only two
bridges connected it to the rest of the urban fabric. With these brid-
ges closed, the Ghetto Nuovo could be sealed up.
At the time the Ghetto Nuovo was transformed, the city's "streets,
squares, and courtyards were nOt covered, as they are now, with the
uniform paving of rectangular blocks of volcanic trachyte. Many
streets and courtyards had no hard surface at all. ... Often only the
parts of squares adjoining particular buildings were paved."3o During
the century before the Ghetto Nuovo enclosed the Jews, the city
began to form steep banks to line the sides of the canals. These banks
encouraged the rapid flow of water, and so kept the canals from silt-
ing up. The built-up banks then made it possible to place paths
alongside the canals, a water-and-Iand form called a/ondamente. The
Cannaregio area of Venice was regularized in such a way, and it was
near this area that the Ghetto Nuovo and Ghetto Vecchio were
232
FLESH AND STONE
o 50 19oM.
~ ' - - - - - - - - ~ ' ~ - - - - - - ~ '
Plan of the Venetian Ghettos: (1) Italian temple, (2) Cantonese temple,
(3) German temple, (4) Levantine temple, (5) Spanish or Pnentina temple.
located. The twO Ghettos, abandoned for industry and lightly popu-
lated, were not part of this renovation; they were both physical and
economic islands within the city. The few bridges that connected
these inner islands to other landmasses debouched in an ancient
Venetian urban form, the sottoportegho. The sottoportegho was a pas-
Fear 0/ Touching 233
Entrance to the Ghetto Nuovo in Venice. Copyright Graziano Arici. All
rights reserved.
sageway made under a building, low and dank, since the passageway
lay at the same level as the pilings and foundation stones which sup-
ported the buildings above. At the end of the sottoporti were locked
doors. It was a scene far, far removed from rich boys dressed only in
jewels gliding past the Ca D'Oro on the Grand Canal.
The proposal to make use of the Ghetto Nuovo came from Zaca-
ria Dolfin in 1515. His plan for the segregation of the Jews was to
Send all of them to live in the Ghetto Nuovo which is like a castle,
and to make drawbridges and close it with a wall; they should have
234 FLESH AND STONE
only one gate, which would enclose them there and they would Stay
there, and (Wo boars of the Council of Ten would go and sray there at
night, at their expense, for their greater securiry. 31
This proposal contains one key difference from the conception of
segregation built into the Fondaco dei Tedeschi: in the Jewish
Ghetto there was to be no internal surveillance. External surveillance
would take place from the boats, circling the Ghetto throughout the
night. Imprisoned inside, the Jews were to be left to themselves, an
abandoned people.
Dolfin's proposal was put into practice beginning in 1516. Jews
were moved into the Ghetto Nuovo from all sections of the city, but
particularly from the Giudecca, where Jews had congregated since
1090. Not all Jews, however. When the Sephardic Jews were
expelled from Spain in 1492, a group came to live in a little colony
in Venice near a burial ground for executed criminals. There they
remained, as did Levantine Jews in other parts of the city, who
passed in and out of Venice from the Adriatic coaSt and the Middle
East. Moreover, an important part of the story of the Ghetto is that
many Venetian Jews, when faced with the prospect of living in the
Ghetto, left the city instead.
About seven hundred Jews, mostly Ashkenazim, were first sent
into the Ghetto in 1516. The original annexation in the Ghetto was
rwenty houses only. These were owned by Christians, since Jews in
Venice, as elsewhere, were denied the right to own land or buildings;
they could only rent from year to year. As more houses were reno-
vated, rents sky-rocketed; Brian Pullan says that rent on "the narrow
houses in the Ghetto was three times as high as it would have been
on similar cramped accommodation in the Christian city."32 The
buildings were gradually added to, reaching six or seven stories in
height, listing to the sides since their weight was not well supported
by piles in the substrate.
The drawbridges opened in the morning and some Jews fanned
out into the city, mostly around the area of the Rialto where they
circulated with the ordinary crowd. Christians came into the Ghetto
to borrow money or to sell food and do business. At dusk, all the
Jews were obliged to be back in the Ghetto, the Christians to be out;
the drawbridges were raised. Moreover, the windows fronting the
exterior were shut every eve"ing and all balconies removed from
them, so that the buildings facing the canals outside became like the
sheer walls of a castle.
Fear 0/ Touching 235
I
, -, ' ...
'TI " ,. _ .
t =' ~
Jif i :m ~ :J !
. '
The Ghetto Nuovo in Venice. Copyright Graziallo Arici. All rights mm',d.
This was the first stage of segregating the Jews. The second stage
involved expanding the Jewish quarter to the Ghetto Vecchio, the
old foundry district. This occurred in 1541. By this time, the Vene-
tians were hurting even more financially; their customs tariffs had
become higher than other cities and they were losing trade. The long
rwilight of the Venetian Republic, so feared since the discovery of
another route to the Far East, had begun. The Venetian authorities
decided in the 1520s to lower their customs barriers, and one result
was that Levantine Jews, mostly from what is now Romania and
Syria, stayed longer in the city. They were slightly more than travel-
ling peddlers and slightly less than bourgeois businessmen; they
hawked whatever they could lay their hands on. Sanuto put crisply
the attitude of his fellow Venetians toward such Jewish dealers: "Our
COuntrymen have never wanted Jews to keep shops and to trade in
this city, but to buy and sell and go away again."33 But now these
Jews did not go away; they wanted to stay and were willing to pay a
price for it.
To house them, the old Ghetto was transformed into a Jewish
space, its outer wall s sealed, its balconies removed. Unlike the first,
this second Ghetto had a small open square and many small streets,
236 FLESH AND STONE
a squalid turf entirely unpaved, the piles so carelessly driven into
the substrate that the buildings of the Old Ghetto began to sink the
moment they were constructed. A century later, a third Ghetto
space, the Ghetto Nuovissimo, was opened in 1633, a smaller plot
of land with somewhat better housing stock, which was again treated
to the castle-and-moat process of walling in. When the third Ghetto
was filled with people, the population densities were about triple
those of Venice as a whole. Because of these physical conditions,
plague found a welcome home in the Ghetto. The Jews sought to
protect themselves by recourse to their own doctors, but medical
knowledge could nOt combat the condition of soil and buildings, as
well as the ever-mounting density of population. When plague struck
in the Ghetto, the gates of the Ghetto were instead locked for most
of the day as well as night.
No attempt was made to alter the behavior of Jews after forcing
them into the Venetian Ghettos, for there was no desire to reclaim
the Jew for the city. In this, the Ghetto of Venice embodied a differ-
ent ethos of isolation from the ethos practiced shortly afterward in
Renaissance Rome, in the Roman Ghetto Pope Paul IV began to
build in 1555. The Roman Ghetto was indeed meant to be a space
to transform the Jews. Paul IV proposed closing up all the Jews
together in one place in order that Christian priests could systemati-
cally convert them, house by house, forcing the Jews to listen to
Christ's word. The Roman Ghetto was a miserable failure in this,
only rwenty or so Jews a year out of a population of four thousand
inhabitants succumbing to conversion.
Moreover, the Roman Ghetto differed from the Venetian in that
it occupied a highly visible place in the center of the city. Its walls
cut into rwo a commercial zone previously controlled by prominent
Roman commercial families, who in turn traded with the resident
community of Jews. In taking over the space of the Roman Ghetto
for conversion, the Pope sought to weaken the spatial grip of this
old Christian merchant class on Roman affairs. To be sure, Rome at
this time was more insular than Venice, despite the presence of the
papacy; it contained many fewer foreigners, and the strangers who
came to the Papal Court were clerics, ambassadors, or other diplo-
mats. Venice was a different kind of international city, suffused with
dubious foreigners.
A moralizing force sure of itself will challenge and transform
moral "filth," as did the Roman papacy. A society profoundly uncer-
tain of itself, as at this moment Venice was, fears that it lacks powers
Fear 0/ Touching 237
of resistance. It fears it may succumb when it mixes physically with
the Other. Infection and seduction are inseparable. The Venetian
moralists after Agnadello feared that a city of many thousand would
succumb by contact with a few hundred; the moralists spoke of the
Jews with their bags of money and the boys gliding naked on the
canals in the same breath, or of usury as tinged with the allures of
prostitution. The Venetian language in which touch seems fatal reso-
nates with some of the same moral undertow as modern rhetoric
about AIDS, in which seduction and infection also seem inseparable.
In turn, the Ghetto represented something like an urban condom.
The discourse on usury connected whores and Jews. What the fear
of touching Jews meant for the Jews themselves appeared in the dif-
ferences, however, berween these rwo groups of despised bodies in
Venice.
Jews and courtesans
On October 31,1501, the Duke of Valentino threw a notorious
sex party in the Vatican, which Pope Alexander VI attended:
In the evening a supper was given in the Duke of Valentino's apart-
ment in the Apostolic palace, with fifty respectable prostitutes, called
courtesans, in attendance. After supper they danced with the servants
and others present, at first in their clothes and then naked. Later can-
delabra with lighted candles were taken from the tables and put on
the floor and chestnuts were scattered around them. The prostitutes
crawled naked on their hands and knees berween the candelabra, pick-
ing up the chestnuts. The Pope, the Duke, and his sister Donna
Lucrezia. were all present to watch. Finally prizes of silk doublets,
shoes, hats and other clothes were offered to the men who copulated
with the greatest number of prostitutes. According to those who were
present, this performance duly took place in the public hall (that is,
the Sala Regia, used for public consistories}. 34
The Pope's presence at such a lascivious affair may surprise the mod-
ern reader, but the papacy was a worldly society, staffed by many
high officials who had not taken holy vows. In this world, what did it
mean for a courtesan to be a "respectable prostitute"?
The word "courtesan" came into use in the late 1400s as the femi-
nine form of "courtiec"-in Italian usage, these women were the cor-
tigiane who provided pleasure for the cortigaiani, the men who were
the nobles, soldiers, administrators, and hangers-on populating the
238 FLESH AND STONE
A Venetian counesan. From GrN.lembroch, Cuswms of the Venetians;
MlIseo Civico Correr, Venice.
Renaissance courts. The court was a political scene, its dinners,
receptions of ambassadors, and meetings serious occasions. The
courtesan provided men relief from this official world.
Girls who entered into prostitution of any sort did so at about the
age of fourteen. Aretino wrote of a young girl saying, "I learned in a
month all that there is to know about prostitution: how to rouse
passion, to attract men, to lead them on, and how to plant a lover.
How to cry when I wanted to laugh, and how to laugh when I felt
Fear 0/ Touching 239
like weeping. And how to sell my virginity over and over again."35
Becoming a courtesan took longer. It meant establishing a network
of high-class clients, learning the gossip of the city and the court with
which to amuse them, the acquisition of a house and clothes which
would be pleasing to them.
Unlike the geisha system in Japan, where the sociable arts were
codified into strict rituals taught and passed down from generation
to generation, as a lawyer might receive training, the Renaissance
prostitute who hoped to become a courtesan had to create herself.
In this her problem was a bit like that of the male courtier, who had
need of such books of behavior as Castiglione's Book 0/ the Courtier
which showed a man how to navigate in a cosmopolitan setting.
Many scurrilous books purported to give the courtesan similar
instruction, but her real education came through learning by obser-
vation to imitate upper-class women, to dress, talk, and write like
them.
In learning "to pass," the courtesan posed a peculiar problem: if
successful, she had donned a disguise and could go anywhere. It was
not so much that she could pass among virtuous women as that she
could replace them, looking and sounding like them yet also serving
as sensual companion to their men. It was for this reason that the
courtesan was seen as a special threat, the threat of a lewd woman
who seemed just like any other. In a proclamation issued in 1543,
the Venetian government declared that prostitutes appear "in the
streets and churches, and elsewhere, so much bejewelled and well-
dressed, that very often noble ladies and women citizens, because
there is no difference in their attire from that of the above-said
women, are confused with them, not only by foreigners, but by the
inhabitants of Venice, who are unable to tell the good from the
bad .... "36
By Shakespeare' s time, Venice had for centuries contained a large
cadre of prostitutes who lived off the trade of visiting sailors and
traders. Indeed, the sheer volume of money trading hands in the
Venetian "sex industry" during the Renaissance gradually meant that
it became "a legitimate source of profit for noble entrepreneurs of
good family."37 Because Venice was a port city, power and sex were
differently related than in Rome. Given a morally minded Pope,
courtesans could be instantly and effectively banished from court
functions. As much of the population of Venice was constantly com-
ing and going, foreign men far from their licit beds, the port toler-
ated prostitutes as part of its economy, JUSt as it tolerated Jews who
240 FLESH AND STONE
loaned money. Trade furnished a steady, flush clientele; the possibil-
ity glittered before any young prostitute of becoming a courtesan.
Faced with this possibility, the city attempted to treat prostitutes
the same way it treated other alien bodies: by segregating them.
Moreover, the city sought to draw a special connection between
prostitutes and Jews, by making them both wear yellow clothing or
badges. Wearing special clothes as such did not set the two groups
apart, for everyone in the city wore a uniform of some sort to indi-
cate their standing or their profession; but only prostitutes and Jews
wore this particular color. Jews in Venice were first required to wear
a yellow badge in 1397; prostitutes and pimps in 1416 were ordered
to wear yellow scarves. Jewish women seldom left the Ghetto wear-
ing any of their ornaments or jewels, and so were remarkable in the
city for being plainly dressed as well as dressed with something yel-
low. The authorities sought to mark out prostitutes in the same way.
A decree of 1543 defined those aspects of a virtuous woman's
appearance which a prostitute could not adopt: ''Therefore it is pro-
claimed that no prostitute may wear, nor have on any part of her
person, gold, silver, or silk, nor wear necklaces, pearls or jewelled
or plain rings, either in their ears or on their hands. "38
The part of this decree prohibiting earrings was more significant
than it might first seem. "Only one group of women regularly
encountered on the streets of northern Italian cities adorned their
ears with rings," Diane Owen Hughes writes; "these were Jews."39
In the time before Jews were segregated into Ghettos, the earring
was a way to mark the presence of aJewish woman on the street, her
pierced ears like a circumcision mark. Some places legally treated
Jewish women as whores, but other cities simply obliged the wearing
of earrings, for "although it was a . .. less obviously degrading sign,
the earring might also convey notions of sexual impurity . . . . Ear-
rings tempted."40 They marked a lascivious body. In forbidding the
earring, the Venetians chose to repress the sexual body, but paid the
price of not knowing who were the impure women on their streets.
To confine prostitutes in place, the Venetians had first thought to
introduce something like state-run brothels, and purchased twO
houses for this purpose. But the prostitutes found it more lucrative
to work privately through pimps who recruited clients throughout
the city and provided rooms or created anonymous brothels that
escaped the state's vigilance; these illegal places for illicit sex could
evade the state's proposed taxes, to be carefully calculated on each
sexual transaction. The plan for the state-run brothels came to noth-
Fear 0/ Touching 241
ing, but the desire to confine prostitutes continued. A law was passed
to forbid prostitutes from establishing themselves along the Grand
Canal, a position in the city they could afford thanks to their lucra-
tive earnings; this only meant they spent their money to infiltrate
other respectable areas. In the same way, the dress codes failed.
Edicts forbade prostitutes to dress using white silk, a fabric meant
only for unmarried young ladies and certain kinds of nuns, or again
adorning their hands with the rings of married women. However,
just as the courtesans overran their geographic legal boundaries,
their bodies continued to "pass."
For all these reasons, the courtesans had nothing to gain by being
isolated or marked, and so resisted segregation with every means at
their disposal. The Jews, on the other hand, faced a more compli-
cated reality.
3. A SHIELD BUT NOT A SWORD
Qadosh
Dolfin's concluding words when he first proposed making the
Ghetto into a Jewish space were, "two boats of the Council of Ten
would go and stay there at night, at their expense, for their greater
security."41 The last phrase indicates one interest the Jews had in
submitting to this form of isolation. In exchange for segregated isola-
tion the Jews gained their bodily security, within the walls of the
Ghetto. The police boats protected them on occasions when mobs
came shouting to the Ghettos, occasions which arose annually at Lent
when the Christian populace was reminded of the old myth that Jews
had killed Christ. In its dealings with all the foreign communities,
the city-state was willing to prosecute violent Venetians so long as
the foreigners were in their own quarters. Geography also gave a
guarantee to the Jews. The isolated space protected them in 1534,
for example, when the Jews were subject to one such wave of attacks
during Lent; the bridges were drawn up, the windows closed, and
the crowds of Christian zealots couldn't get at them.
While the state had nothing to offer the courresan in exchange for
wearing the yellow scarf, it offered something more precious than
security to the Jew for entering the Ghetto. In the Ghetto, the city
allowed Jews to build synagogues. For much of Jewish history, those
who followed the faith met in homes, somewhat as did early Chris-
242 FLESH AND STONE
tians. The Jews never truly possessed their synagogues, since they
could not own the land; they occupied and made holy the places
secured for them by favor of a city's local ruler. The Venice GhettO
offered the Jews the chance to make synagogues binding institutions
within a closed community, protected by a Christian city-state. Fra-
ternal organizations used the synagogue for supervision of the daily
lives of people within the closed community. The GhettO soon
became the site for synagogues representing the different confes-
sional groups of Sephardim and Ashkenazim. By the Middle Ages,
synagogues were in rwo ways more like Islamic mosques than Chris-
tian churches. First, "most synagogues and all mosques since about
the late eighth century ... prohibited human imagery."" Second,
like the mosque, synagogues separated male and female bodies. In
the synagogue of the Scuola Grande Tedesca, for instance, women
sat in an oval gallery running around the entire second-stOry level, an
arrangement that brought them visually close to all the male activity
happening on the floor. This religious space became also a space of
licit sensuality for the female body. An English visitOr of Shake-
speare's time, Thomas Coryat, wrote of the scene in the gallery:
1 saw many Jewish women, whereof some were as beautiful as ever I
saw, and so gorgeous in their apparel, chaines of gold, and rings
adorned with precious stones, that some of our English Countesses do
scarce exceede them, having marvailous long [rrunes like Princesses
that are borne up by waiting women serving for the same purpose.
43
Such a display of wealth would have been a gross provocation out-
side the Ghetto, activating all the Christian stereotypes abourJewish
greed. In Renaissance Venice this would have been particularly an
affront, as so much official energy was bent toward repressing sen-
sual display by alien bodies, whether among ethnic groups or courte-
sans. But here, in the protected space of the GhettO, a class of
despised women could take pride in their appearance.
Qadosh is a fundamental word in Hebrew. As Kenneth StOw
remarks, Qadosh "literally means separate, or separated. This is its
original, biblical sense." In a way, this indicated that Jewish tradition
seldom aimed at conversion of other peoples to Judaism. The more
consequent meaning of the word encompasses holiness. "The link
with godliness is in Leviticus: 'You shall be Qedoshim, for I, the Lord,
your God, am Qadosh.' "44 The meanings of Qadosh can also combine
something like the Church Latin meanings of sane/lis and sacer, "holy"
Fear of TOllehing
243
The interior of the Scuol. Grande Tedesca in Venice. Copyright Graziano
Arm. All rtghts resertled.
and "accursed." One way to understand what the presence of syna-
gogues in the Venetian GhettO meant to Jews was an accursed space
became a holy place
4
'
For Venetian Jews, this meant a more complex religious environ-
ment than they had known as cells of J ews dispersed in the city. The
244
FLESH AND STONE
strands of Renaissance Judaism were woven of very different social
materials; Ashkenazic Jews and Sephardic Jews came from different
cultural backgrounds. Hebrew constituted a shared formal language,
but in daily life the Sephardim spoke Ladino, a language combining
Spanish and some Arabic with Hebrew. In the Ghetto diverse Jews
were constrained in the same dense, bounded space; this reinforced
the single characteristic they shared, that of "being Jewish," just as in
the Fondaco dei Tedeschi, religious differences were replaced by
being all "German."
The spatial forging of this identity appeared in quite concrete
ways, large and small. The different kinds of Jews cooperated to pro-
tect their interests, and evolved forms of collective representation so
that they spoke as "Jews" to the outside world; in the Venetian
Ghetto, as shortly afterward in the Roman Ghetto, the Jews formed
fraternal organizations, which met in the synagogues but dealt with
purely secular matters concerning the Ghetto. In Venice, the spice
economy of the city at large refracted to produced a distinctive cul-
ture of the Ghetto. Traditionally, ordinary Jewish prayers and reli-
gious study in the late Middle Ages occurred in the morning. The
advent of coffee, readily available in the city, was greeted by the Jews
as a way to make particular use of their spatial segregation. They
drank it as a stimulus to stay up at night, during the hours they were
incarcerated in the Ghetto; these now became the ordinary hours of
prayer and study46
Separation protected, separation welded an oppressed community
together; separation also turned the oppressed inward in new ways.
In the words of one historian, "the Jew whose work took him out of
the ghetto and among Gentiles for the day or the week felt as if he
were leaving his natural environment and entering a strange
world."47 By the end of the sixteenth century, rabbinic courts began
to forbid dancing berween Jewish women and Christian men; the
fear of voluntary conversion grew to almost obsessive proportions in
these courts, though the incidence of voluntary conversion remained
very low, on the scale first indicated in Rome fifty years before. In
this, the growth of ghettoized communities coincided with an
exhaustion of everyday Jewish thinking about the relation of the reli-
gion to the world around it. Old medieval distinctions about the
absolute separation of Judaism from all other "nations" were revived
in the age of the ghetto, whereas in the early Renaissance there had
been an exploration of the doctrinal margins berween Judaism and
Christianity. The Christian became simply an alien Other. The mod-
Fear 0/ Touching 245
ern scholar Jacob Katz argues that this everyday "indifference of
Judaism to Christianity is all the more astonishing, in that profound
changes had occurred in Western Christendom with the Reforma-
tion, which presented an opportunity for a restatement of the Jewish
position vis-it-vis the Christianity so transformed."48
This is a harsh judgment, however, and nOt entirely accurate. It
would be more fair to say that isolation in space now became part of
the problem defining what it meant to "be Jewish." The geography
of identity puzzled one of the most famous Jews of the Renaissance.
Leon (Judah Aryeh) Modena, who lived from 1571 to 1648, was a
scribe, a poet, a rabbi, a musician, a political leader, a scholar of
Latin, Greek, French, English, and, surprisingly, a compulsive gam-
bler; his autobiography's title The Life 0/ Judah is a play on words,
since gambling was supposed to be the sin of Judah. Born outside
the city, Modena came to Venice in 1590, when he was nineteen
years old; three years later, and now married, he decided to become
a rabbi. It took him nearly rwenty years to achieve this aim. His
life during those rwenty years was unsettled; he wrote a great deal,
travelling from place to place, but felt uncomfortable. The quintes-
sential Wandering Jew, it was only when he entered the closed world
of the Venetian Ghetto, surrounded by Jews of every sort leading an
active public life, that Modena began to feel at peace with himself.
When in 1609 he was finally ordained in Venice, his life took on an
intensely local character. As a rabbi, he attended the synagogue three
times a day "to lead the service, to recite prayers for the sick and the
dead, to preach every Sabbath morning before the Torah was
removed from the ark to be read, and to teach rwo or three laws
after it was read and returned to the ark Mondays and Thursdays."49
In the early seventeenth century, educated opinion among some
Christians did reach Out to the Jews not only in Italy but in Northern
Europe as well; the anti-Semitism of Martin Luther would be bal-
anced by Calvin's greater openness, or in England by open-minded
scholars like Lord Herbert of Cherbury. Leon Modena represented,
in turn, the disposition among educated Jews to participate in cul-
tural life beyond the boundaries of the Jewish community while
retaining their religious faith and practices. '0
Because of his intellectual gifts and his ceaseless writing, Modena's
sermons had become internationally famous, and he began to attract
Christians into the Ghetto to hear him speak. Modena's personal
gifts constituted a kind of test case as to how far an illustrious man
could break the isolation of the Ghetto. Throughout the 1620s his
246 FLESH AND STONE
reputation rose, to a summit in 1628 when he took control of the
Jewish musical academy (L'Accademia degl'Impediti) and gave perfor-
mances of Jewish choral music and Psalms in the Sephardic syna-
gogue. "The Christian nobility of Venice flocked to this spectacular
event," in the words of his most recent biographer, "and the authori-
ties had to intervene to control the crowds."51 However, those
Venetian Christians who did visit the Ghetto were rather like mod-
ern European tourists going to Harlem in New York, the visit a mat-
ter of voyeurism, the voyage to a forbidden culture. And Christians
like Paulo Scarpi who listened seriously to Jews like Leon Modena
paid a penalty; for Scarpi, it meant being denied a bisphoric because,
so he was accused, he had "consorted with Jews."
During the years of his fame, Modena appreciated the protections
of the Ghetto, approved the concentration of Jewish activities within
its walls, and thought through efforts like his own, the repressions
imposed on Jews could be eased. He was nOt alone in this last hope.
In the economic realm, Daniel Roderiga, a financial leader, struggled
against the restrictions confining Jews to the Venetian Ghetto. Rod-
eriga argued that the declining fortunes of Venice could be rescued
only by giving Jewish merchants more geographic freedom. In 1589,
he sought to establish a charter of Jewish rights whose first provision
was that Jewish merchants and their families could live anywhere in
the Venetian state, and whose second provision was that synagogues
could be built anywhere in Venice. The authorities denied the first
outright, and dealt with the second by bureaucratic evasion.
Roderiga's charter of economic rights of 1589 succeeded in other
provisions which brought Shylock's assertion of his rights at least
partially to life. The most important feature of the charter was the
granting of the right of free trade to all non-Turkish Venetians, and
the guarantee of the sanctity of contract to almost all Venetians. In
the words of the modern historian Benjamin Ravid, "the right to
engage in overseas trade with the Levant on the same terms as native
Venetians was a concession unprecedented in the commercial his-
tory of Venice. "52 That was Shylock's claim; foreign bur equal, his
condition as a Venetian. But it was an economic right, not a cultural
right.
The careers of famous men like Modena or Roderiga give a mis-
leading impression of the ordinary cultural relations berween the
Ghetto and the outside world. Even Leon Modena, who, as rhe mod-
ern historian Natalie Davis points out, "is discrepant from Shylock
on almost every page: a Jew who chances his money with thriftless
Fear 0/ Touching 247
abandon, who cries for revenge against Jewish slayers of his son, who
basks in Christian admiration," found the Ghetto to weigh ever more
heavily upon him as his life drew to its end.
53
The weight 0/ place
In 1637, after the publication of a magnum opus on Jewish rites,
Modena found the limits of his own value in the eyes of Christians.
He was hauled before the Venetian Inquisition in 1637, and only his
personal relations with the Grand Inquisitor saved him and his book,
which continued to be excoriated by lesser dignitaries of the Church.
Modena's book on Jewish ritual was a threat because it placed in the
overt, public realm of anthropology the Jewish religious and commu-
nal culture which had before been confined to the shadows of Chris-
tian fantasy. The attacks on his great book culminated a series of
events which had made clear to him, as his life drew to a close, the
terrible truth revealed by Brueghel's Landscape with the Fall 0/ [caruso
The culture of Christian community, that compassion and fine feel-
ing which Antonio and Bassanio exemplify in Shakespeare's play,
was inseparable from indifference to those who were different.
That dark knowledge forced itself upon Modena when a great
plague swept through Venice from 1629 to 1631. Despite Jewish
appeals during a crisis which affected all those who resided in the
city, the law of the Ghetto held firm: Jews could not move, even
temporarily, to a more hygienic place, and so those under Modena's
pastoral care suffered particularly from the ravages of the disease.
Five years later he had to reckon nOt merely with the indifference of
the Christians to sufferings ofJews, but with a more positive disposi-
tion to hurt the Jews, promoted by the very effects of segregating
his people.
By the mid-1630s, save for fragmented cOntacts among the elite,
the Jews in the Ghetto became enigmas to their Christian contempo-
raries, who no longer saw Jews routinely in their midst. The Ghetto
promoted fantasy about what the Jews were doing and how they
lived; rumor flourished unchecked. The Jewish body itself had from
the earliest times been thought of as a body of concealment. Circum-
cision, as we have seen in Chapter Four, was originally renounced by
early Christians in order to make all bodies equally susceptible to
conversion; by the Renaissance, circumcision was said (0 be a secret
practice of self-mutilation allied to other sexual sadistic practices the
Jews keep hidden from outsiders. Circumcision was associated "with
248 FLESH AND STONE
castration, the making of the Jew by unmanning him, by feminizing
him."H From this, late medieval writers like Thomas de Cantimpre
deduced that Jewish men menstruated, a "scientific fact" confirmed
by Franco da Piacenza in a catalogue of 'Jewish maladies" which
appeared in 1630. The space of the Ghetto reinforced such beliefs
about the Jewish body: behind the Ghetto's drawn bridges and
closed windows, its life shut off from the sun and the water, crime
and idolatry were thought to fester.
The fantasies surrounding concealment came to a head in March
1636, when goods stolen elsewhere in Venice were received and
hidden by a group of Jews in the Ghetto. The fantasy that all Jews
were engaged in a stolen-goods ring became in the course of two or
three days an unshakable conviction in the minds of the Venetian
public. From the stealing, other crimes were devised in the minds of
those beyond the Ghetto's walls, such as the imprisonment of Chris-
tian children in the Ghetto, and an orgy of circumcision. Modena
described the police search for the hidden silk, silk clothing, and
gold. "On Purim the ghetto compound was closed off in order to
conduct a house-to-house search for them in great haste"; this could
be done simply by drawing up a few bridges and locking a few
doors.
55
Modena railed against it, saying that "when one individual
committed a crime, they (Christians] would grow angry at the entire
community"; the reason the Christians blamed all the Jews was that
they thought "every kind of crime is concealed in the ghetto."56 As
rumor mounted over the course of the next few days, Jews suffered
one of the worst pogroms they had ever known in Europe. Christian
mobs entered the Ghetto, burned or stole sacred books and objects
in the synagogues, set fire to buildings. Because they were concen-
trated in a single mass, the Jews could be attacked like animals
penned up for slaughter.
In the wake of the pogrom of 1636, Modena the Wandering Jew,
the cosmopolite par excellence, began to rue the life he had settled
into. His son-in-law Jacob, with whom he was very close, had been
banished to Ferrara as part of the general punishment inflicted on
the Jews in the persecution of 1636. In 1643, old and ill, Leon
Modena asked the authorities to let Jacob return. They refused, still
reeling under the hatreds which had caused the great persecution.
Modena's memoir of his life near its end bursts Out with a terrible
confession of helplessness: "Who will give me learned words of lam-
entations, moaning, and woe so that I may speak and write of how
Fear o/Touching
249
much worse my luck has been than that of any other person? I shall
suffer and bear what began to make me desolate on the day I was
born and has continued without respite for seventy-six whole
years. "57
In this lament, we hear a larger echo than one man's tragedy. A
group identity forged by oppression remains in the hands of the
oppressor. The geography of identity means the outsider always
appears as an unreal human being in the landscape-like the !carus
who fell unremarked and unmourned to his death. And yet Jews
had taken root in this oppressive landscape; it had become part of
themselves. It can be no reproach to say that they had internalized
the oppressor in making a community out of a space of oppression.
But this communal life proved to be, at best, a shield rather than
a sword.
4. THE MIRACULOUS LIGHTNESS
OF FREEDOM
The Merchant 0/ Venice marks a sharp contrast to Christopher Mar-
lowe's play The Jew 0/ Malta (1633). Marlowe forms Barabas, the
MalteseJew, into a figure of fun, made merely contemptible because
of his greed. Shylock is a more complex human being, for his greed
is intermixed with justified rage. Perhaps the greatest speech in The
Merchant o/Venice is Shylock's speech on the universal dignity of the
human body. It runs:
Hath nOt a Jew eyes ? Harh not a Jew hands, organs, dimensions,
senses, affections, passions? Fed with the same food, hurt with the
same weapons, subject to [he same diseases, healed by the same
means, warmed and cooled by the same winter and summer as a Chris-
tian is? If you prick us, do we not bleed? If you tickle us, do we not
laugh? If you poison us, do we not die? And if you wrong us, shall
we not revenge? 1 we are like you in the rest, we will resemble you
in thar. :58
This dignity had been denied by the Christians who condescended
to take Shylock's money. But this speech is nOt just a writer's work
of rounding all his characters, even his villains; it is too consequent.
Shylock's charge against the Christians reverberates in The Mer-
250 FLESH AND STONE
chant 0/ Venice in the plot, and in an unexpected way. By Act IV,
Shakespeare has built up a great dramatic tension between the honor
of Christian gentlemen like Antonio and Bassanio, and the contrac-
tual rights of Shylock. The Christians entreat Shylock, the Duke
makes a moving speech, but Shylock is implacable. All seems lost.
Suddenly in Act IV Shakespeare throws it all away.
Portia enters in disguise as a lawyer and mediator, to assure Shy-
lock his claim is just, but that he must absolutely adhere to its terms,
taking a pound of flesh but not a drop of blood, which was not speci-
fied in the contract, and he can only carve a pound of flesh, not an
ounce more or less. Since Shylock cannot be so scientific a cannibal,
the game is up. Like a pricked balloon, Shylock deflates. The way
Portia cutS the Gordian knot of contract is hardly a moral resolution
of events; the larger issues are evaded by her lawyerly trickiness, and
many critics have found the denouement lame. The only way to deal
with the devil, it seems, is to beat the devil at his own game.
This denouement underlines an ambiguity that marks the play as
a whole: does The Merchant o/Venice lean to the side of comedy or
tragedy? The Christian characters, admirable as they are, are lighter
in weight than Shylock; they suit the frame of comedy, and The Mer-
chant 0/ Venice is often performed in this way. Trivializing the
denouement prepares us for the various comic intrigues resolved in
Act V. The Christians triumph, Portia sets Antonio free, and The
Merchant 0/ Venice becomes a comedy of manners.
Something odd, though, has happened. Even before the denoue-
ment, we experience it in the subplot turning on Shylock's daughter
Jessica. The moment she falls in love with a Christian, Jessica flees
her father, her house, and her faith. She evinces remarkably little
grief at leaving the world of her father-nor at robbing him, which
she does when she takes jewels from Frankfurt to pay for her own
pleasures on her honeymoon. Recounted thus, she seems a vile crea-
ture, yet in the play she is made wholly charming. For this daughter
who lives in no Ghetto, "being Jewish" is a little like wearing a set of
clothes, which you shed if you happen, for instance, to fall in love.
The action displays the inconsequence of experience again in
another subplot which involves a game of Love, as in its final aCt when
the male lovers in the play are manipulated by the women who love
them in a kind of erotic business deal. Neither bodily pain nor bodily
desire matters in the end; dealing does. Who has triumphed >
The Merchant o/Venice can be read without straining as a premoni-
Fear 0/ Touching
251
tion. Shakespeare puts on display a world in which the community
of Christian gentlefolk has become either ineffective or inconse-
quential. Their freedom lightens culture's burden, unlike the bodies
weighed down by culture in the Ghetto. Freedom which transcends
life's burdensome weight and obligations: at the end of the play, we
have entered the modern world.
PART THREE
ARTERIES
AND VEINS
, .
, ,
CHAPTER EIGHT
Moving Bodies
Harvey's Revolution
l. CIRCULATION AND RESPIRATION
F
or more than two thousand years medical science accepted the
ancient principles of body heat which governed Perikles' Ath-
ens. Sanctified by the weight of long tradition, it seemed cer-
tain that innate heat of the body explained the differences between
men and women, as well as between human beings and animals, With
the appearance of William Harvey's De motu cordis in 1628, this cer-
tainty began to change. Through discoveries he made about the cir-
culation of the blood, Harvey launched a scientific revolution in the
understanding of the body: its structure, its healthy state, and its
relation to the soul. A new master image of the body took form,
The new understandings of the body coincided with the birth of
modern capitalism, and helped bring into being the great social trans-
formation we call individualism. The modern individual is, above all
256
FLESH AND STONE
else, a mobile human being. Adam Smith's Wealth 0/ Nations first
reckoned what Harvey's discoveries would lead to in this regard, for
Adam Smith imagined the free market of labor and goods operating
much like freely circulating blood within the body and with similar
life-giving consequences. Smith, in observing the frantic business
behavior of his contemporaries, recognized a design. Circulation of
goods and money proved more profitable than fixed and stable pos-
session. Ownership served as the prelude to exchange, at least for
those who improved their lot in life. Yet for people to benefit from
the virtues of a circulating economy, Smith knew, they would be
obliged to cut themselves free from old allegiances. This mobile eco-
nomic actor would moreover have to learn specialized, individual-
ized tasks, in order to have something distinctive to offer. Cut loose,
specialized Homo economicus could move around in society, exploit
possessions and skills as the market offered, but all at a price.
Moving around freely diminishes sensory awareness, arousal by
places or the people in those places. Any strong visceral connection
to the environment threatens to tie the individual down. This was
the premonition expressed at the end of The Merchant o/Venice: to
move freely, you can't feel toO much. Today, as the desire to move
freely has triumphed over the sensory claims of the space through
which the body moves, the modern mobile individual has suffered a
kind of tactile crisis: motion has helped desensitize the body. This
general principle we now see realized in cities given over to the
claims of traffic and rapid individual movement, cities filled with neu-
tral spaces, cities which have succumbed to the dominant value of
circulation.
Harvey's revolution helped change the expectations and plans
people made for the urban environment. Harvey's findings about the
circulation of blood and respiration led to new ideas about public
health, and in the eighteenth century Enlightened planners applied
these ideas to the city. Planners sought to make the city a place in
which people could move and breathe freely, a city of flowing arter-
ies and veins through which people streamed like healthy blood cor-
puscles. The medical revolution seemed to have substituted health
for morality as a standard of human happiness among these social
engineers, health defined by motion and circulation.
The route from Harvey's discoveries about healthy circulation
within the body, coupled to new capitalistic beliefs about individual
movement in society, has thus only posed anew an enduring problem
in Western civilization: How to find a sensate home for responsive
bodies in society, particular! y in the city, bodies now restless yet
Moving Bodies 257
alone. Circulation as a value in medicine and in economics has cre-
ated an ethics of indifference. The wandering Christian body, exiled
from the Garden, was at least promised by God it would become
more aware of its environment and of other displaced human beings.
Harvey's contemporary John Milton told the story of the Fall this
way, for instance, in Paradise Lost. The secular body in endless
motion risks not knowing this story, instead losing its connections to
other people and to the places through which it moves.
This chapter traces the path from Harvey's discoveries about cir-
culation in the body to the urban planning of the eighteenth century,
and what circulation meant for individuals and groups in the Enlight-
enment city. The next chapter focuses on the challenge circulation
posed to the sense of place in revolutionary Paris. Out of this conflict
there arose in the nineteenth century urban spaces made for individ-
uals in motion, rather than for crowds in motion. The penultimate
chapter traces this evolution, and its psychological consequences, as
expressed in Edwardian London by E. M. Forster in his novel How-
ards End. The final chapter focuses on modern New York, today a
multi-cultural city filled with uprooted people from around the
globe. The word "uprooted" suggests an unhappy condition, but I do
not wish to conclude this history in the negative. Flesh and Stone ends
by asking if there is any chance in a multi-cultural city, against all the
odds of history, that the differences between people racially, ethni-
cally, sexually might become points of contact rather than grounds
for withdrawal. Can we avoid the fate of Venetian Christians and
Jews? Can urban diversity curb the forces of individualism'
These questions begin in the flesh.
Blood pulses
Harvey made what seems in retrospect a simple discovery: the
heart pumps blood through the arteries of the body, and receives
blood to be pumped from the veins. This discovery challenged the
ancient idea that the blood flowed through the body because of its
heat, and that different bodies contained different degrees of "innate
heat {calor innatus}"-male bodies, for instance, being hotter than
female bodies. Harvey believed circulation heated the blood,
whereas the ancient theory supposed heat in the blood caused it to
circulate. Harvey discovered that such circulation occurs mechani-
cally: "it is by the heart's vigorous beat," he declared, "that the blood
is moved, perfected, activated, and protected from injury and
decay.'" He pictured the body as a great machine pumping life.
258
FLESH AND STONE
Harvey first studied the venous valves in the heart in 1614-15,
and then the differences between the functioning of arteries and
veins; his students in the 1620s removed hearts from fresh corpses
to observe how the heart muscle continued to contract and expand,
even though the heart had no blood to pump. One of his students
discovered that the blood of birds is actually hotter than human
blood due to the more rapid pumping of the bird's heart. By observ-
ing t h ~ machinery of circulation, these scientists became increasingly
convinced that the same mechanics operated in all ammal lIfe.
Ji9Uf1t. ) .
Harvey's image of the blood system of the arm, from De molu cordis, 1628.
Up to the eighteenth century, Christian doctors hotly debated
where the soul lurked in the body, whether the soul made contact
with the body via the brain or the heart, or if the brain and. heart
were "double organs," containing both corporeal matter and SPiritual
essence. While in his writings Harvey clung to the medIeval ChriS-
tian notion of the heart as an organ of compassion, by the time he
published his findings he knew that it was also a machine. He insisted
Moving Bodies 259
on scientific knowledge gained through personal observation and
experiment rather than on reasoning from abstract principles. Some
of Harvey's adversaries, such as Descartes, were prepared to believe
that the body is a machine, just as the Deity itself might operate by
a kind of celestial mechanics. God is the principle of the machine. To
the question, "Does the rational (immaterial) soul have physiological
functions ?" Descartes answered yes.
2
Harvey's science led to answer-
ing no. In Harvey's own view, though the human animal has an
immaterial soul, God's presence in the world does nOt explain how
the heart makes the blood move.
Harvey's researches into the blood prompted other researchers to
look at other body systems in similar ways. The English doctor
Thomas Willis, who lived from 1621 to 1675, sought to understand
how the nervous system in the body operates in some fashion
through mechanical circulation. Though he could nOt see the visible
movement of "nerve energy" along the nerve fibers as Harvey could
watch blood pulsing, Willis could study the tissues of the brain. Like
Harvey's pupils he found, by comparing the brains of human beings
and animals, that there was "little or no difference ... as to the Fig-
ures and Exterior Conformations of the Parts, the Bulk only
excepted ... from hence we concluded, the Soul Common to Man
with the Brutes, to be only Corporeal, and immediately to use these
Organs."3 Willis's successors in late seventeenth- and eighteenth-
century neurology discovered, by experimenting on living frogs, that
throughout a living body the ganglia of nerve fibers responded
equally to sensory stimulation; by experimenting on fresh human
corpses, the doctors found that the ganglia in human beings contin-
ued to respond as did frog nerve fibers, even after the soul had pre-
sumabl y departed the bod y to meet its Maker. I n terms of the neural
system, the body had no need of "spirit" in order to sense. Since all
the nerve ganglia seemed to operate in the same fashion, the soul
might hover everywhere, but existed nowhere in particular. Empiri-
cal observation could nOt locate the soul in the body.4
Thus mechanical movement in the body, nervous movements as
well as the movements of the blood, created a more secular under-
standing of the body in contesting the ancient notion that the soul
(the animal is the source of life's energy.
This shift led researchers to challenge the hi erarchical imagery of
the body which governed medieval thinkers like John of Salisbury.
Long before the discovery of the electrical nature of the movements
between nerve fibers, for instance, it had become evident to eigh-
teenth-century doctors that the nervous system was more than a sim-
260
FLESH AND STONE
The blood vessels as twigs growing ou' of ,he human body. From Case's
Compendium anatomicllm, 1696.
Mrwing Bodies 261
pie extension of the brain. The physiologist Albrecht von Hailer
argued in his Demomtratiom 0/ Physiology of 1757 that the nervous
system worked by involuntary sensations which in part circumvented
the brain-and certainly conscious control; nerves somehow trans-
mitted sensations of pain from the foot to the wrist when a person
stubbed a toe, so that these two members twitched together. Like
blood, pain seemed to circulate through the body. Doctors indulged
in a veritable orgy of cruel animal experiments to show that nerve
tissues had life "distinct from the conscious mind or higher soul," in
the words of the historian Barbara Stafford; "hearts were ripped out
while still beating, bowels eviscerated, tracheas sliced open to stifle
the yelping of frightened and suffering animals as they twitched or
writhed.'"
The heart was similarly dethroned from the place Henri de Mon-
deville assigned it. Though Harvey asserted that the heart is "the
starting point of life," he believed that "blood is life itself."6 The
heart is but a machine for circulation. The science of circulation thus
emphasized the individual independence of parts of the body.
In place of the puzzles of body and soul, this new science focused
on the body's health, as determined by its mechanics. Galen had
defined health as balance in body heat and fluids; the new medicine
defined it as free flow and movement of blood and nerve energies.
The free flow of blood seemed to promote the healthy growth of
individual tissues and organs. The neurological experimenters
believed similarly that free-flowing nerve energy promoted individ-
ual tissue and organ growth. It was this paradigm of flow, health,
and individuality within the body which eventually transformed the
relationship between the body and society. As a medical historian
observes, "In an increasingly secular society ... health was viewed
more and more as one of the responsibilities allotted to the individ-
ual, rather than a gift from God.'" The city taking form in the eigh-
teenth century helped translate that internal paradigm into a picture
of the healthy body in a healthy society.
The city breathes
The links between the city and the new science of the body began
when the heirs of Harvey and Willis applied their discoveries to the
skin. We owe to the eighteenth-century doctor Ernst Platner the first
clear analogy of circulation within the body to the body's environ-
mental experience. Air, Platner said, is like blood: it must circulate
262
FLESH AND STONE
through the body, and the skin is the membrane which allows the
body to breathe air in and out. Dirt seemed to Plamer the prime
enemy of the skin's work; Plamer maintained, in the words of the
historian Alain Corbin, that dirt clogging the pores "held back the
excremental humors, favored the fermentation and putrefaction of
substances; worse, it facilitated the 'pumping back of the rubbish'
that loaded the skin."s The movement of air through the skin gave a
new, secular meaning for the word "impure." Impurity meant dirty
skin rather than a stain on the soul. Skin became impure due to peo-
ple's social experience rather than as a result of moral failure .
In the country, among peasants, dirt crusted on the skin appeared
natural and seemed indeed health-giving. Human urine and faeces
helped nourish the earth; left on the body they also seemed to form a
nourishing film, especially around infants. Therefore country people
believed that "one should not wash toO often ... because the crust
of dried faeces and urine formed part of the body, and played a pro-
tective role, especially in [swaddling} babies .... "9
Scrupulously cleaning excrement off the body became a specifi-
cally urban and middle-class practice. In the 1750s, middle-class peo-
ple began to use disposable paper to wipe the anus after excretion;
chamber potS were by that date emptied daily. The very fear of han-
dling excrement was an urban fear, born of the new medical beliefs
about impurities clogging the skin. More, purveyors of that medical
knowledge lived in the city. "Peasants and physicians were literally
unable to communicate within an agreed world of representations of
the body and its fortunes," the historian Dorinda Outram writes; the
peasants knew men of science only in the persons of barbers who
also served as surgeons in villages, and these barber-surgeons num-
bered only about one in a thousand by 1789 in France, while licensed
doctors numbered one in ten thousand and lived mostly in cities.
lo
Such beliefs in the importance of letting the skin "breathe" helped
to change the way people dressed, a change which became evident
as early as the 1730s. Women lightened the weight of their clothes
by using fabrics like muslin and cotton-silk; they cut gowns to drape
more loosely on the human frame. Though men kept the artifice of
wigs, which in fact grew more complicated during the eighteenth
century, below the hairline men toO sought to lighten and unbind the
clothing around their bodies. The body free to breathe was healthier
because its noxious vapors were easily dispelled.
More, for the skin to breathe, people had to wash more frequently
than they had before. The Roman's daily bath had disappeared by
Moving Bodies 263
medieval times; bathing was considered by some medieval doctors
to be, in fact, dangerous, since it radically unbalanced the tempera-
ture of the body. Now people who dressed lightly and bathed often
no longer had to disguise with heavy perfumes the smell of sweat;
the perfumes used by women, and the tonic waters used by men, had
been compounded in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries with
oils which frequently caused skin rashes, so that men and women
gained sweet-smelling bodies at the price of blotchy skins.
The desire to put into practice the healthy virtues of respiration and
circulation transformed the look of cities as well as the bodily prac-
tices in them. From the 17 40s on, European cities began cleaning
dirt off the streets, draining holes and swampy depressions filled with
urine and faeces, pushing dirt into sewers below the street. The very
street surface changed in this effort. Medieval paving consisted of
rounded cobblestones, between which pieces of animal and human
excrement clung. In the middle of the eighteenth century the English
began to repave London using flat, squared granite flagstones which
fitted closely together; Paris first laid these stones down in the early
1780s around the streets of the modern Odeon theatre. The streets
could then be cleaned more thoroughly; below them, urban "veins"
replaced shallow cesspools, the sewers in Paris carrying dirty water
and excrement to new sewage canals.
These changes can be charted in a series of municipal health laws
in Paris. In 1750, the city of Paris obliged people to sweep away the
dung and debris in front of their houses; in this same year it began
to sluice down major public walkways and bridges; ;n 1764, it took
steps to clear overflowing or blocked gutters throughout the city; in
1780, it forbade Parisians to throw the contents of their chamber
POts into the streets. Within houses, Parisian architects used smooth
plaster on walls for the same purpose; the plaster sealed the wall
surface, making it easy to clean.
Enlightened planners wanted the city in its very design to function
like a healthy body, freely flowing as well as possessed of clean skin.
Since the beginnings of the Baroque era, urban planners had thought
about making cities in terms of efficient circulation of people on the
city's main streets. In the remaking of Rome, for instance, Pope Six-
tus V connected the principal Christian shrines of the city by a series
of great, straight roads on which pilgrims could travel. The medical
imagery of life-giving circulation gave a new meaning to the Baroque
Karlsruhe in the eighteenth century. An early design for a circulatory city.
emphasis on motion. Instead of planning streets for the sake of cere-
monies of movement toward an object, as did the Baroque planner,
the Enlightenment planner made motion an end in itself. The
Baroque planner emphasized progress toward a monumental destI-
nation, the Enlightened planner emphasized the journey itself. The
street was an important urban space, in this Enlightened conception,
whether it ran through a residential neighborhood or through the
city's ceremonial center.
Thus were the words "artery" and "veins" applied to city streets in
the eighteenth century by designers who sought to model ~ r a f f i c sys-
tems on the blood system of the body. French urbanlSts hke ChtlS-
tian Parte used the imagery of arteries and veins to justify the
principle of one-way streets. In both German and French urban maps
based on the blood system, the prince's castle forms the heart of the
design, but the streets often bypassed connection to the urban heart,
and instead were directly connected to each other. Though bad anat-
omy, the planners practiced sanguine mechanics: they though that if
motion through the city becomes blocked anywhere, the collective
body suffers a crisis of circulation like that an individual body suffers
during a stroke when an artery becomes blocked. As one hIStorIan
Moving Bodies 265
has remarked, "Harvey's discovery and his model of the circulation
of the blood created the requirement that air, water, and [waste}
products also be kept in a state of movement," a state of movement
in a human settlement that required careful planning; haphazard
growth would only make worse the clogged, closed, unhealthy urban
fabric of the past. 11
We can see these principles of circulation put into practice in the
planning of Washington, D.e., just after the American Revolution.
Because of the interplay of various power interests in the young
Republic, the designers of Washington had to transform a near-tropi-
cal swamp into a national capital, rather than locate power in an
established city or building on a more hospitable open site a hundred
miles north. The plan for Washington, and its partial realization in
the Washington we know today, is a vindication of Enlightenment
beliefs in the power to create a healthy environment in a highly orga-
nized, comprehensive urban design. This urban design reveals as
well a certain social and political vision contained in the image of a
"healthy" city in which people can breathe freely.
Washington's planners sought to echo the ancient virtues of the
Roman Republic on the site they had chosen for the new capital, in
part by using Roman urban designs, in part by labelling the geogra-
phy of the new city in Roman terms. The American "Tiber River"
was, for instance, a mosquito-infested creek running through swamp-
land; the hills of Rome could .only be conjured in imagination. Closer
in time, the three principal figures in this plan-Thomas Jefferson,
George Washington, and Pierre Charles L'Enfant-seemed to sum-
mon the great vistas of Versailles, Karlsruhe, and Potsdam in think-
ing about a new capital; these contained magnificent open spaces
authorized by the stroke of monarchical pens. "It was a supreme
irony," an historian remarks, "that the plan forms originally con-
ceived to magnify the glories of despotic kings and emperors came
to be applied as a national symbol of a country whose philosophical
basis was so firmly rooted in democratic equality.""
Yet the result would prove not quite so because of the American
dialogue with ancient Rome. Thomas Jefferson had envisaged in the
late 1780s a street plan for a national capital based on the rural land
divisions into which he wished to divide the entire continent; the
shape of both city and country derived in his mind from the ancient
Roman grid plan used for making geometric cities. Like the ancient
*
1_"' 1'.,..1 '" .. N
, .. " 'J 0
...
,.
%
OIl'l.: IW.\TIU".c !;-"
t''''rh" ... Ior." fOr 11'1" -J.
-:'..
1.1111_f ... ,-' ...... .
..... -... ....
Jll , .. , . ....... ... _._ ... .
'" ...:.-:.::;:.. ... .. ::: :!, ... : .... _.,..
- '---.. .. ..
-..
. _\,""',1r ...; ........ _ ....... __ ' __ '0
........ - - .. -
.... ... --- - , _---0._-.. _ .... .-.>" ___ ... _ .
---
T .... e CLl,. lCOtl "I..,.,N
pPI J. \'
I/....:l: - . r (n \
.. --
l"1 .. d.':f. .. ,1.1' ',I ' 'i.' )
.,1,.1.', '
, ' , ftla_," I ,",".I, "J \ M" I. \ "I)
t,1 ... 1o. .. n ;u .
1.1
"
.I
. .... ,.;""'ON8 . .,T.
7 \1111' , ' (',
Washington, D.e. : L'Enfam's Plan, as drawn by Andrew Ellicott in 1792.
Roman city, Jefferson's WashingtOn-so far as we know his inten-
tions-would have seated the government squarely in the center of
the city. Pierre Charles L'Enfant demurred; he read a different
Roman lesson.
Like several other young idealistic Frenchmen, the young engineer
L'Enfant had joined the American cause during the Revolution, and
seen service at Valley Forge, remaining in America after the victOry.
In a note to President WashingtOn probably in 1791, L'Enfant
derided grid planning as "tiresome and insipid . . . (coming from a]
cool imagination wanting a sense of the real grand and the truly beau-
tiful."' l In place of this he proposed a more democratic space; his
"Map of Dotted Lines" of 1791 , reproduced as a more formal Plan
of WashingtOn by Andrew Ellicott in 1792, shows a city with several
traffic nodes and centers reached by a complex system of radial
streets cutting through the rectangular divisions of the grid. For
instance, L'Enfant drew a great intersection of two major streets, Vir-
ginia and Maryland Avenues, which had little to do with the seats
Moving Bodies 267
of national power nearby, the President's House and the Congres-
sional CapitOl. Not all the nodes of the city were nodes of power.
Moreover, L'Enfant sought to mix the social and the political , as
these rwo elements had been in the early Roman Republican forum.
The Congress, L'Enfant wrote in his near-perfect English to Presi-
dent Washington in 1791, would form part of a "place of general
resort and all along side of which may be placed play houses, room
of assembly, accademies (sic] and all such SOrt of places as may be
attractive to the learned and afford diversion to the idle. "'4 L'Enfant's
was a truly republican concept of a national capital: a place in which
great power is absorbed into the tapestry of a multi-centered, mixed-
use city. This political imagery Jefferson immediately recognized and
applauded, giving way to the young Frenchman.
L'Enfant's republican plan for a multi-centered, multi-use capital
reflected also Enlightened rather than Baroque beliefs about the
meaning of circulation in a city. The swampy site and disgusting sum-
mer climate of Washington obliged L' Enfant to think about creating
urban "lungs." For this he drew upon his native experience, specifi-
cally the great Place Louis XV in the center of Paris; the Place Louis
XV was the European capital's floral lung, edging the Seine at the
View of Place Louis XV 10 Paris. Painting attributed to ). -B. Leprince,
ca. 1750.
268
FLESH AND STONE
end of rhe formal Tuileries Gardens which fronted rhe palace of rhe
Louvre.
As in L'Enfant's work, rhe lung was as importanr a reference as
rhe heart to Enlighrenmenr planners. For insrance, norhing was more
srriking in eighreenrh-century Paris rh an rhe vasr Place Louis XV:
rhough exactly in rhe center of Paris, ir was laid our as a place of free
garden grow rh. L'Enfant's contemporaries knew little abour photo-
synthesis bur rhey could feel rhe results when brearhing. The Place
Louis XV was lefr to grow inro an urban jungle, into which people
wandered when rhey wanted ro clear rheir own lungs. The cenrral
garden rhus came ro seem far from urban srreer life. ''The place Louis
XV was rhen felr, even by rhose who were fond of irs archirecture,
ro be ourside Paris."15
More, rhis central lung contravened rhe power relarions which
shaped open space in a royal garden ourside a ciry, like Louis XIV's
Versailles or Frederick rhe Grear's Sans Souci. The Versailles gar-
dens builr in rhe mid-seventeenth century disciplined regular lines
of rrees, parhs, and pools inro endless visras receding ro rhe vanishing
point: rhe King commanded Narure. Another kind of open space
appeared in rhe influential English landscaping of rhe early eigh-
Sire plan for Place Louis XV in Paris, from the Bretez plan, called "Tur-
gor," 1734-39.
Place Louis XV in Paris. Context plan showing proposed new bridge.
Engraving by Perrier after Le Sage.
reenth century, "rhe boundless garden" which, in rhe words of Rob-
ert Harbison, lacked an "obvious beginning or end ... rhe bounds
are confused on all sides."16 The English gardens seized rhe imagina-
tion in irregular space full of surprises as rhe eye wandered or rhe
body moved, a place of lush and free growrh.
L'Enfant's generarion soughr, however, ro give rhe urban lung a
more defined visual form. In Paris, in 1765, rhe aurhoriries soughr
our various schemes ro make rh is grear garden more accessible ro rhe
people of rhe ciry, eirher on foor or in carriages, a lung rhrough
which rhe Parisians could srream and refresh rhemselves. These
srreers and foorparhs marked a grear break wirh rhe older fabric of
rhe ciry; no commerce would be permirred on rhem, or rarher, only
commerce wirh rhe air and rhe leaves, and one an or her. Movement
rhrough rhe urban lung was srill ro be a sociable experience.
Curiously, rhe plan L'Enfant made for Washingron is nor quire so
ar ease wirh nature in rhe ciry as was rhe Parisian park. The grear
Mall, as Ellicorr drew ir according ro L'Enfant's design, rerains some
of rhe formal linear elemenrs of Versailles in rhe axis ir esrablishes
berween rhe Potomac River and rhe Presidenr's House, and in rhe
1'1 .. I Ill- I IH' I' \\
11 IIt . Ut It",
,.. 4... __ ...... , , ~ . # '
_ '"' ,o.-,... .. _ ~
,
..... ,
. ,caI., ..
.. ' ... . : .....
~
Place Louis XV in Paris. Engraving by G. L. Le Rouge, ca. 1791.
axis between the Potomac and the Capitol. But L'Enfant emphasized
that in this great Mall the citizens would move and congregate, as
they began to do in Paris in 1765. The Mall was nOt meant to provide
vistas down which George Washington could oversee his domains,
as Louis XIV looked out over the park of Versailles, seemingly to
an infinity all his. L'Enfant declared to the first President that he
wished both to "afford a great variety of pleasant seats and prospects"
and to "connect each part of the city."" Open spaces freely available
to all citizens would serve both these ends.
By being out in the open air, a citizen, Jefferson said, breathes
free: Jefferson applied this metaphor to the countryside, which he
loved; L' Enfant applied it to the city. IS The medical origins of the
metaphor suggested that, thanks to circulating blood, the individual
members of the body equally enjoyed life, the most minor tissue as
endowed with sanguine life force as the heart or brain. Though the
urban lungs excluded commerce, the master image of the circulating
body invited it.
Moving Bodies 271
2. THE MOBILE INDIVIDUAL
Smith's pin factory
In his Great Transformation, the modern historian Karl Polanyi
sought to trace the transformation of European society he thought
occurred when all social life became modelled on market exchange.
Polanyi of course did nOt deny the importance of the market in
medieval or Renaissance Europe, yet he saw in the seventeenth and
eighteenth centuries the principle of "I can only gain by hurting you"
taking hold of cultural and social relations as well as economics, grad-
ually crowding out Christian beliefs in the necessity of charity and
the impulses of altruism. In a way, The Great Transformation reads
as though Shylock had in the end triumphed, that social life had
everywhere become a matter of reckoning and extracting pounds
of flesh. 19
In fact, the eighteenth-century writers who preached the virtues
of the free market were extremely touchy on the subject of human
greed. One of the ways they sought to defend themselves against this
charge drew on the new science of the body and its spatial environ-
ment. The proponents of free marketeering in the eighteenth cen-
tury directly likened the flow of labor and capital in society to the
flow of blood and nervous energy in the body. Adam Smith's col-
leagues spoke about economic health in the same terms doctors used
for bodily health, using images of the "respiration of goods," "the
exercise of capital," and "the stimulation of laboring energy" via the
market. It seemed to them that, just as the free flow of blood nour-
ished all the tissues of the body, so economic circulation nourished
all the members of society.
Some of this was of course self-serving nonsense; no buyer sud-
denly faced with the prospect of paying double for bread or coal was
likely to accept the price as "stimulating." Yet the economist Adam
Smith added to commonplace convictions about the free market an
insight which his contemporaries had not grasped with equal clarity,
and which did rescue this biological-economic language from serving
as a mere cloak of greed. Smith sought to show how people involved
in market movements become ever more distinct individual actors
in the economy; they do so, he said, through the division of labor
inspired by the market.
Smith demonstrated this with severe elegance at the very opening
of The Wealth of Nations. He gave the example of ten workers in a
272 FLESH AND STONE
pin factory. Were each man to perform all the actions required to
manufacture a pin, each could make perhaps twenty pins a day, two
hundred in all; by dividing the tasks up, the ten men can make forty-
eight thousand
lo
What will cause them to divide their labor in this
way? The market for their products will: "When the market is very
small, no person can have any encouragement to dedicate himself
entirely to one employment, for want of the power to exchange all
that surplus part of the produce of his own labor," Smith declares.
21
When the market is large and active, the laborer will be encouraged
to produce a surplus. Thus the division of labor arises from "the
propensity ro truck, barter, and exchange one thing for another."22
The more circulation, the more specialized people's labors, the more
they become individual actors.
Smith's pin factory was a significant site for his argument. First of
all, Smith sought to advance the most general principles of political
economy on the most humdrum sort of work, the making of pins. In
the ancient world, as we have seen, ordinary human labor seemed
animal and bestial, lacking dignity. The dignity of the medieval
monk's labor lay in its spiritual discipline and in its charitable use.
Smith extended the dignity of labor to all workers who could freely
exchange the fruits of their labor, and so would become ever more
skilled at a specific task. Skill dignified labor, and the free market
promoted the development of skills. In this, Smith's economics
echoed Diderot's great Encyclopedia of the mid-eighteenth century.
The Encyclopedia showed in beautifully detailed plates and exact
descriptions the skills required to cane a chair or to roast a duck; the
artisan or servant so skilled appeared in Diderot's pages as a more
worthwhile member of society than the master who knew only how
to consume.
Smith's pin factory was an urban place. Indeed, The Wealth of
Nations was unusual in its time for the way ir portrayed relarions
between the city and the country. From medieval rhinkers like
Humbert de Romans onward, writers tended to view the wealth of
towns as coming at the expense of the countryside. Adam Smith
instead argued that the development of cities stimulates the econ-
omy of the countryside, by creating marker demand for agricultural
goods. He believed that farmers should become like pinmakers, spe-
cializing in crops for marker rather than self-sufficiently doing every-
thing by themselves for themselves
l3
The virtues of circulation that
is, bind town and country, in the process of erearing specialized Jabor
in each.
Moving Bodies 273
This view of town and country showed what was most Enlightened
and hopeful in Smith's thought, his sense of the economic individual
as a social being, rather than as aloof or greedy. Each individual in
the division of labor, as Smith imagined it, needed all the others to
do his or her own work. If, to modern critics like Polanyi, Smith
stands as an apologist for the zero-sum game, to his contemporaries
he appeared both scientific and humane. He found in the circulation
of labor and capital a force which dignified the most mundane labor,
and which reconciled independence and interdependence.
This, then, was one contemporary answer to the question of how
the sort of cities designed by L'Enfant, Patte, and Emmanuel Laugier
might work. When urbanists of the eighteenth century drew plans
for cities meant to operate on circulatory principles, Smith made
both legible and credible the economic activities which fitted those
cities. This in turn promised a more emotional possibility of individ-
ual freedom.
Goethe fiees south
The freedom promised to an individual in motion appears in one
of the most remarkable documents of the eighteenth century, pub-
lished just before the French Revolution. This was the Italian Jour-
ney of Goethe, recording his flight in 1786 from an idyllic small Ger-
German court to the fetid cities of Italy, a flight which brought the
poet's body, so he thought, back to life.
Goethe had served earl August, the ruler of the small duchy, as
an accountant, overseer, and general administrator for over ten
years. As the drudgery of sorting out earl August's finances and
supervising the draining of the prince's fields wore on, year after
year, Goethe had written less and less; the extraordinary achieve-
ments of his youth-his poems, the novel The Sorrows of Young
Werther, the play GOtz von Berlichingen-threatened to become mere
memories, his star burnt out. At last he fled south.
Goethe's Italian Journey describes Italian cities filled with ruined,
cracked, and pillaged stones, runny excrement flowing down the
streets, but the poet in flight wandered in joyous awe through this
wreckage. He wrote from Rome on November 10, 1786: "I have
never been so sensitive to the things of this world as I am here."2.
Six weeks earlier he had written to a friend, "I am living frugally and
keeping calm so that objects do not find a heightened mind, but
themselves heighten it."" Goethe found that circulating among
274
FLESH AND STONE
masses of foreigners roused him sensually, as an individual. In Ven-
ice, among the crowd in San Marco, "at last I can really enjoy the
solitude I have been longing for, because nowhere can one be more
alone than in a large crowd through which one pushes one's way."26
One of the most beautiful passages in the Italian Journey, written in
Naples on March 17, 1787, expresses the inner peace that came to
the poet in the midst of a noisy, disorderly mob:
To thread one's way through an immense and ever-moving crowd is a
peculiar and saiucary experience. All merge into one great stream, yet
each manages to find his way to his own goal. In the midst of so many
people and all their commotion, I feel peaceful and alone for the first
time. The louder the uproar of the streets, the quieter I become.
27
Why should he feel more roused as an individual in the midst of a
crowd? On November 10, Goethe writes that "anyone who looks
about him seriously here and has eyes to see, must become solid; he
must get a conception of solidity such as was never so vivid to him
before."28 The seemingly ungainly phrase "become solid" (in Ger-
man, solid werden) comes oddly from Goethe's reaction to the
"uproar of the streets"; the circulation in a crowd made Goethe par-
ticularize his impressions.
29
Goethe admonishes himself in Rome to
"let me seize things one by one as they come; they will sort them-
selves out later."30
It may seem strange to compare Adam Smith's The Wealth 0/
Nations, first published in 1776, to Goethe's Italian Journey of a
decade later, yet the twO works resonate; in both, movement articu-
lates, specifies, individualizes experience. The results of this process
began to show in Goethe's poetry at this time as well as in the Italian
Journey. In Rome, at age thirty-eight, Goethe began an affair with a
younger woman, and the love of concrete things fused with this
erotic love; he wrote the last of his Roman Elegies as a love poem to
his mistress by describing the metamorphosis of plants, the
unfolding of love as specific as the growth of a vegetable. Goethe
was conscious that in the course of his travels he was becoming ever
more minded to specific aesthetic experience.
The poet's journey was unique, and yet the belief that movement,
travel, exploration would heighten one's sensate life informed the
eighteenth-century desire to journey. Some forms of travel of course
continued to ptomise the European the possessive stimulation of
capturing foreign, strange climes. Goethe's journey did not involve
that kind of tourism; he didn't go to Italy in search of the unknown
Moving Bodies 2 7 5
or the primitive, but rather felt the urge to displace himself, to move
off center; his journey was closer to the Wanderjahre which took
form in the same era, the year in which both young men and women
were encouraged by their elders to travel and float before settling
down. In the culture of the Enlightenment, people sought to move
for the sake of physical stimulation and mental clarification. These
hopes derived from science, extended into the design of the environ-
ment, the reform of the economy, even into the formation of poetic
sensibility.
Yet Goethe's Italian Journey also shows the limits of this Enlight-
ened mentality. Seldom does he describe the Italian crowds through
which he moves with the same particularity he describes himself.
Similarly, faced with the crowds of the city, Adam Smith's impulse
is to describe them as divided into separate characters and categories,
rather than as a human whole. In the public health discourse of the
urban reformers, the urban crowd appeared as a cesspit of disease,
to be purified by dispersing the crowd individually throughout the
city. Jefferson famously feared the urban mob, and L'Enfant showed
ambivalence toward it; he hoped his plans would prevent the "clot-
ting" of crowds on Washington's streets. The reforms proposed for
the Place Louis XV in Paris sought to make them suitable roads for
individuals walking or riding singly, rather than in post carriages or
other large conveyances.
The inability to reckon the urban crowd, or accept it whole, has of
course to do with the people the crowd contained-people who were
mostly poor. The poor, however, experienced movement in the city
in ways which lay beyond the scope of these prejudices. That experi-
ence crystallized in the meaning of market movements to the poor:
the difference berween survival and starvation they measured in the
fluctuations of pennies or sous in the price of bread. The city's
crowds wanted less market movement, more government regulation,
fixity, and security. Physical movement in the city only sharpened
their hunger pains. The insecurity inspired by movement became
most evident in the most provocative of European capitals, Paris on
the eve of the Great Revolution.
3. THE CROWD MOVES
At the accession of Louis XVI, the historian Leon Cahen has reck-
oned, there were perhaps 10,000 clergy in Paris, 5,000 nobility, a
276 FLESH AND STONE
bourgeoisie of manufacturers, wealthy merchants, doctors, and law-
yers numbering about 40,000; the rest of the city's 600,000 or more
inhabitants lived at the edge of poverty. 31 In retrospect, an upper
class and middle class of 50,000 or so in a city of 600,000 seems
small; historically, however, it was large, larger as a proportion of the
city than in the time of Louis XIV, when the King held the reins of
finance as well as government outside the city at the Palace of Ver-
sailles. Indeed, the }(jng's realm at Versailles had grown ever poorer
while Paris prospered during the eighteenth century; royal finances
became serious after the French adventures in North America in the
middle of the century, and catastrophic after the French investment
in the American Revolution. Louis XIV's Versailles also atrophied
because the clergy and the nobility themselves began to generate
new wealth in Paris, by the same means the commercial bourgeoisie
generated wealth: the sale of land, investment in enterprises, and
other forms of market activity.
Paris became nOt simply a site to generate wealth, but a place to
practice conspicuous consumption. Its signs in stone were the vast
new houses built in the Faubourg Saint-Honore. George Rude,
drawing on the records of the chronicler of eighteenth-century Paris,
Sebastien Mercier, estimates that ten thousand houses and one third
of Paris had been built by the last decade of the Ancien Regime, and
Mercier himself gives us stunning glimpses of the sweetness of life
in the new Paris, of an ever more leisurely society passing long after-
noons drinking tea, reading, and eating hothouse fruits in homes
warm enough that people could wear their simple, healthy clothes,
of evenings spent in one theatre after another, easily reached by
coaches drawn along the increasingly well-paved streets.
To make this sweetness possible required ever greater numbers of
craftsmen, servants, clerks, and construction workers; it did not
require that they be well paid, and they were not. In service indus-
tries like the garment trade, a free marketeer would expect wages to
rise as luxury demand rose; instead, real wages fell from 1712 to
1789, because the labor supply grew even more rapidly than
demand, making for lower wages in an expanding economic sector.
In general, goods and services circulated freely as Paris grew steadily
more prosperous throughout the century; this wealth which per-
vaded the physical city did nOt permeate the lives of the mass of
the people.
Inequality became a sensory provocation when people moved
around the city. It is a social truism that feeling poor diminishes
Moving Bodies
277
when people live only among those like themselves. And by looking
at a map of mid-eighteenth-century Paris, the modern viewer might
be tempted to draw two erroneous conclusions in this regard. One
is that the knotted tangle of streets meant Parisians lived only in local
little knots; the other is that the city consisted of clearly defined rich
and poor quartien. ' On the eve of the French Revolution, a walker
through the city did traverse purely working-class quartiers, like the
Faubourg Saint-Antoine on the eastern edge of the city; strolling
through streets like the rue de Varenne on the Left Bank, however,
which had filled with new private palaces (hotels particuliers), the
urban traveller saw smears of miserable lodging houses in berween
the palaces, huts built on the edge of their gardens. These contained
the mass of service workers and craftsmen supporting the mansions.
Similar ramshackle buildings surrounded the }(jng's Louvre Palace,
all crevices of poverty in the cracks berween wealth.
Perhaps the most striking place in Paris mixing rich and poor was
the Palais-Royal, next to the Louvre. This home of the Orleans fam-
ily had been developed as a great rectangular building enclosing a
park. Open colonnades lined the building at ground level and the
Caleries du Palais-Royal, L. L. Boilly, \809. Musee de la Ville de Paris, Musee
Carnavalel, Paris. GiraudonlArt Resource, N. Y.
278 FLESH AND STONE
park was cut in half by a long wooden shed, the galerie de boiJ. Instead
of sealing the park as a garden, the dukes of Orleans put the land to
more economic use. Here was the Times Square of Ancien Regime
Paris; the Palais-Royal housed innumerable cafes, brothels, and
open-air gaming tables, as well as used-clothes shops, pawnshops,
and shady stockbrokerages. A young man who had just lost his
week's wages at the tables, or his health in the arms of a venereal
lady of the night, had only to look up beyond the galerie de bois to
the west wing of the Palais-Royal, where on the upper lIoor he might
catch a glimpse of the Duke of Orleans at the tall windows, surveying
the profitable squalor below.
Rather than isolated amongst themselves, many of the poor circu-
lated in the physical, spatial presence of inaccessible wealth. The
medieval markets of the city had depended, as we have seen, on
inter-city trade. The local street became a focus of distribution in
this trade, taking goods from outside the city and sending them out-
side. By 1776, when Smith published his economic theory, the mar-
kets of the city looked like neither those of the past nor those Smith
described. The city now traded as part of a nation; its ports at Bor-
deaux or Le Havre lay at the geographic edge of the nation. Eco-
nomic exchange in Paris derived its importance from being at the
center of government power, an urban economy ever more depen-
dent on serving an urban bureaucracy and the cultural trappings of
that bureaucracy. Thus, when people felt the pangs of inequality in
the city, they turned for relief not to the market, nOt to the circula-
tion of labor and capital, but to the government as a source of stabil-
ity. These desires surfaced around the issue of the price of bread.
In Paris, unskilled laborers earned around 30 sous a day, skilled
laborers upward of 50. Half of this income went for bread, the basic
food staple, which cost 8 or 9 sous for a four-pound loaf; a working-
class family ate two or three loaves a day. Another fifth of the
worker's income went for vegetables, scraps of meat and fat, and
wine. Having used most of his or her money for food, the worker
would then apportion the rest, calculated down to the last centime,
for clothing, fuel, candles, and other necessities. George Rude
remarked that should the market price of bread, "as all too fre-
quently happened, rise sharply to 12 or 15 (or even to 20) Jom . . .
the bulk of the wage-earners faced sudden disaster."32
Before and during the Revolution, riots occurred far more often
over the cost of food than over wages. In the Flour War of 1775, for
instance, near-starving people in Paris sought to make the price of
Moving BodieJ 279
lIour correspond to their ability to pay, rather than to market value;
as the historian Charles Tilly observes of an incident where the Pari-
sians broke into the shop of a grain merchant, the poor, who were
"mainly women and children ... took care to leave untouched mer-
chandise other than bread [and) at least some of them insisted on
paying for their bread at two sous per pound, about three-fifths of
the current market price."33
Because the market lay largely beyond the people's ability to con-
trol, their attention focused on the state, particularly in the case of
bread. In principle, the state fixed the price of bread; in practice, this
was then undone or ignored by the movements of the market. When
people struck over the cost of food, they addressed a single, clear
power-the government-and measured the success or failure of
their actions by the rise and fall of a single number. Let us look at
one important instance of how the actual movements of a crowd in
search of bread led them to the doors of the state.
The great bread riot of October 1789 began in Paris on the morn-
ing of the 5th in two places, in the eastern working-class district of
Saint-Antoine and in the food stalls at the city's center. The riot
started when women refused to pay the price of bread for sale on
that day, an elevated price of 16 sous because grain was in short
supply. Other women then swelled the crowd in revolt, masses of
Parisian women who had to calculate finely what they could afford
to eat.
In the Saint-Antoine quarter the women forced the sacristan of
the Church of Sainte-Marguerite to ring the church bell constantly,
the "tocsin" peeling to signal an emergency which required the pres-
ence of the people in the streets. Word of mouth spread news of the
food riot from Saint-Antoine to neigh boring quarters, the crowds
moving toward the town hall, the Hotel de V ille, in the center of the
city. Armed with pikes and bludgeons, the crowd of some six thou-
sand stormed the Hotel de Ville-but there was no one there who
would answer their pleas. Only the King and his administrators, it
was said, could respond, because the city was bankrupt. In the after-
noon the crowd of women, now joined by men, swept through the
city center, down the arterial route of the rue de Vaugirard toward
Versailles, some ten thousand strong. ''The momentous march of
women to Versailles," the historian Joan Landes writes, came from "a
long tradition of women's participation in popular protest, especially
during subsistence crises."34 They arrived at dusk, and made first for
the Assembly hall, where their leader Maillard "quoted liberally
280 FLESH AND STONE
from the new popular pamphlet When Will We Have Bread? ["Quand
aurons-nous du pain?"], in which the authorities rather than the
bakers were held responsible for the
At dawn the crowd, which had camped Out during the night, faced
the guards of the Versailles Palace, killing rwo of the guards, cutting
off their heads, and parading the heads on pikes. But the gates of the
palace held fast; the crowd milled about, swelling in size as more
people poured out to the royal suburb from Paris. At last, in the
early afternoon of the 6th, the King and Queen appeared on a bal-
cony in front of the crowd, greeted by the roar of people shouting,
"To Paris!", and that evening the mob, now some sixty thousand,
escorted the acquiescent monarchs back to the city in triumph. On
the 7th, the King was shown barrels of /lour putrid with lice, which
were then dumped by the still active mob into the Seine.
The result of the riot begun on October 5 was rwo-fold; the
authorities sought to strengthen their military might in the city, in
order to curb future outbursts, and the price of bread was fixed at
12 sous. Moreover, the government guaranteed wheat supplies to
the city from its own granaries, which contained wheat of good
quality. An ethereal peace then descended over the city; Marie-
Antoinette wrote to Mercy d' Argenteau, the Austrian ambassador,
I talk to the people; to militiamen and to the market women, all of
whom hold out their hands to me and I give them mine. Within the
city I have been very well received. This morning the people asked us
to stay. I told them that as far as the King and I were concerned, it
depended on them whether we stayed, for we asked nothing better
than that all hatred should stop .... 36
At this moment, the Queen was not deceived in the sudden outburst
in her favor. A popular market song expressed the women's belief
that their desire for authority had been gratified:
To VenailleJ like bragging ladJ
We brought with UJ all our gum
We had to Jhow though we were but women
A courage that no one can reproach UJ for
(Now) we won't have to go JO far
When we want to Jee our King
We love him with a love without equal
Since he'J come to live in our Capital. 37
Moving BodieJ 281
Thus the urban crowd moved toward a different destination than
Adam Smith envisioned. The historian Lynn Hunt sees events such
as this food riot demonstrating the very essence of a paternal rela-
tionship berween the monarch and his "children," a relationship of
trust, stability, and fixity. 38 Harvey's paradigm sought to equalize the
importance of the individual parts within the body, to make these
parts appear more interdependent through the motions of the blood.
Adam Smith's vision of the market similarly focused on the equal
importance and interdependence of all the actors in the market's
movements, actors becoming ever more distinct through the division
of labor. But the crowd moving forward in this bread riot was more
than a collection of individuals exchanging among themselves. Just
as it had group economic needs, its identity could nOt be compared
to the identity of individuals. The very word "movement" took on a
collective meaning, one which would be tested in the fire and the
bloodshed of the Revolution.
CHAPTER NINE
The Body
Set Free
A
the height of the French Revolution, the most radical news-
paper in Paris declared that there could be no real revolu-
tion if people did not feel it in their bodies. "Something
which we must never tire of saying to the people," the paper main-
tained, "is that liberty, reason, truth are . . . not gods ... they are
parts of ourselves. "1 Yet when the French Revolution sought to
bring the body to life on the streets of Paris, something quite unex-
pected happened. Often the crowds of citizens became apathetic.
In part, the spectacles of violence numbed their senses; in part the
revolutionary spaces created in the city often failed to arouse people.
During a time of upheaval when we should least expect it, the mov-
ing crowds of the city frequently thus halted, fell silent, and dis-
persed.
These moments of crowd passivity failed to interest Gustave Le
Bon, the most influential modern writer on crowds. Le Bon was cer-
!
)
Map of Revolutionary Paris, ca. 1794 .
o
~
284 FLESH AND STONE
tain that movement on the streets of Paris brought revolutionary
sensations vividly to life in the crowd. He believed the great bread
riot described at the end of the last chapter continued as crowd
behavior for the next four years. It is to Le Bon that we owe the
concept of crowd psychology and behavior, as distinct from individ-
ual behavior, based on that vision of a collective body constantly
alert, angry, and active. Le Bon believed that in the movement of
such a crowd, people do things together they would never dream of
doing alone. The sheer strength of numbers, he argued, makes peo-
ple feel grandiose; each person succumbs to "a sentiment of invinci-
ble power which allows him to yield to instincts which, had he been
alone, he would perforce have kept under restraint."2 In isolation, a
person "may be a cultivated individual; in a crowd, he is a barbar-
ian-that is a creature acting by instinct."3
If, Le Bon said, this transformation occurs in any moving, densely
packed group of human beings, the French Revolution marked a
watershed in history; the Revolution legitimated the random vio-
lence of crowds as a political end in itself. Of the leaders of the Revo-
lution, Le Bon declared:
Taken separately, the men of the French Revolutionary Convention
were enlightened citizens of peaceful habits. United in a crowd, they
did nOt hesitate to give their adhesion to (he most savage proposals, to
guillotine individuals most clearly innocent, and . .. to decimate them-
selves.
4
Le Bon's beliefs about crowds had great appeal to Freud, who drew
heavily on them later in his own writings on the "primal horde" and
other crowds throwing off the restraints of individuality. Le Bon's
writings have proved more largely persuasive to modern readers, for
they seem to explain how otherwise decent and humane individuals
could actively participate in violent crimes, as in Nazi or Fascist
mobs.
The other face of the Parisian crowd foreshadowed a different
kind of modern experience. Modern forms of individual passivity
and of insensitivity in urban space made their first, more collective,
appearance on the streets of revolutionary Paris. The bread riots
declared a need for collective crowd life which the Revolution did
not fulfil!.
The Body Set Free 285
1. FREEDOM IN BODY AND SPACE
The historian Furet has observed that the Revolution
"sought to resttucture, by an act of imagination, wholeness to a soci-
ety which lay in pieces.'" The Revolution had to invent what "a citi-
zen" looked like. But that imaginative invention of a new human
being was a difficult act; the "citizen" had somehow to look like
everyone, in a society which had etched social differences deeply
into the way people dressed, gestured, smelled, and moved. More-
over, the "citizen" had somehow to convince all these people who
gazed at the image that they recognized themselves but saw them-
selves reborn. The need to invent a universal figure, one historian
has argued, meant that ideally the "citizen" would be a man, given
the prejudices at the time about women's irrationality; the revolu-
tionaries would search for a "neutral ... subject; one capable of sub-
jecting . . . individual passions and interests to the rule of reason.
Only men's bodies fulfilled the ideal requirements of this contained
form of subjectivity."6 Even so ardent a feminist at the time as
Olympe de Gouges viewed the emotional physiology of women as
disposing them toward the emotion-charged, paternal order of the
past, rather than toward the new machinery of the future.
7
Certainly
the Revolution played out these prejudices in its imagination, just as
it crushed by 1792 the organized activities of women who had, as in
the food riot of 1789, helped fire up the society.
Yet among all the revolutionary emblems, the busts of Hercules,
Cicero, Ajax, and Cato which littered the revolutionary landscape,
the people were most drawn to the image of an ideal citizen called
"Marianne." Marianne's image appeared everywhere-in newspaper
engravings, on coins, in public statues set up to replace the busts
of kings, popes, and aristocrats. Her image compelled the popular
imagination because she gave a new, collective meaning to motion,
flow, and change within the human body, flowing and freeing move-
ment now nurturing a new kind of life.
Marianne's breasts
The Revolution modelled Marianne's face as that of a young
Greek goddess, with a straight nose, a high brow, and well-formed
chin; her body tended to the fuller domestic form of a young mother.
Sometimes Marianne appeared dressed in ancient flowing robes
286 FLESH AND STONE
An armed female sans-culotte in Paris. Anonymous etching with hand (01-
oring, ca. 1792.
which clung to her breasts and thighs; sometimes the Revolution
dressed her in contemporary clothes, but with her breasts bared. The
revolutionary painter Clement depicted the goddess this latter way
in 1792, Marianne's breasts firm and full, her nipples articulate; he
titled this version of Marianne "Republican France, opening her
The Body Set Free 28 7
Marianne. Etching of painting by Clement, 1792. Mmie Carnava!et , Paris,
photo Edimedia.
bosom to all the French." Whether in sheer robes or with her body
exposed, Marianne stood forth giving not the slightest hint of a las-
civious woman revealing herself, in part because the breast appeared
by the late Enlightenment as much a virtuous as an erogenous zone
of the body.
The exposed breast revealed the nurturing powers of women
when breast feeding. In Clement's painting, Marianne's full breasts
288 FLESH AND STONE
were meam for all the French to nurse at, an image of revolutionary
nourishmem underlined in the paiming by an odd ornamem: a loop
of ribbon around her neck falls between her breasts and holds below
them a level, to signify that all French people have equal access to
her bosom. Clemem's paiming shows the most basic appeal made by
the symbol of Marianne: equal care for all.
The veneration of a maternal figure recalled the cult and adoration
of the Virgin Mary; several commemators have remarked on the
very similarity of the revolutionary and religious names. Yet if Mari-
an ne drew on the weight of popular emotion and understanding con-
tained in the love of Mary, breast feeding meam something quite
historically specific to her viewers.
By the Revolution, breast feeding had become a complicated
experience for women. Umil the eighteemh cemury all but the poor-
est women put their infams out to wet nurses, many of whom were
indifferem to their charges. People earlier in the Ancien Regime
often neglected infams and young children; even in wealthy house-
holds children dressed in rags and ate scraps left over from the ser-
vams' meals. Rather than willful cruelty, this neglect of the young
partly reflected the harsh biological realities of an age in which infam
mortality was very high; an affectionate mother would likely be in a
constam state of mourning.
Haltingly and unevenly, though, the family became focused on its
children. Changes in public health meam by the 1730s that rates of
infant mortality began to fall, particularly in cities. And by the 17 30s
mothers, particularly the broad spectrum of mothers in the middle
ranks of society, marked a new affectionate relation to their infams
by breast-feeding them. Rousseau's Emite (1762) helped define this
maternal ideal through Sop hie, cemral moral character in his story.
Sophie's flowing breasts, Rousseau wrote, were proof of her virtue.
Yet, Rousseau declared, "We men could subsist more easily without
women than they could without us ... they are depend am on our
feelings, on the price we place on their merit, and on the opinion we
have of their charms and of their virtues. "8 The maternal revolution
confined women within the domestic sphere, as Mary Wollstonecraft
and other admirers of Rousseau were soon to note; at liberty to love
her children, Sophie yet lacked the freedom of a citizen. "The
Republic of Virtue," the critic Peter Brooks observes, "did not con-
ceive of women occupying public space; female virtue was domestic,
private, unassuming:>9 And Marianne's task was not quite to set
Sophie free.
The Body Set Free 289
When Marianne's life-giving virtues became a political icon, her
body seemed open to adults as well as children, a maternal body
open to men. In principle, her body served as a political metaphor
uniting society's vast variety of unlike human beings within her
frame. Yet the Revolution used her in fact as a metonymic device:
by looking at her image the Revolution saw, as in a magic mirror,
changing reflections of itself rather than a single image.
Marianne's generous, flowing, and productive female body first of
all served to mark off the virtuous presem from the evils of the
Ancien Regime. Her image served as a contrast to the pleasute-seek-
ing, supposedly sexually insatiable bodies of the Revolution's ene-
mies. Even in the 1780s, popular pornography chose Louis XVI's
queen as a subject for scandal, imputing to Marie-Amoinette lesbian
desires and liaisons to her ladies-in-waiting, and popular doggerel
at tacked her for lacking maternal feeling. In the Revolution, these
attacks grew sharper. Shortly before her condemnation to death,
reports swept Paris that Marie-Antoinette and one of her ladies-in-
waiting, in the course of a lesbian affair, kept the Queen's eight-year-
old son with them in bed at night and taught the young prince to
masturbate while the women made love. In the mid-eighteemh cen-
tury, doctors like Tissot had published, in the name of medical sci-
ence, explicit accoums of the supposedly degenerative effects of
masturbation on the body, such as loss of sight and weakness of the
bones.
lo
For the sake of illicit pleasure, Marie-Amoinette--so the
accusations ran-sacrificed her own son's health. Marie-Amoinette
appeared in revolutionary engravings as nearly flat-chested in con-
trast to Marianne's breasts which were butsting with milk. The dif-
ference in their breasts underlined popular accusations that the
pleasure-seeking Queen was immature and puerile, a spoiled adoles-
cem, while Marianne appeared as an adult giving pleasure which did
not cause pain to others.
Another reflection of Marianne softened the Revolution's sor-
rows. In this guise the Revolution endowed her with no speech; her
nurturance was a silem, unconditional love. She replaced a King
whose paternal care for his subjects supposed command and obedi-
ence. The revolutionary state which sem citizens to death abroad and
condemned them to death at home had need of her thus, to repre-
sem the state as a mother. As the French fought foreign wars while
fighting one another, the numbers of orphaned and abandoned
babies rose rapidly in the nation. Traditionally, convems had cared
for such infams, but the Revolution had closed the convems. Mari-
290
FLESH AND STONE
Marie-Antoinette. her female lover, and her son, in an engraving from [he
1795 edition of the marquis de Sade's La Phi/osophie dam le bOlldoir.
The Body Set Free 291
anne's image symbolized the revolutionary state's guarantee that it
would care for these infants as a matter of patriotic duty. Children in
need of breast feeding were rebaptized, as the histOrian Olwen Huf-
tOn observes, "under the generic heading 'en/ants de la patrie' ['chil-
dren of the nation'] and regarded as a precious human resource of
potential soldiers and mothers." !! The Revolution in turn elevated
wet nurses to the title citoyennes preciemes ("precious citizens").
Revolutions are not notably amusing events, but the figute of Mar-
ianne permitted the release of a certain Gallic wit. A remarkable
anonymous engraving of Marianne shows her equipped with angel's
wings, flying over the rue de Pantheon; with one hand she holds a
trumpet to her lips, with the Other she holds a trumpet stuck intO
her anus, at once blowing and farting clarion calls to liberty. '2 (Could
one imagine George WashingtOn so fully engaged?) Humor aided
citizens when, in looking around themselves, at one another, they
asked, "What does fraternity look like?"
The lactating breast of Marianne mOSt of all suggested that frater-
nity was a sensate bodily experience rather than an abstraction. A
contemporary pamphlet declared: the "nipple does nOt flow freely
until it feels the lips of a baby in need; in JUSt the same way, those
who are the guardians of the nation can give nothing without the kiss
of the people; the incorruptible milk of the Revolution then gives
the people life."! 3 The act of breast feeding became in the revolu-
tionary broadsheet an image of 111l1tllal arousal-between mother and
child, government and the people, citizens among themselves. And
the image of the "incorruptible milk" of the people tinged fraternity
with a family feeling stronger than the associations of rational mutual
interest supposed by Whigs or Physiocrats, who saw at best in the
first months of the Revolution an opportunity to strengthen the
workings of the free market.
Underlying all these reflections is the image of a body full of inner
fluid which overflows. In this collective image of a new citizen, milk
has replaced the blood of older Harveyean imagery, lactation has
replaced respiration-but free movement and circulation remain the
principles of life. The image conveyed the sheer surfeit of circula-
tion. And just as the Harveyean individual needed a space in which
to move, so did Marianne. One of the great dramas of the French
Revolution lay there: if the Revolution could see Marianne, it could
nOt succeed in placing her. The Revolution searched for spaces in
which citizens could express their freedom, spaces in the city which
would bring Marianne's virtues of liberty, equality, and fraternity
292 FLESH AND STONE
to life; yet freedom as conceived in space conflicted with freedom
conceived in the body.
The volume 0/ liberty
Sheer volume defined the revolutionary imagination of freedom in
space, volume without obstruction, without limits, a space in which
everything was "transparent," in the words of the critic Jean Staro-
binski, nothing hidden.
' 4
The revolutionaries put their imagination
of free space into practice in 1791, when the town council of Paris
began to chop down trees and pave over the gardens of the Place
Louis XV, hollowing out the land to make it an open, emptying vol-
ume. Competing designs for the center of the city all kept it empty
of vegetation and other obstructions, a vast, hard-surfaced plaza. In
a plan by Wailly for the remaking of the old Place Louis XV in the
center of Paris (re baptized the Place de la Revolution during the
period when it served as the home of the guillotine), the town square
was to be regularized by buildings on four sides to form an enormous
empty central space, without roads or paths through it. In another
plan, Bernard Poyet stripped away from the bridges spanning the
Seine River and leading to the square all the encrusted little shacks
which had obstructed entrance and exit to the square. 15 Elsewhere
in the city, as on the Champ de Mars, revolutionary planners sought
to create open volumes denuded of all natural hindrances to move-
ment and sight.
These empty volumes were meant to provide a home for Mari-
anne's freely giving body. In civic festivals she became a monumental
figure in the open air, no longer hidden in church naves as were
statues of the Virgin; the rituals devised to take place around statues
of Marianne spoke of mutual openness and transparence, the frater-
nity of those who have nothing to hide. Moreover, the volume of
liberty consummated Enlightened beliefs in the freedom of move-
ment; sheer open space was a logical next step from streets freed of
obstructions to movement, central squares conceived as unclogged,
freely breathing lungs.
And yet, logical as is the connection in the abstract between a
giving, freely moving body and empty space, it would be strange
more concretely to imagine a woman nursing an infant in the midst
of emptiness, surrounded by no other signs of life. That strangeness
the Parisians during the Revolution began to see in fact on the streets
of the city.
The Body Set Free 293
Power as well as idealism explains the volumes of liberty, for they
were spaces permitting maximum police surveillance of a crowd. Yet
revolutionary vision, as Fran,ois Furet speaks of it, also sought for
this dissonance, the dissonance of articulating a new human order in
emptiness. No one more exemplified the faith in the liberating pow-
ers of open space than the architect Etienne-Louis Boullee, who was
born in Paris in 1728 and lived there to his death to 1799. Personally
modest, comfortable with the honors accorded him by the Ancien
Regime (he was made a member of the Academie in 1780), reform-
minded but not bloody-minded during the Revolution, Boullee epit-
omized the civilized, Enlightened adult. Boullee's was mostly a paper
architecture, an architecture tied closely to his work as a critic and
thinker. His writings connected the body to the design of space as
explicitly as did Vitruvius, and Boullee's architectural projects har-
kened back to classical Roman works like the Pantheon.
Yet for all his awareness of the past, Boullee was truly a man of
his time, truly a revolutionary of space. In an odd way, the furies of
power paid tribute to him for this vision: on April 8, 1794, indeed,
he was near arrest, threatened by the self-contradictory accusations
which mobilized the Terror, charged in a notice posted all over Paris
with being one of the "madmen of architecture," who "hates artists"
and is a social parasite, yet who also makes "seductive proposals."'6
His seductive proposals in particular rendered great volumes
enclosed by severely disciplined walls and windows as emblems of
liberty.
Boullee's most famous project before the Revolution was a monu-
ment to be dedicated to Isaac Newton, a vast building shaped around
a spherical chamber; the chamber meant to serve, like a modern
planetarium, as an image of the heavens. In imagining this great
spherical chamber, Boullee wrote, he wished to evoke the majestic
emptiness of nature which he believed Newton had discovered.
Boullee's planetarium would do so by making use of a novel system
of lighting: ''The lighting of this monument, which should resemble
that on a clear night, is provided by the planets and the stars that
decorate the vault of the sky." To accomplish this effect, he proposed
that the planetarium's dome would be pierced by "funnel-like open-
ings .... The daylight outside filters through these apertures into the
gloom of the interior and outlines all the objects in the vault with
bright, sparkling light." " The viewer enters the building from an
outside passage far below the sphere, then walks up steps to enter at
the very bottom of the chamber; having glimpsed the heavens, the
294
-
~
FLESH AND STONE
Ecienne-Louis Boullee, Newroo's Cenotaph, interior view, by night, 1784.
viewer descends steps and files Out at the other side of the building.
"We see only a continuous surface which has neither beginning nor
end," he wrOte "and the more we look at it, the larger it appears."IB
Hadrian's Pantheon, which the French architect took as the model
for his planetarium, almost compulsively oriented the viewer within
it. Looking up into the artificial heavens, the viewer in Boullee's
planetarium would have no sense of his or her own place on earth.
There are no internal designs to orient the body; more, in Boullee's
sectional drawings for Newton's Tomb, the human beings are nearly
invisible within the immensity of the sphere: the interior sphere is
thirty-six times higher than the mere human specks drawn at the
base. As in the heavens outside, unbounded space inside is to
become an experience in itself.
J n 1793, Boullee designed-again on paper-perhaps his most
radical project, a "Temple to Nature and Reason." Once more he
made use of the sphere, scooping out raw ground to form the bottom
half of the sphere, the half of "Nature," answered by the top half, an
architectural dome perfectly smooth and crisp, the half of "Reason."
People who enter this temple walk round a colonnade in the middle
where earth and architecture, Nature and Reason, meet. As one
looks up into the dome of Reason, all one sees is a smooth, feature-
less surface free of any particularity. As one looks below, one sees
The Body Set Free 295
Etienne-Louis Boullee, Temple to Nature and Reason, ca. 1793.
the answering but rocky crater of earth. It is impossible to climb
down to this Nature from the colonnade, and no worshipper at this
shrine of Nature would wish to touch the earth: Boullee drew the
rocky crater as rough and slashed in the center by a fissure, extending
down into blackness, the fissure like a knife slash. There is no foot-
hold here, on the ground, for man or woman. Human beings have
no place in this terrifying temple devoted to the union of concepts.
In Boullee's own writings on urban design, he argued that streets
should have the same properties of space as his planetarium and tem-
ple, with neither beginning nor end. "By extending the sweep of an
avenue so that its end is out of sight," he argued, "the laws of optics
and the effects of perspective give an impression of immensity."19
Sheer volume: space free of the rwisted streets and irrational accre-
tions to buildings which had accumulated over the centuries, space
free of tangible signs of human damage in the past. As Boullee
declared, "The architect should study the theory of volumes and ana-
lyze them, at the same time seeking to understand their properties,
the powers they have on Out senses, their similarities to the human
organism. "20
The historian Anthony Vidler calls designs such as these the
"architectural uncanny," by which he means designs which arouse
feelings of sublime grandeur along with a sense of personal unease
and disturbance. The term derives from Hegel's writings on architec-
296
FLESH AND STONE
cure, and the word Hegel uses in German is unheimlich, which can
also mean "undomestic."21 And this is why the monuments to New-
ton or to Reason and Nature seem so ill-suited as homes for Mari-
anne, whose place is the home, who symbolizes a comforting unity
berween family and state. Against the desire for connection, for
maternity-fraternity embodied in Marianne, here was another revo-
lutionary desire, for a chance to start over with a fresh, blank slate,
which means uprooting the past, leaving home. The vision of frater-
nity in human relations expressed itself as flesh touching flesh; the
vision of freedom in space and time expressed itself as empty
volume.
Perhaps the dream of freely connecting to other people may
always conflict with the dream of starting over again fresh and unen-
cumbered. But the French Revolution showed something more par-
ticular about the result of these conflicting principles of liberty,
something more unexpected. Rather than the nightmare of a mass of
bodies running wild together in a space without boundaries, as Le
Bon feared, the Revolution showed how crowds of citizens became
increasingly pacified in the great open volumes where the Revolu-
tion staged its most important public events. The space of liberty
pacified the revolutionary body.
2. DEAD SPACE
"The French Revolution was caught in the throes of destroying one
civilization before creating a new one."22 That act of destruction
most infamously engaged the human body in the operations of the
guillotine. The grim business of killing people with the guillotine
formed part of what the art critic Linda Nochlin has called "revolu-
tionary dismemberment," which meant the belief that figures of the
past had to be killed in a certain way, the enemies of the Revolution
literally taken apart, so that their deaths became a lesson. Rather
than arouse the kind of blood lust depicted by Le Bon, the space
in which this lesson was taught numbed the crowds who witnessed
the killings.
The guillotine is a simple machine. It consists of a large, heavy
blade which moves up and down berween twO wooden channels; the
executioner raises the blade up three yards or so by a rope attached
to a winch, and when the executioner lets go of the rope, the blade
hurtles berween the channels, slicing through the neck of the victim
The Body Set Free 297
RobeJpie"e Guillotining the Executioner After Having Guillotined All the
French, anonymous etching, ca. 1793.
298 FLESH AND STONE
strapped to a bench at the base of the blade. Although the guillotine
became known as the "national razor" (rasoir national} in the French
Revolution, it kills as much by the force of the blade snapping the
neck in twO as by the sharpness of the blade.
Dr. ]oseph-Ignace Guillotin, who was born in 1738 and lived until
1814, did not in fact invent the guillotine. Machines to chop off peo-
ple's heads by the fall of a heavy blade existed in the Renaissance;
"the Maiden" was one such device, built in Scotland in 1564. Lucas
Cranach's The Martyrdom 0/ St. Matthew shows the saint beheaded
by a device almost identical to the "national razor." But the Ancien
Regime rarely used decapitation devices, since they killed too
quickly; they were thought to deprive a public execution of the ritu-
als required for punishment. The public gathered in large crowds to
witness spectacles of pain in all towns and cities of the Ancien
Regime; indeed, public executions often took a festive spirit, as they
were one of the few holidays off the religious calendar. Madame de
Sevigne describes such a jaunt into Paris from Versailles, in order to
see three criminals gutted, then hung; the outing offered a breathing
space from her court duties.
Like Roman crucifixions, Christian executions sought to dramatize
the powers of the state to inflict pain. Killing machines like the wheel
or the rack delayed death as long as possible in order that the public
could see the victim's muscles ripping apart and hear the victim's
screams. Unlike crucifixions, the Christian authorities prolonging
pain sought to force the victim to confess the enormity of his or her
sins before he or she was little more than a piece of meat; torture
had a religious and in a certain way charitable purpose, affording the
criminal a last chance in the rite of confessing sin to be spared the
depths of Hell.
Dr. Guillotin rejected these claims. He pointed out that most
criminals became unconscious or deranged after only one or two
turns of the wheel, and so were incapable of choosing to repent.
Moreover, he thought that even the most abject criminal had certain
natural bodily rights that the law could not violate. Based on a great
Enlightenment treatise on prisons, Beccaria's 0/ Crimes and Punish-
ments, Dr. Guillotin argued that when the state inflicts the death pen-
alty, it must show the maximum respect for the body it is about to
destroy; it must contrive a swift death, free of useless pain. By doing
so, the state will show itself superior to a common murderer.
Guillotio's aims, then, were entirely humanitarian. Moreover, he
The Body Set Free
299
thought he had freed death from the irrationalities of Christian ritu-
als like the confession of sin. Dr. Guillotin put forward his proposal
for an Enlightened ritual-free death early in the Revolution, in
December 1789, but the National Assembly did not authorize the
use of his machine until March 1792. A month later a common-law
criminal died under the blade, and on August 21, 1792, the machine
was first put to political use, decapitating the royalist Co lie not
d'Augrement.
Because the guillotine aimed to free punishment from religious
ritual, the first enthusiasts for the guillotine thought it should be
used in neutral space, outside the city. An engraving of early 1792
showed this neutral event occurring in an anonymous, wooded place,
and the explanation which accompanies it emphasizes that "the
machine will be surrounded by barriers to prevent the people
approaching."2l In the guillotine's first applications, the authorities
sought to render punishment invisible. When the guillotine moved
back into the city, however, the display of death feared by Dr. Guil-
lotin returned with a vengeance.
The long procession from jail to the place of execution exposed a
condemned person to the gaze of the city at large. The procession
usually moved slowly from the city jail down a main street, a proces-
sion lastin& some two hours, the crowds lined ten or twelve deep
along the street. Such a parade of condemned prisoners formed a
traditional element of executions in the Ancien Regime; the specta-
tors participated in the procession, as they had in earlier execution
rites or religious processions through the city. People lining the
street often shouted out abuse or words of encouragement, and
those in the carts responded. As the tumbrels slowly inched forward,
the condemned might in turn harangue the crowds. The character of
the crowds also might alter along the route, a hostile crowd modulat-
ing into a friendly one as the tumbrel passed down the street, often
the same people following the cart of the condemned changing their
views. The procession to the guillotine comes the closest in the Rev-
olution to exemplifying that vivid and spontaneous crowd life which
the French call the "carnavalesque."
Once arrived at the place of execution, this active crowd life sud-
denly ceased. The traditional form of ritualized punishment ended
at the foot of the guillotine. Now the condemned body entered a
space cleared of obstacles, an empty volume.
Dr. Guillotin's machine was first located in the Place de Greve, a
300 FLESH AND STONE
medium-sized square on the Right Bank which could accommodate
crowds of twO to three thousand curious to see common criminals
die the new kind of death. In August 1792, soon after the political
executions began, the town authorities moved the guillotine to a
larger open space, more centrally located and politically significant
in the city, the Place du Carrousel; enclosed by the outer wings of
the palace of the Louvre, this site accommodated between twelve
and twenty thousand people at important executions. For the execu-
tion of Louis XVI himself, the guillotine was moved once again to a
larger space at the other end of the Tuileries Gardens and in the very
center of the city. This plaza, the old Place Louis XV, was renamed
the Place de la Revolution-and we know it today as the Place de la
Concorde. The guillotine thus moved to larger urban volumes as it
struck deeper into the heart of the old state.
None of the three public spaces for the guillotine was sloped like
the ancient Pnyx in order to increase visibility through raked
sighrlines. The scaffold platform was nOt high enough in any of the
three town squares to make the events occurring on it visible at more
than 100 feet away; this barely sufficed in the Place de Greve, but
not in the two larger spaces. In political executions, moreover, rows
of troops filled the space immediately surrounding the scaffold; in
important executions, as many as five thousand guarded the guillo-
tine. In these ways the larger open spaces broke both visceral and
visual contact between the condemned and the crowd.
The machine itself also made the act of dying no longer a visible
event. The blade of the guillotine descended so fast that one moment
one saw a living human strapped beneath the blade, the next moment
an inert corpse. Only the gush of blood out of the victim's neck stem
intervened, but this gush of blood lasted but a moment, and then the
blood began to drain slowly, like a leaking pipe, Out of the body
through the wound. Here is how Madame Roland's body looked the
moment after the blade fell:
When the blade had cut off her head, twO huge jets of blood shot forth
from the mutilated trunk, a thing not often seen: usually the head that
fell was pale, and the blood, which the emotion of that terrible instant
had driven back towards the heart, came forth rather feebly, drop by
drop."
Because the technology of death changed, the actors in the specta-
cle of death no longer played the roles they had assumed in earlier
The Body Set Free 30 J
executions. Newspaper accounts "refer to neither the personality of
the condemned man nor to the person of the executioner; the
emphasis was now on the machine itself."" The torturer-executioner
in the Ancien Regime had been like a master of ceremonies, reveal-
ing to the crowd new tricks and responding to its pleas for a hot iron
or a turn of the wheel. Now the executioner had only one small,
physically insignificant act to perform, that of letting go of the rope
which held the blade. Only a few executions in the Revolution gave
the executioner, and the crowd watching, more active roles. Hebert's
execution was such an exceptional death. The people demanded that
the blade be lowered just above the traitor's neck, so that he could
feel the blood dripping off the iron from a previous execution; while
he screamed out in terror, the massive crowd in the Place du Carrou-
sel waved their hats and chanted "Long live the Republic!" Such
deaths in which executioner and crowd actively participated were
considered indecent lapses of revolutionary discipline, and rarely
repeated.
The victim was seldom allowed to make a speech to the crowd
before being strapped to the bench beneath the blade; the authori-
ties lived in fear of just the dramatic scenes of noble death conjured
by Charles Dickens in A Tale 0/ Two Cities and counrless royalist
pamphlets, noble last words which could turn the crowd against the
authorities. In fact, the authorities had less to fear than they imag-
ined, the volume of space serving the neutrality of death by machine.
When a victim burst out, the mass of citizens might see a gesture,
but the only people who usually could hear were guards. Strapped
immobile onto the guillotine, face down, neck shaved so that the
blade could cleave cleanly through the skin, the victim did not move,
did nOt see death coming, and felt no pain; Guillotin's "hum-
ane death" created passive bodies at this supreme moment. JUSt
as the executioner did nothing more than slighrly release the
pressure of his hand to kill, the condemned had simply to lie still to
die.
Louis XVI was guillotined on January 21, 1793, in the Place de la
Revolution. Bishop Bossuet had preached before the King's grandfa-
ther a sermon in 1662 in which Bossuet declared, "even if you (the
King) die, your authority never dies .... The man dies, it is true, but
the King, we say, never dies.'>26 Now the authorities, by killing the
King, sought to change this; with his death would come their own
sovereignty. Despite the immense complexities which surrounded
302 FLESH AND STONE
this fatal step, certain facts about the manner of his death are clear.
For one, the procession to the guillotine, though the King was taken
in a tumbrel, was quite unlike the carnavalesque events preceding
other executions. An immense military guard surrounded the cart;
moreover along his route through the city, Louis XVI faced an eerily
silent crowd. This silence has been taken by revolutionary interpret-
ers as a mark of the respect of the people for the change of sover-
eignty; royalist interpreters thought the crowd's silence was the first
sign of popular remorse. The historian Lynn Hunt believes the
crowd experienced both: "As revolutionaries cut themselves adrift
from the moorings of patriarchal conceptions of authority, they faced
a dichotOmous, highly charged set of feelings: on the one hand, there
was the exhilaration of a new era; on the other, a dark sense of fore-
boding about the future."" There was a third element as well. To
watch a king on his way to death yet make no response of one's own
avoids a sentiment of responsibility; one was present but could not
be held accountable.
To mark the fact that Louis Capet was no longer King of the
French, the instruments used to kill him in the Place de la Revolu-
tion were the same as the instruments used for other executions-
The execution of Louis XVl, 21 January 1793. Conremporary etching.
MlIsee Carnavalet, Paris. Photo Edimedia.
The Body Set Free 303
the same machine, the same blade, a blade which had not even been
wiped clean since its last use. Mechanical repetition equalizes; Louis
Capet would die like anyone else. However, those who had con-
demned the King to death were nOt so naive as to believe that this
mechanical symbol alone would carry the crowd. Many of the orga-
nizers of the execution feared that the King's severed head might
talk, that indeed perhaps the King never dies. They feared more
rationally that he might speak tOo movingly on the scaffold before
he died. Thus they sought to neutralize as completely as possible the
circumstances of his dying. An immense phalanx of soldiers sur-
rounded the crowd, facing inward toward the scaffold rather than
ourward toward the crowd; there were at least fifteen thousand sol-
diers arrayed in this way. The soldiers served as insulation; more
than 300 yards thick, this lining of soldiers made it impossible for
the crowd beyond ro hear anything Louis XVI said, and impossible
to see any details of his face or body. "Contemporary engravings all
make it clear that the crowd would indeed have had grave difficulties
in seeing anything of the execution."28
The lack of ceremony in the actual event, which seems otherwise
so curious, comes from the same desire for neutrality. Not one of
the King's killers appeared on the scaffold with him, or spoke to the
crowd; no one stood forth as a master of ceremonies. Like most
other political prisoners, the King was denied the use of the scaffold
as a stage; whatever last words he uttered were audible only to the
guards around him at the scaffold's base. Sanson performed the ulti-
mate gesture, showing Louis Capet's head to the crowd, but the thick
insulating band of soldiers meant few people could see the head.
Thus did the King's destroyers protect themselves during the execu-
tion by seeming only passively involved, part of the machinery of
circumstance.
Eyewitness records of the Revolution's vi olent events, Dorinda
Out ram observes, "often emphasize crowd apathy"; in the Terror,
an "image of the ghoulish execution crowd" misses the mark while
"depictions of passive crowds are more likely to approach the
truth."29 Death as a non-event, death which comes to a passive body,
the industrial production of death, death in emptiness: these are the
physical and spatial associations which surrounded the killing of the
King and of thousands of others.
The working of the guillotine will make sense to anyone who has
dealt with a state bureaucracy. Neutrality allows power to operate
304 FLESH AND STONE
without tesponsibility. Empty volume was a fitting space for the eva-
sive operation of power. To the extent revolutionary crowds suf-
fered from the mixed feelings which Lynn Hunt evokes, the empty
spaces conceived by Boullee and his colleagues also served a pur-
pose. In them, the crowd was freed from responsibility; the space
lifted the visceral burden of engagement. The crowd became a col-
lective voyeur.
But the Revolution was not just another machine of power; it
sought to create a new citizen. The dilemma faced by those fired by
revolutionary passion was how to fill an empty volume with human
value. In creating new revolutionary rituals and festivals, the organiz-
ers of the Revolution attempted to fill this void in the city.
3. FESTIVAL BODIES
The Parisian Streets swelled continually with popular demonstrations
in the early years of the Revolution. In "masquerades," for instance,
groups of people dressed up as priests or aristOcrats, using stOlen
clothing, parading around on donkeys and making fun of their previ-
ous rulers. The street also served as the public space of the sans-
culottes, poor, thin men without breeches, women dressed in tattered
muslin shifts-revolutionary bodies without artifice. As the Revolu-
tion progressed, masquerades became threatening to those at the tOp
of the revolutionary heap; the regime sought to discipline the street.
The sans-culottes, tOo, wanted more than reflections of themselves
in revolt; they who had known only suffering and denial in the past
needed to see what a revolutionary looked like when the Revolution
was consummated.
Successive revolutionary regimes thus sought to create formal fes-
tivals which choreographed the proper dress, gesture, and behavior
of a crowd of citizens, enacting abstract ideas in the human body.
Yet the French festivals of citizenship came to be caught in the same
trap as the purges of enemies; the rituals often ended by pacifying
and neutralizing the bodies of the citizens.
Resistance banished
It was in the second year of the Revolution that the organizers of
revolutionary festivals began systematically to explore open sites in
The Body Set Free 305
Anti-religious parade during the Revolution. Watercolor by Bericourr,
ca. 1790.
the city for these actIvltles. The histOrian Mona Ozouf ties this
impulse with the wave of feeling sweeping the city in 1790 that the
Revolution needed "emancipation from religious influence."3o While
the Revolution from its second year tOok aim at the machinery of
established religion, artists like David and Quatremere de Quincy
rather than priests tOok charge of civic ritual. Many older religious
rituals nevertheless continued under new guises and names; for
instance, scenarios of the Passion plays were replaced by the street
theatre in which a representative of the people tOok the role of the
risen Jesus, and members of the new ruling elite substituted for the
Apostles.
Two massive crowd festivals organized at the height of the Revolu-
tion in the spring of 1792 show how these spectacles made use of
the geography of Paris. The Festival of Chiiteauvieux occurred on
April 15, 1792; the Festival of Simonneau, meant as a response, tOok
place on June 3, 1792. The Festival of Chiiteauvieux in Paris "was
intended to honor ... the Swiss of Chiiteauvieux, who mutinied in
3 06 FLESH AND STONE
August 1790 and were rescued from the galleys," Mona Ozouf
writes; it was "a rehabilitation of rioters, if not a glorification of
riots," whereas the Festival of Simonneau "was intended ro honor
the mayor of Etampes, killed in a people's riot while upholding the
law on foodstuffs: a glorification, this time, of the victim of riot."31
Chateauvi eux was produced by the revolutionary artist Jacques-
Louis David, Simonneau by the architectural designer ard writer
Quatremere de Quincy. The volume of liberty in both played a dead-
ening role.
David's festival began at 10:00 A.M. in the same quarter, Saint-
Anroine, where the great food riot of 1790 had started. The route
chosen moved from the working-class district on the eastern edge of
the city wesrward across Paris ro the destination of the festival, the
great open space of the Champ de Mars. As in a religious festival,
David marked OUt "stations," or symbolic pausing points: the first
major station was the Bastille, where the crowd dedicated a statue of
Liberty; the second station was the Hotel de Ville, where leading
politicians like Danton and Robespierre joined the people; the third
station was the Place de la Revolution in the center of the city. Here
the stage designer blindfolded the statue of Louis XV which domi-
nated the square, and gave it a red Phrygian cap to wear; this symbol-
The Festival of Chi teauvieux, [5 April 1792. Contemporary engraving
by Berthault.
The Body Set Free
3 07
ized that royal justice ought to be impartial and that the King wore
the new garment of French citizenship. The crowd of rwenty to thirty
thousand made ItS final station in the Champ de Mars at dusk, twelve
hours after It had set OUt.
To encourage participation, David hit upon an inspired symbol: "it
was a noteworthy fact that marshals of the festival, poetically armed
with sheaves of wheat instead of riot sticks, took the place of the
public police."32 The symbolism of grain reversed the symbolism of
the foot riots: here grain was ceremonially present, a symbol of
plenty rather than scarcity. The unthreatening, life-giving sheaves
of wheat encouraged people along the route ro think there was no
disciplinary barrier among themselves; the newspaper Revolutions de
Paris observed that while "the chain of the procession broke many
times ... the onlookers soon filled up the gaps: everybody wanted
ro take part in the festival. ... " 33
The crowd moved amiably but without much sense of what it was
doing; this walking mass could see few of the costumes and ceremo-
nial Roats David had created. This confusion in the streets David
foresaw and tried to rectify at the climactic station of the festival in
the Champ de Mars. In the wide-open field of sixteen acres, he
ranged people in massive semicircular bands, six to seven thousand
ro a band, now imposing form on the crowd by keeping bands of
empty space berween each half-ring of people. A ceremony con-
sisting of a few simple acts was meant ro consummate an entire day.
A politician lit a bonfire on the Altar of the Fatherland, ro cleanse by
fire the impurity of unjust imprisonment in the gall eys; the crowd
sang a hymn to Liberty, composed for the event by the musician
Gossec and the lyricist M.-j. Chenier. Finally, according ro another
contemporary journal, Les Annales Patriotiques, the people danced
around the altar ro celebrate "patriotic happiness, perfect equality,
and civic fraternity."34
The scenario did nOt work Out as planned. Out in the open air of
the Champ de Mars, the words and tunes of the revolutionary song
composed for that day did not carry very far. David intended the
massive bands of people ro dance around the altar, but only those
close up heard the command to dance and knew what ro do. Partici-
pants spoke of their great confusion in trying to behave as citizens.
"I cannot say how dancing on the Champ de Mars made me a better
citizen," one declared; "we were bewildered," said another, "and so
soon made our way ro a tavern."3' To be sure, the very peacefulness
308 FLESH AND STONE
of the demonstration affirmed the solidarity of the people. But the
substance of this festival mattered to David and other revolutionary
designers. They waored to train the crowd of bodies, knowing spon-
taneous eruptions of the people could threaten the revolutionary
order as much as the Aocien Regime, and its scenario failed at the
end.
The streets bore, in such ceremonies, the most evident echoes of
the past: the procession of the damned, the stations of the saints-day
parades and the like. More, the street was a place whose very diversi-
ties posed obstacles to union, its economic purposes not
wiped away, its decayed houses not disappearing from sight, by the
parade of a new order. In an empty space, by coorrast, it seemed
possible to start over; the ceremonies conducted in emptiness had
nothing intervening, in the historian Joan Scott's view, between the
bodily gesture and its political referent, nothing in the way between
sign and symbol. 36
And yet that very erasure of the street seemed to pacify the body.
A young boy at a similar event on the Champ de Mars a few moorhs
later put David's problem simply and starkly:
he saw many people up on the altar of the fatherland; that he heard
the words "King" and "National Assembly" spoken, but he didn't
understand what was said about them . .. that, in the evening, he heard
it said that the red flag would arrive, that he looked around to flee;
that he noticed that on the altar of the fatherland they were saying that
good citizens had to remain there . .. . 37
Nothing stood in David's way: the great festival reached its consum-
mation out in the open, in unobstructed space, in a pure volume. At
that denouement, confusion and apathy reigned.
Quatremere de Quincy designed his counterfestival of Simonneau
as a display of legal authority and stability which would cow people
into more disciplined behavior. Instead of crowd marshals armed
with sheaves of wheat, Quatremere de Quincy armed his marshals
with rifles and bayonets. Like David, he was anything but indifferent
to the crowd; the whole poior of staging this spectacle was to make
an impression on the people of Paris. The organizers wanted people
to feel that a new regime was in charge, that the doors of the state
had closed on anarchy. Quatremere de Quincy drew upon the same
scenario David had used: the festival followed the same route, begin-
The Body Set Free 309
<.'
The Festival of Simonneau, 3 June 1792. Contemporary engraving by Ber-
thault.
ning in the eastern parts of the city, with stations at the Bastille, then
the Hotel de Ville, the Place de la Revolution, a consummation on
the Champ de Mars with a simple piece of stage business meaor to
bind the participaors together, the crowd crowning Simonneau's bust
with a wreath of laurel. Nature did help out at this moment, when
the heavens suddenly parted, dramatic flashes of lightning illumi-
nated the crowd as they presented arms to the statue, and artillery
boomed amidst the thunder. Yet this eve or too fell apart. The partic-
ipating group almost immediately disintegrated, not knowing what
to do or to say next to one another. Quatremere de Quincy had
thought the sheer volume of the open space would arouse the pub-
lic's sense of the majesty of the law. And the public had watched
listlessly this show of unity and strength on the field.
These festivals made clear a disturbing lesson about freedom. Free-
dom which seeks to overcome resistance, to abolish obstacles, to
start afresh with a blank slate-freedom conceived like a pure, trans-
pareor volume--dulls the body. It is an anesthetic. Freedom which
arouses the body does so by accepting impurity, difficulty, and
3 10 FLESH AND STONE
obstruction as pare of the very experience of liberty. The festivals of
the French Revolution mark a point in Western civilization where
this visceral experience of freedom was dispelled in the name of a
mechanics of movement-the ability to move anywhere, to move
without obstruction, to circulate freely, a freedom greatest in an
empty volume. That mechanics of movement has invaded a wide
swath of modern experience-experience which treats social, envi-
ronmental, or personal resistance, with its concomitant frustrations,
as somehow unfair and unjust. Ease, comfort, "user-friendliness" in
human relations come to appear as guarantees of individual freedom
of action. However, resistance is a fundamental and necessary expe-
rience for the human body: through feeling resistance, the body is
roused to take note of the world in which it lives. This is the secular
version of the lesson of exile from the Garden. The body comes to
life when coping with difficulty.
Social touching
When modern society began to treat unobstructed movement as
freedom, it fell into a quandary about what to do with the desires
represented by Marianne's body; these are fraternal desires for con-
nection to other people, a social rather than merely sexual touch.
Hogareh's engraving of Beer Street had forey years before the advent
of Marianne shown an imaginary city of people touching each other
in a sociable way. As the volume of liberey began to pacify the body,
such sociability became an ideal to which people paid correct but
abstract obeisance, as one might pass public monuments on the way
to work.
Marianne herself appeared as such a monument in a festival staged
on August 10, 1793. The "Festival of the Unity and Indivisibiliry of
the Republic" featured a high-pressute water fountain fitted up in the
breasts of an enormous, nude female sculpture, the woman sitting on
a dais, her hair braided around her head in Egyptian fashion. Dubbed
"the Fountain of Regeneration," this revolutionary goddess poured
foreh white-colored water in two streams from her lactating breasts,
the water scooped up and drunk in bowls by revolutionary celebrants
at the bottom of the plinth, symbolizing their nourishment by the
"incorruptible milk" of the Revolution.
When the festival began, the president of the political Convention
gave "a speech explaining how nature had made all men free and
The Body Set Free
.A" I/bllll,' hz i'!cl)t';'
.rlll' ;';t'Ru/lle I 'la. . .lI11,rlt/!t..,
3 J J
The Fountain of Regenerarion, from the Festival of (he Unity and Indivisi-
bility of [he Republic, 10 August 1793.
312 FLESH AND STONE
equal (presumably in their access to the breast), and the fountain
bore the inscription, 'Nous sommes tous ses en/ants' ['We are all her
children'}."38 Yet only the political leaders of the moment were per-
mitted to drink her incorruptible milk. The organizers of the festival
justified this unequal access to her breasts as a matter of making the
spectacle simple and visible to all. The extant drawings of this event
show few people paying this self-serving art, in any event, much
attention. A contemporary drawing by Monnet of the crowd gath-
ered round the Fountain of Regeneration shows people arrayed in
great confusion on the Champ de Mars just as they were in the festi-
vals of Chateauvieux and Simonneau.
39
The historian Marie-Helene Huet has observed that "to make a
spectator of the people ... is to maintain an alienation that is the
real form of power.'>40 As if to emphasize that truth, contact with
Marianne's body during this festival served as a prelude to a further
"station" for the day; the crowd moved from Marianne to a Statue of
Hercules-a Hercules sculpted with an enormous muscled chest, his
right arm carrying a sword-to swear fealty in front of him to the
Revolution. In answer to his body, the crowd was to close ranks in
the shape of a military phalanx. The script thus called for a move-
ment from female to male, from the domestic to the military, from
the sociable to the obedient.
As the Revolution hardened, Herakles (or his Roman version,
Hercules), the male warrior par excellence, took Marianne's place.
The modern historian Maurice Agulhon has traced the ways in which
Marianne become depicted as ever more a passive Goddess of Lib-
erty; during the years from 1790 to 1794 her facial features softened,
her body lost its muscles, her poses became more tranquil and pas-
sive, from a warrior striding into battle to a seated woman. These
changes in the symbol of Marianne paralleled the experience of
women in the course of the Revolution, women who were the Revo-
lution's driving force in the beginning, who organized their own
political clubs and mass movements, only to be suppressed by groups
of male radicals as the Revolution slid into the Terror in 1793. In
comparing the space Marianne and Hercules occupied in this festi-
val , modern historians like Mary Jacobus and Lynn Hunt have thus
concluded that "the edging out of Liberty, or 'Marianne: by this deci-
sively masculine figure of popular strength .. . was in part a response
to the threat of women's increasing political participation.,,41
Yet Marianne's presence was not so easily to be banished: As a
living symbol, she represents the desire to touch and be touched.
Another name for this desire is "trust. " As the modern reflection of
The Body Set Pree 3 1 3
an older religious symbol, the Virgin mother, Marianne represents
an emblem of compassion, of nurturing those who suffer. But, in the
kind of revolutionary space imagined by Boullee and implemented
by David, Marianne became inaccessible. She could neither touch
nor be touched.
A curious and moving reflection of these themes came at the time
from one of the Revolution's designers of the festival body, Jacques-
Louis David. Lynn Hunt points out that "the heroes of the French
Revolution were dead martyrs, not living leaders. "42 How could the
Revolution honor their suffering? David sought to do so in famous
portraits of two revolutionary martyrs, one ofJean-Paul Marat, assas-
sinated in his bath on July 13, 1793, the other of the thirteen-year-
old Joseph Bara, who had died earlier that year fighting off counter-
revolutionaries in the countryside. In both portraits, empty space
takes on a tragic value.
David's rendering of that tragic value in Marat's death has perhaps
been lost in the course of time, for David transformed the scene in
which Marat was forced to live. Marat suffered from a painful skin
disease which could only be alleviated by immersion in cool water,
so he spent much of his working day in a tub receiving people or
writing on a board laid over the top. A wealthy man, Marat had made
his bathroom a comfortable chamber, decorating it with white wall-
paper on which antique columns were painted; there was a large map
placed on the wall behind the tub. Some contemporary painters who
sought to represent Marat's death depicted in detail the room in
which Charlotte Corday stabbed the revolutionary journalist. Others
decorated the dying Marat's body with symbols of virtue: in one of
these etchings, for instance, Marat is wearing a crown of laurel in his
bath; in another, he is somehow bathing while dressed in a toga.
David has scraped away the crown of laurel, the toga, the decor.
He fills the upper half of his painting with an empty space made from
a neutral background painted in green-brown tones. The bottom half
he fills with the dying Marat in his bath, holding in one hand
stretched out on the writing board the letter Marat received from
Charlotte Corday which gained her entry to his chamber; the other
hand falls over the side of the tub, clutching a pen. Marat's naked
body is exposed, but here too David has stripped the surface; there
are no boils or scabs on the skin, which is white, hairless, and
smooth, colored only by dribbles of blood from the small slit Corday
made in Marat's chest when she stabbed him. In front of the tub are
314
FLESH AND STONE
Jacques-Louis David, The Death 0/ Mara!, 1793. Mw,es Royeaux des Beaux-
Arts, Brusse!J.
a writing pedestal, an inkpot, and a piece of paper; David renders
these objects as a little still life of their own, "in the manner of Char-
din," one historian of the painting observes
3
Stillness and empti-
ness mark this scene of a violent assassination; in looking at the
painting a half century later, Baudelaire evoked that emptiness: "in
the cold air of this room, on these cold walls, around this cold and
The Body Se! Free 315
funereal bathtub" one becomes aware of Marat's heroism But the
painting struck Baudelaire, as it has others, as impersonal. Filled with
a heroic story, it does nOt acknowledge Marat's human pain. Com-
passion is absent in this neutral and empty space.
The portrait of ]oseph Bara evokes martyrdom in a similarly
empty space, but this memorial is filled with compassion. David left
this canvas unfinished, and his painterly intentions made it perhaps
unfinishable. The young boy, killed in the Vendee as he sought ro
defend a revolutionary outpOSt, is stripped naked and the dead body
is set against the same neutral background as in Marat, an even more
extreme emptiness since there is no decor which tells his story. Left
in this barren state, the painting focuses all attention on the body
itself. Death, erasure, emptiness-these are the marks the Revolu-
tion has made upon the body.
The painter has however made the young]oseph Bara into a sexu-
ally ambiguous figure. The boy's hips are wide, his feet small and
delicately formed. David twists the torso toward the viewer so that
the figure's genitals are shown frontally; the boy has little pubic hair
and his penis is folded away between his legs. Young Bara's hair curls
Jacques-Louis David, The Death 0/ Bara, 1794. Mus,e du Louvre, Paris.
3 I 6 FLESH AND STONE
down around his neck like a girl's loosened coiffure. To say, as the
art historian Warren Roberts does, that David has created an androg-
ynous figure does nOt quite hit the mark
4 5
Nor is this portrait of a
martyr a "revalorization of femininity." This revolutionary hero
looks as different as one could imagine from the virile, heroic youths
David painted before the Revolution in such canvasses as The Oath
0/ the Horatii, for death has emptied Bara's body of sex. His childlike
innocence, his unselfishness, place him within the circle of all the
hopes contained in the figure ofMarianne. ]oseph Bara, the last hero
of the Revolution, has returned to Marianne; he is her child and
perhaps her vindication.
The Death 0/ Bara forms a stark COntrast to Piero's Flagellation.
Piero created a great icon of place, of compassion made legible as an
urban scene. David depicts compassion in an empty space. Compas-
sion in the Revolution could be conveyed through a body but not as
a place. This moral divide between flesh and stone has become one
of the marks of the secularization of society.
CHAPTER TEN
Urban
Individualism
E. M, Forster's London
1. THE NEW ROME
1\
American businessman walking through London on the eve
of the First World War might be pardoned the conviction
that his country should never have rebelled. Edwardian Lon-
don displayed its imperial magnificence in ribbons of magnificent
buildings running mile after mile, vast government offices in the cen-
ter flanked by the dense economic cells of the banker's and trader's
City to the east, the imposing mansions of Mayfair, Knightsbridge,
and Hyde Park stretching west giving way to more middle-class but
still imposing residences, all slathered block after block in ornate
Stucco. American cities like Boston and New York had wealthy
swatches, to be sure-the band of mansions running up Fifth Avenue
in New York, the new Back Bay in Boston-but London displayed
the spoils of a global reach unknown since the Roman Empire.
3 I 8
FLESH AND STONE
The growth of London. A
map of its population in four
eras: 1784, 1862, 1914, and
1980
Urban Individualism 319
Henry James had called Edwardian London "the modern Rome," and
in size and wealth the comparison seemed apt. In the modern impe-
rial capital the relentless continuity of its ceremonial fabric seemed
insulated from equally vast scenes elsewhere in London of poverty
and social distress as the ancient city or the islands of wealth in mod-
ern New York and Boston were not.
A French politician might envy the city for other reasons. Though
English cooking rendered London unthinkable as a permanent habi-
tation, the Frenchman risking a visit might be struck by the city's
political orderliness, class envy seeming among the English stronger
than class warfare, the upper classes expecting and exacting defer-
ence in everyday life from the lower classes. Many continental visi-
tors indeed noticed the great courtesy which prevailed among the
English working classes toward strangers and foreigners, a courtesy
far at odds with the stereotype of John Bull who detested "abroad."
The visiting Parisian might contrast London, which had never known
a revolution, to the explosions which had occurred in Paris since
1789, in 1830, in 1848, and in 1871. The young Georges C1em-
enceau, for instance--who, though a gastric martyr, wandered the
streets of London in a state of sociological awe--connected the inter-
nal order of the city to its imperial fortunes. This unimaginably
wealthy place had placated, Clemenceau thought, its poor with the
spoils of conquest.
Of course first impressions mislead us about the felicity of places
as about people, and are often preferable precisely for that reason;
these false impressions are, however, instructive. Take the compari-
son between London and Rome.
Hadrian's Rome lay at the center of an Empire which the emperors
and their engineers knitted together, physically and socially, through
a great road network; the fortunes of capital and provinces depended
on each other. Edwardian London had a different relation to the land
beyond it. As London and other British cities grew in the later nine-
teenth century, the English countryside rapidly emptied, the victim
of a crisis prompted by international trade; the English cities were
increasingly fed by grain grown in America, clothed with wool from
Australia, cotton from Egypt and India. This discontinuity occurred
rapidly, within the lifetime of an Edwardian adult. "Even as late as
1871 more than half the population lived in villages or in towns of
less than twenty thousand people," an observer notes; "only JUSt over
a quarter lived in cities, and the mark for the city, in that computa-
tion, is a hundred thousand people.'" By the time forty years later
320 FLESH AND STONE
E. M. Forster wrote Howards End, his great novel contrasting city
and country, three quarters of the English population lived in cities,
a quarter of this within the greater London orbit, leaving a swath of
desolate fields and distressed villages in its wake. The Rome of
Hadrian's time, though an enormous city about the same size as King
Edward VII's London, required six hundred years to grow to that
size.
The modern geographic transformation swept over all the West-
ern nations during the laner half of the nineteenth century. In 1850,
France, Germany, and the United States, like Britain, were domi-
nandy rural societies; a century later they were dominandy urban,
highly concentrated at their cores. Berlin and New York grew at the
same headlong rate, roughly, as did London, and both cities grew as
the national countryside submined to the /lux of international trade.
For good reason the hundred years spanning 1848 to 1945 are called
the age of "urban revolution."
The growth of manufacturing and free markets, however, as envis-
aged by Adam Smith, cannot alone explain such rapid urban change.
London, like New York or Paris or Berlin, was not dominandy a
city of big manufacturing enterprises-urban land was too expensive.
Nor were these cities free market centers; they were the places
where government, big banks, and corporate trusts sought to control
markets for goods and services nationally and internationally. Again,
the cities did not grow simply because they amacted victims-vic-
tims of rural disasters, or of political or religious persecution, though
there were plenty of all three. Large numbers of unanached young
people came voluntarily as well, entrepreneurs of their own lives not
deterred by lack of capital or of work. The " ~ r b a n revolution," like
most sudden social changes, was an overdetermined event-and
experienced first hand as nearly senseless growth. London seemed
on the one hand to exemplify the sudden, vast urban swelling
occurring throughout the Western world, and yet to promise that it
need nOt be a disaster.
A second contrast berween Imperial Rome and Imperial London
lay in the fact that Rome served as the model for cities throughout
the Roman Empire; during the great spurt of urbanization at the end
of the nineteenth century, London increasingly diverged from other
English cities, particularly those in the North and Midlands like
Manchester and Birmingham. Clemenceau imagined the English city
to be a place of stability, of people fixed in their place in the pecking
order, because of the progress of manufacturing; his illusion would
Urban Individualism
321
have been better served in these industrial cities filled with mills
factories, and shipyards than in London. Here the economy mixed
shIppIng, crafrwork, heavy industrial, financial, and imperial manage-
ment, and an enormous trade in luxuries and luxury goods. The critic
Raymond Williams therefore says that its "social relations ... were
more complex, more mystified" than in the North
2
In Howards End,
Forster writes about London similarly that "money had been spent
and renewed, reputations won and lost, and the city herself emblem-
atic of their lives, rose and fell in a continual /lUX."3 '
The illusory comparison to Rome might have suggested to the visi-
tor Impressed by London's grandeur that a firm government had the
populace in hand. It was such central control which the visitor's own
cities sought for themselves: after the upheavals of the Commune in
1871, the authorities in Paris had perfected the instruments of an
efficient centralized government of the city; after the breaking of
the. Boss Tweed organization in New York, reformers were similarly
tryIng to forge these tools of rational civic control.
Unlike New York or Paris, though, London lacked a central gov-
ernment structure. Until 1888, London "had no city government
other than a Metropolitan Board of Works, dozens of litde vestries
and parishes, and forty-eight boards of guardians. "4 Its central gov-
ernment after the reforms of 1888 remained comparatively weak.
Yet the absence of central political authority did not mean the
absence of central power. That central power lay in the hands of
the great landowners who privately controlled large tracts of land in
the city.
From the building of the first Bloomsbury squares in the eigh-
teenth century, urban development in London consistendy razed
hOUSIng and shops inhabited by the very poor CO create homes for
the middle class or the rich. The fact that hereditary landowners con-
trolled large tracts of land made these sudden transformations possi-
ble, WIth little public intervention or restraint. The aristocratic
landowners were free to build, and their urban "renewal" schemes
resulted in further concentrating poverry in London, the displaced
poor crowdIng ever more closely together; as a Royal Commission
on the Housing of the Working Classes observed in 1885,
Rookeries [dilapidated slums] are destroyed, greatly to the sanitary
and SOCIal benefit of the neighbourhood, but no kind of habitation for
the poor has been substicuted . . .. The consequence of such a pro-
ceeding is that the un housed population crowd into the neighbouring
322
FLESH AND STONE
streets and couns when che demolitions commence, and when the new
dwellings are completed little is done (Q relieve this increased
pressure.
5
During the course of the nineteenth century, urban development
schemes pushed poverty to the east of the financial City of London,
to the south of the Thames, and to the north of Regent's Park.
Where poverty existed in the center, it remained in concentrated
pockets, hidden from public view by the stucco. Earher than Pans,
more comprehensively than New York, London created a cIty of
class-homogenous, disconnected spaces.
In its fortunes London mirrored the great differences in wealth
which marked England, Wales, and Scotland as a whole. In 1910, the
richest 10 percent of the families in Great Britain owned about 90
percent of the national wealth; the richest 1 percent alone owned 70
percent. The urbanized society maintained pre-industrial divisions
between poverty and wealth, if on new terms; in 1806, 85 percent
of the nation's wealth was owned by the richest 10 percent, 65 per-
cent by the top 1 percent. Over the course of the century, some
landed magnates became poorer while more manufacturers and
imperial businessmen took their place in that upper crust. By con-
trast, fully half of the population of the nation lived off incomes that
comprised only 3 percent of the national wealth, and very few lon-
doners broke free from such deprivation
6
In this way, Clemenceau
had it dead wrong: the spoils of conquest had not reached the mass
of people.
Given these facts of the modern imperial city, how then to account
for a visitor's sense of fullness and of public order? Though social
unrest certainly made itself felt, many Londoners were themselves
impressed that their capital had managed to reap the benefits of capi-
talism without the challenges of revolution. This stability could not
conceivably be explained by English indifference to the class system.
Though "the class war is hardly an English prerogative," as the critic
Alfred Kazin says, the English have been far more sensitive to class
than their American and German counterparts. Kazin thinks, for
instance of the remark George Orwell made in 1937, ''Whichever
way you'turn, this curse of class differences confronts you like a wall
of stone. Or rather it is not so much like a wall of stone as the plate
f
. "7
glass pane 0 an aquanum.
Other forces at work seemed to keep this great, unequal city from
open revolution. The urbanist Waiter Benjamin called Paris "The
Urban I ndivid1lalism 323
capital of the nineteenth century," based on its exemplary culture.
London can also be taken as the capital of the nineteenth century,
based on its exemplary individualism. The nineteenth century was
indeed often spoken of as the Age of Individualism, a phrase Alexis
de Tocqueville coined in the second volume of Democracy in America.
The brave side of individualism may be self-reliance, but Tocqueville
saw its more melancholic side, which he conceived as a kind of civic
solitude. "Each person," he wrote, "behaves as though he is a stranger
to the destiny of all the others .... As for his transactions with his
fellow citizens, he may mix among them, but he sees them not; he
touches them, but does not feel them; he exists only in himself and
for himself alone. And if on these terms there remains in his mind a
sense of family, there no longer remains a sense of society."8
Individualism of this sort, he thought, might bring a certain order
to society-the co-existence of people inward-turned, tolerating one
another out of mutual indifference. Such individualism had a particu-
lar meaning in urban space. The planning of nineteenth-century
cities aimed to create a crowd of freely moving individuals, and to
discourage the movement of organized groups through the city. Indi-
vidual bodies moving through urban space gradually b e ~ a m e
detached from the space in which they moved, and from the people
the space contained. As space became devalued through motion,
individuals gradually lost a sense of sharing a fate with others.
The triumph of Tocquevillian individualism in London was very
much on the mind of the novelist E. M. Forster in 1910 when he
wrote Howards End. His book opens famously with the epigraph,
"Only connect ... ", a social as much as a psychological command.
Forster's novel shows us a city that seems to hold together socially
precisely because people don't connect personally; they live isolated,
mutually indifferent lives which establish an unhappy equilibrium
in society.
The novel reflects upon London's extraordinarily rapid transfor-
mation during the larger urban revolution; as to many others of his
time, speed seemed to Forster the central fact of modern life. The
pace of change seems epitomized to the novelist by the appearance
of automobiles, and Howards End is full of anathemas against the
new machine. The Tocquevillian strain appears as Forster depicts
Edwardian London as a dead city though pulsing with frenetic
changes--if London is a place of "anger and telegrams," he says, it is
also full of scenes of "stupid sensate dullness." Forster seeks to evoke
a pervasive, if hidden, sensate apathy as a result in the conduct of
324 FLESH AND STONE
everyday life in the city-something invisible to the walking tour-
ist-an apathy among the wealthy and fashionable as among the
masses of the poor amidst the sheer lIux of life. Individualism and
the facts of speed together deaden the modern body; it does not
connect.
Howards End drew all this from a rather lurid tale of an illegitimate
child, a crossed inheritance, and a murder. As Virginia Woolf-no
great enthusiast for the novel---<ommented, Forster invites us to
read him as a social critic rather than as an artistic craftsman. "We
are tapped on the shoulder," she observed; "we are to notice this, to
take heed of that."9 Indeed, Howards End frequently hustles the
reader in a few paragraphs through cataclysmic events altering peo-
ple's fortunes so that the author can return to pondering their sig-
nificance at leisure. If the novelist of ideas often paid an arristic price
for thinking too much, this novel ended with a surprising insight
which remains provocative: the individual body can come back to
sensate life by experiencing displacement and difficulty. The com-
mand "Only connect ... " can be obeyed only by people who
acknowledge that there exist real impediments to their individual,
rapid, free movement. A living culture treats resistance as a positive
experience.
In this chapter we shall look more closely at the developments
in modern society which led to the novelist's indictment of urban
individualism-the experiences of bodily movement and bodily pas-
sivity on which he bases his tale. His surprising denouement suggests
a new way to think about urban culture.
2. MODERN ARTERIES AND VEINS
Nineteenth-century urban design enabled the movement of large
numbers of individuals in the city, and disabled the movement of
groups, groups of the threatening sorr which appeared in the French
Revolution. The nineteenth-century urban designers drew upon
their predecessors in the Enlightenment who conceived of the city
as arreries and veins of movement, but put that imagery to a new
use. The Enlightened urbanist had imagined individuals stimulated
by movement through the city's crowds; the nineteenth-century
urbanist imagined individuals protected by movement from the
crowd. Three great construction projects during the century mark
this change: the building of Regent's Park and Regent Street in Lon-
Urban Individualism 325
don, a project directed early in the nineteenth century; the rebuild-
ing of the Parisian streets during the time of Baron Haussmann in
the middle of the century; and the making of the London U nder-
ground at the end of the century. All three were enormous underrak-
Ings; we shall explore only how these projects taught people to
move.
Regent's Park
In both eighteenth-century Paris and London, planners had cre-
ated parks as the lungs of the city, rather than as sanctuaries like the
urban gardens of the Middle Ages. The eighteenth-century park-as-
lung required policing of its plants. In Paris, the authorities enclosed
the King's park in the Tuileries, once open to the public at large,
with railings in the mid-1750s, in order to protect the plants which
provided the salubrious air for the city. The great London urban
squares begun during the eighteenth century were by the early nine-
teenth century similarly fenced in. The analogy of park to lung was,
as the modern urbanist Bruno Forrier observes, simple and direct:
the people lIowing through the city's street-arteries were meant to
circulate round these enclosed parks, breathing their fresh air just as
the blood is refreshed by the lungs. The planners of the eighteenth
century drew on the contemporary medical premise that, in Forrier's
words, "nothing can actually become corrupted that is mobile and
forms a mass."1O The greatest work of urban planning in London, the
creation of Regent Street and Regent's Park early in the nineteenth
century, underraken by the future King George IV working with the
architect John Nash, was based on the principle of park-as-lung, but
adapted to a city where greater speed was possible.
Created out of the old Marylebone Park, the sheer landmass of
Regent's Park is enormous. N ash wanted this great landmass graded
level, and decided to make the lung in Regent's Park largely Out of
grass, rather than trees; many of the tree plantings we now see in the
park, such as those around Queen Mary's Rose Garden, are of later
origin. A great, lIat, grassy open space might seem the perfect invita-
tion to organized groups, and at times during the Victorian era that
invitation was accepted. Yet Nash's plan worked against such use of
open space by creating a wall of rapidly moving traffic around the
park. The road ringing Regent's Park outside its railings served as
the belt carrying this heavy volume of traffic; many natural out-
croppings and stray buildings along the belt were removed in order
326
1
..... ".-.
.. "' ..... _ .
. --... " ..... .
............
- ........... .
........ _ ... _ ..
:'::'-::"=':':' ..
--_ ... _ .....
...... -_._ ..
,,--"-'"
.............. -.
.... -_ ..
.. _ ..........
--
--
; ~ ~
--_ ..
-_._"
_._n
--
FLESH AND STONE
Site plan for John Nash's design of Regent's Park in London, 1812.
to make sure the carriages could move without interruption, and
eventually the bed of a canal running through Regent's Park was also
altered so that it did not disturb traffic. Dickens thought the belt
road around the park resembled a racetrack. Some interior roads
were similarly built for a heavy volume of carriage traffic, and laid
out so that these carriages could move fast.
If Nash's London was a site for speed, it seemed an unlikely space
for individuals. The urban squares which appeared in London in the
eighteenth century belie, to the eye, the fact that London is domi-
nantly a city of individual houses. The grand houses facing the
squares were constructed in large blocks of fifteen to rwenty to give
the impression of a severe unity; London building codes in the eigh-
teenth century, especially a law passed in 1774, forbade signs or
other individual markers. In Bloomsbury, the plain building blocks
contrasted to the floral profusion planted in the squares; they also
made a sharp demarcation between outside and inside, public and
private.
Urban Individualism 327
Although Regent's Park is bigger than these earlier squares, Nash
designed the buildings facing it across the traffic stream as though it
were similar in kind, lining it with individual houses. These Nash
bound together by making liberal use of stucco. Stucco is the archi-
tect's medium for creating illusion; when wet, it can be shaped to
resemble the great squat stones supporting Renaissance palaces or
poured into molds to create elaborate, finely detailed columns. In
the terrace houses on Regent's Park Nash slathered stucco across the
housing fronts in such a way as to bind these immense blocks
together, the detailed stucco crusts creating a kind of rhythm from
block to block.
Yet this building material could also signify social disconnection.
The blocks ringing Regent's Park were almost self-consciously mag-
nificent. By their very elaborateness they helped draw a line berween
the space of the park and the urban fabric outside it. That nether
fabric was patchy, poor, and disordered. In the areas surrounding
Regent's Park, Nash's plan pushed the poor who had formerly lived
on some of its landmass to the north, toward the Chalk Farm and
Camden Town districts. The immense space lined by grand houses,
walled together in stucCO, like the stream of traffic, made the park
difficult to penetrate. As a result, Regent's Park in its early years was
a largely empty space. The design coupled rapid movement to "de-
densification," a useful piece of planning jargon. This rapid motion,
moreover, was individualized transport-it occurred in hansoms
and carriages.
Nash's plan envisaged traffic coming to the park not from the
immediate environs-for behind the magnificent walls few people
could have afforded a carriage-but from the center of the city. At
its southern edge, Regent's Park gives way through a connector to
the great boulevard which Nash created, Regent Street. To create
this boulevard Nash had to deal with a number of immovable obsta-
cles, such as a church which could not be torn down, obstacles they
overcame by designing a street that curved around whatever it could
not destroy. Again the street was designed for high-volume traffic,
here on foot as well as by carriage; again there were immense blocks
of uniform buildings. In Regent Street these served a new commer-
cial purpose, for Nash designed continuous shop space at the
ground-floor level-whereas the shops in older London houses had
been more erratically adapted from their original domestic inten-
tions. Nash had moved the principle of the shopping arcades ofLon-
don, which were glass-roofed basilicas with shops along the spine,
into the street.
328 FLESH AND STONE
Regent Street was an epochal event in urban design. It coupled a
continuous, heavy traffic stream to single-function use at ground
level. This organization of the street created a division between the
street and the territory behind the street lining, as in the park Nash
built to the north. Commerce did not overflow into the side streets;
the carriage trade could not penetrate far into the ancient tangle, and
the orientation of the pedestrian flow of the street, as in a basilica,
lay along the spine rather than at right angles to it. The single-func-
tion street created a spatial division akin to the division of labor, the
street line serving only the purposes of up-market trade while spaces
nearby served craft or business functions which had no necessary
relation to the street.
The ensemble of Regent's Park and Regent Street gave a new
social meaning to motion. The use of traffic to insulate and thin out
space, as occurred in Regent's Park, diffused the gathering of a pur-
poseful crowd. The pressure of linear pedestrian movement on
Regent Street made, and still makes, it difficult for a stationary crowd
to form, to listen to a speech, for instance. Instead, both street and
park privileged the individual moving body. To be sure, Regent
Street was itself, and remains, anything but lifeless. More, Nash left
Ulster Terrace, Regent's Park, London, built 1824.
Urban I ndividualtjm 329
little in the way of writing to indicate that he intended these social
consequences to come from his design. Like many English urbanists,
he abhorred the kind of theorizing in which Boullee engaged. Yet
mass movement on a single-function street was the necessary first
step in privileging individuals pursuing their own concerns in a
crowd.
Haussmann's Three Networks
The work Nash did in London prefigured the plans the Emperor
Napoleon III and his chief urban planner, Baron Haussmann, laid
twO generations later in Paris. The motions of the masses were on
the minds of these officials, who had lived through the Revolutions
of 1848 and 1830, and who preserved vivid memories of the Great
Revolution in the time of their grandfathers. Much more than we
know was true of Nash, they consciously sought to privilege the
motions of individuals in order to repress the movements of the
urban masses.
The plan for the remaking of Paris in the 1850s and 1860s was
Napoleon Ill's own. In 1853, "on the day when Haussmann took
the oath of office as the Prefect of the Seine," the historian David
Pinckney writes,
Napoleon handed to him a map of Paris on which he had drawn in
four contrasting colors (the colors indicating the relative urgency he
attached to each project) the streets that he proposed to build. This
map, the work of Louis Napoleon alone, became the basic plan for the
transformation of the city in (he twO following decades. 11
Haussmann using this guide carried out the greatest urban redevel-
opment scheme of modern times, gutting much of the medieval and
Renaissance urban fabric, building new, uniform street walls of
enveloping, straight streets that carried high volumes of carriage traf-
fic, the plan of the streets connecting the center of the city to its
outlying districts. He rebuilt the central market of Paris using a new
building material, cast iron-shouting to his architecr Baltard, "Iron!
Iron! Nothing but iron!"" He built great monuments like the Paris
Opera, redesigned the city's parks, and created a new underground
network of giant sewer canals.
In his streetmaking, Haussmann put Roman principles of linear
form to work in new ways. Napoleon III had handed his prefect little
\
\
"-
Principal new streets in Paris built between 1850 and 1870.
////
/
more than a neat sketch. To make the actual streets of the plan,
Haussmann construcred tall wooden towers up which his assistants-
whom he called "urban geometers"-ascended, measuring out
straight streets with compass and ruler to the old walls of the city.
The directions the urban geometers looked, especially to the north
and northeast, covered terrain largely built over with workers'
houses, craftworks, and small factories. In cutting through these ter-
ritories, Haussmann separated and divided communities of the poor
with boulevards flowing with traffi c.
As in Nash's belt around Regent's Park, traffic flow now created a
wall of moving vehicles, behind which the poor districrs lay in frag-
ments. The width of these streets was finely calculated moreover in
terms of Haussmann's fears of the movement of crowds in revolt.
The street width permitted two army wagons to travel abreast,
enabling the militia, if necessary, to fire into the communities lying
beyond the sides of the Street wall. Again, as around Regent's Park,
the street wall composed a continuous block of buildings, with shops
on the ground floor and apartments above, the richest inhabitants
nearest the street, the poorest nearest [he sky. Haussmano's efforts
/
,
\
I
I
I
I
I'
\
\
I
\
I
\
\
I
I
I
I
I
I
)
Urban Individualism 331
in the poorest districts focused almost exclusively on the facades of
buildings; "builders had to conform to certain standards of height
and to erect prescribed facades, but behind those facades they were
free to build crowded and airless tenements, and many of them
did."1 3
The urban map produced by Haussmann and his geometers
divided the city into three "networks." The First Network dealt with
the tangle of streets originally formed by the medieval city; Hauss-
mann's effort here was to cut through buildings and straighten streets
on the territOry close to the Seine, in order to make the old city
usable by carriage traffic. The Second Network consisted of streets
which connected the city to the periphery, beyond its walls called
the octroi; as the streets extended Out to the periphery, the city
administration took power over the localities now connected to the
center. The Third Network was more amorphous, consisting of con-
nector streets between the major rOutes out of the city, and linking
streets between the First and Second Networks.
In Haussmann's scheme, the streets of the First Network served
as urban arteries of the kind L'Enfant had already built in Washing-
tOn. The relation of built form to the moving body mattered, monu-
ments, churches, or other structures marking the progress of a
vehicle or a walking body. The street linking the Palais-Royal, just
north of the Louvre, to the new opera house was such a First Net-
work artery, as was the rue de Rivoli linking the city hall to the
Church of Saint-Antoine.
The Second Network streets served as the city's veins. Movement
in them was to be largely out from the city, oriented to commerce
and light industry, since Haussmann hardly desired to draw more
poor people in tOward the center. Here the precise nature of the
built form lining the street mattered less. The Boulevard du Centre,
which we know today as the Boulevard de Sebastopol, was such an
urban vein, stretching from the Place du Chiitelet out to the northern
city gate of Saint-Denis. This great street exemplified the social con-
trol contained in linear form. Almost a hundred feet wide and a mile
long, the Boulevard de SebastOpol cut in two a dense, irregular, and
poor territOry. The old street and building fabric did nOt feed into
or relate to this vein, streets often joining the boulevard at awkward
or even impassable angles. Nor was the Boulevard de SebastOpol
meant to bring nourishment to these fragmented spaces behind its
street wall; instead, it was meant to provide a way to feed goods to
the north. Haussmann indeed conceived it as a one-way street flow-
332 FLESH AND STONE
ing in that direction. Above all, a Second Network road of this sort
was to be a space where vehicles could move fast.
The map of the Third Network, as befitted its purposes, consisted
of both arteries and veins. Haussmann's aborted proposal for the rue
Caulaincourt is typical of this type; it confronted the problem of how
to move wagons loaded with goods around the Montmartre ceme-
tery at the north end of the city, connecting traffic between the Sec-
ond Network veins to the east and to the west. Here Haussmann
was forced to disturb the dead rather than the living, running part of
the road over the cemetery; this plunged him, in inimitably French
fashion, into extensive lawsuits with the families of the departed,
haggling about the price of air rights over the dead. But the rue
Caulaincourt project aroused more serious opposition, because it
dramatized just how much the new geography of mobility in Paris
violated all aspects of the city's life.
In his great study of nineteenth-century Parisian culture, Waiter
Benjamin described the glass-roofed arcades of the city as "urban
capillaries," all the movements which gave pulsing life to the city
concentrated in these small, covered passages with their special
shops, little cafes, and surging clots of people. The Boulevard de
Sebastopol was the scene of another motion, a thrust which divided,
a directional motion too rapid, too pressed, to attach itself to such
eddies of life. Again, like Regent Street, the Boulevard de Sebasto-
pol was in its nineteenth-century form a vivid space. If it broke apart
the urban crowd as a political group, it plunged individuals in wag-
ons, carriages, and on foot into an almost frenzied whirl. Yet, as a
design, it too proved ominous. For twO new steps had been taken in
privileging motion over the claims of the people: the design of street
traffic become divorced from the design of building mass along the
street, only the facade mattering; and the urban vein made the street
into a means to escape the urban center, rather than dwell in it.
The London Underground
The social revolution inaugurated by the London Underground
is usually described as one of getting people into the city. But the
developers of the Underground system learned from Haussmann's
network system; they sought to get people Out of the city, as well as
into it. That outward movement had a class character, and one with
which even the most resolute fldneur of the streets must sympathize.
Urban Individualism 333
The London Underground Railway, from Universal Illustrated, 1867.
Domestic servants were the single largest group of poor workers
in Mayfair, Knightsbridge, Bayswater, and other wealthy districts of
London at the end of the nineteenth century, as in affluent Paris,
Berlin, and New York. Allied to house servants was a secondary
army of service workers-menders of domestic appliances, purvey-
ors of domestic necessities, handlers of coaches, horses, and the like.
The live-in house servants mixed with their employers in the most
intimate scenes of family life; during the London social season, which
lasted from late May to August each year, a third army of some
twenty thousand young girls swarmed up from the country to assist
young ladies with the arrangement of their clothes and hair when
the ladies were presented to fashionable society. Edwardian London
represents the last age in European history when rich and poor
would live in such domestic intimacy; after the Great War machines
would increasingly take the place of servants.
Most of the secondary army of workers servicing rich homes, how-
ever as well as the massive numbers of clerks and low-level service
workers required by the imperial bureaucracy and the city, lived
packed together in the dense pockets of old London untouched by
the projects of the big landowners; by the middle of the nineteenth
century, many of these poor but employed laborers crowded as well
334 FLESH AND STONE
into sections of the East End and the South Bank formerly inhabited
only by derelicts or by temporary lodgers like seamen.
The pockets of poor housing in the center and the housing in the
East End and on the South Bank displayed a far different city than
the monuments of imperial stucco. Here, one might think, one had
come at last CO a city truly resembling ancient Rome, the Rome of
mass squalor. Yet in contrast co the apartment blocks, or insulae, of
ancient Rome, and indeed in contrast CO the vast slums which had
arisen in other European cities, London built misery on a smaller
architectural scale. In England, as the urbanist Donald Olsen writes,
"typically the unit of dwelling and the unit of building are the same;
on the continent the former is but a portion of the laner," consisting
of ribbons of individual houses spread along a street wall. 14 In the
really wretched sections of the East End, families lived in single
rooms of small houses. The Underground helped transform their
condition.
Among the upper half of that 50 percent which had access co 3
percent of the national wealth, the cheap transport furnished by the
Underground made it possible co explore living somewhere bener.
The growth of cooperative building societies furnished the capital
for realizing that dream. By the 1880s, the urban tide which had
flooded into London began CO flow OUt. Thanks CO improved public
transportation, the working poor who could scrape cogether the
money could now move away from the city center co individual
homes of their own, south of the Thames and north of the center in
districts like Camden Town, in new row housing. As in housing for
the privileged, these modeSt row houses consisted of uniform
blocks, with individual small yards and outhouses in the back. To
Forster and his middle-class contemporaries, the architectural quality
seemed appalling; the housing was depressing, badly built, damp, the
outdoor privies stinking. By working-class standards, however, the
housing was an immense achievement. People slept on a different
floor than they ate; the smell of urine and faeces no longer pervaded
the interior.
The Underground, it is true, served both as an artery and a vein.
le helped open up London's center, especially for mass consumption
in the new department scores which cook form in the 1880s and
1890s. Until then it had been possible co live in the wealthy West
End of London in isolation from the non-servant poverty of the East
End. Beginning in the 1880s, however, as the hiscorian Judith Wal-
Urban Individualism 335
Golders Green, London. Advertisement, ca. 1900. Photo: Richard Tobias .
All rights reserved.
o
~
' ~ ' ~
,
6 l
mi
o.
I i
3km
SHEPHERD'S
BUSH
KENSINGTON
NORTH
BRIXTON
4001b to 700/0
338 FLESH AND STONE
kowitz observes, "the prevailing imaginary landscape of London
(shifted} from one that was geographically bounded to one whose
boundaries were indiscriminately and dangerously transgressed.""
The transgressors were far more likely to be shoppers than thieves.
Yet if the Underground system of arteries and veins in London
created a more mixed city, this mixture had sharp limits in time.
During the day, the human blood of the city flowed below ground
into the heart; at night, these subterranean channels became veins
emptying the mass out of the center, as people took the U nder-
ground home. With mass transit on the model of the Underground,
the time geography of the modern urban center had now taken form:
density and diversity by day, sparsity and homogeneity by night. And
that mixrure by day implicated no strong human contact between the
classes. People worked and shopped and then left for home.
3. COMFORT
In the poetry of Baudelaire, speed was depicted as a frenetic experi-
ence, and the speeding urbanite as a man or woman living on the
edge of hysteria. In point of fact, speed took on a different character
in the nineteenth century, thanks to technical innovations in trans-
POrt. These made the travelling body comfortable. Comfort is a con-
dition we associate with rest and passivity. The technology of the
nineteenth century gradually made movement into such a passive
bodily experience. The more comfortable the moving body became,
the more also it withdrew socially, travelling alone and silent.
Comfort is of course a sensation easy to despise. The desire for
comfort has a dignified origin, however, as an effort to rest bodies
fatigued by labor. During the first decades of factory and industrial
labor in the nineteenth century, workers were forced to continue at
their tasks without a break throughout the day as long as they could
stand or move their limbs. By late in the century, it became evident
that the productivity of such forced labor diminished as the day pro-
gressed. Industrial analysts noticed the contrast berween English
workers, who by the end of the century worked mostly ten-hour
labor shifts, and German and French workers, who labored in
rwelve, or sometimes fourteen-hour shifts: the English workers were
far more productive by the hour. The same difference in productiv-
ity appeared among manuallaborers who worked on Sunday versus
manual laborers who were given the Sabbath to rest; the workers
who rested on Sunday worked harder the rest of the week.
Urban Individualism 339
Market logic suggested to crude capitalists like Henry Clay Frick
that the "better SOrt of worker" was a laborer who wanted to work
all the time, a worker whose energies were aroused by the chance to
push his body to the limits in order to make money. But fatigue
spoke practically of a different economy. In 1891, the Italian physi-
ologist Angelo Masso was able to explain the relation berween
fatigue and productivity. He showed, in his book La Fatica, that peo-
ple feel fatigued long before they are incapable of further effort; the
sensation of fatigue is a protective mechanism by which the body
controls its own energies, protecting it from injuries which "lesser
sensibility" would cause to the organism. 16 The onset of this protec-
tive sensation of fatigue defines the moment when productivity
begins sharply to drop.
The pursuit of comfort in the nineteenth century has to be under-
stood within this sympathetic context. Comfortable ways to travel,
like comfortable furnirure and places to rest, began as aids for recov-
ery from the bodily abuses marked by sensations of fatigue. From
its very origins, though, comfort had another trajectory, as comfort
became synonymous with individual comfort. If comfort lowered a
person's level of stimulation and receptivity, it could serve the per-
son at rest in withdrawing from other people.
The chair and the carriage
The ancient Greek in his andron, or the Roman couple in their
triclinium, lay sociably on their sides or stood sociably. This sociable
posture of the bod y at rest contrasted to the "pathetic" or vulnerable
posrure of sitting, as in the ancient theatre. In medieval times, sitting
in a near squat became a sociable position, though dependent upon
the rank of the sitter. The most common piece of furnirure made for
rest was the low stool without a back, or low chests; chairs with backs
were reserved for people of rank. By the seventeenth century an
elaborate etiquette determined how and when and with whom peo-
ple sat, as in Louis XIV's Versailles. A countess had to stand in the
presence of a princess of the blood, but could sit on a stool in the
presence of a princess not collaterally related to the King; the prin-
cesses of both SOrts sat in chairs with arms, except in the presence of
the King or Queen, when a non-collateral princess then stood up,
and a princess of the blood could remain seated but only in a chair
without arms. Standing became a deferential position; everyone
from princesses to servants stood in the presence of their social supe-
riors who enjoyed the comfort of sitting.
340 FLESH AND STONE
In the Age of Reason, chairs became vessels for more relaxed sit-
ting positions, reflecting a gradual relaxation of manners from the
court patterns of Versailles. The back of the chair became as
important as the seat, and the back sloped, so that the sitter could
lean into it; the arms were lowered so that the sitter could move
freely from side to side. This change became marked around 1725,
appearing in informal chairs with names invoking Nature like the
bergere, the "shepherd's chair," upon which no real shepherd was ever
likely to sit. The furniture maker Roubo remarked that in such chairs
a person can rest his or her shoulder against the chairback, "while
leaving the head entirely free to avoid disarranging the hair either of
the ladies or the gentlemen."" Eighteenth-century comfort thus
meant freedom of movement even while sitting, the sitter leaning to
one side or another, talking easily to people all around. This freedom
to rwist and move while sitting marks the simplest chairs of the eigh-
teenth century as well as the most expensive; the beautiful wooden
"Windsor" chairs which graced poor English and American houses at
the time supported the back, as did the aristocrat's bergere, while
opening wide to free the rest of the body.
Nineteenth-century chairs subtly but powerfully changed this
experience of sitting sociably; they did so thanks to innovations in
upholstery. By 1830, manufacturers of chairs used springs beneath
the seats and on the backs; over the springs the manufacturers set
heavy cushions, using for stuffing either pleated horsehair or the
wool combings which were by-products of the new mechanized spin-
ning machines. The chairs, divans, and sofas thus became enormous
in size, overstuffed by design. The French upholsterer Dervilliers
began to manufacture such chairs in 1838, calling them "con fort-
abies." He followed with various models such as the con/ortable sen-
ateur of 1863 and the con/ortable gondole of 1869, which was like a
boat into which the sitter lowered him- or herself at the side. In all
these "confortables" the body sank into the enveloping structure,
engulfed and no longer easily moving. As the processes of mass man-
ufacturing advanced, particularly in the mechanical weaving of cush-
ions, the chairs came within the reach of a large public. The
"comfortable chair" in a worker or clerk's home served as a point of
pride and a place of respite from the cares of the world. Comfort in
these chairs came to imply a particular kind of human posture, the
historian Sigfried Giedion believes, "based on relaxation . .. in a
free, unposed attitude that can be called neither sitting nor lying" by
comparison to earlier ages. IS
Urban Individualism 341
' J
..
---
Formal chair. Late eighteenth century.
342 FLESH AND STONE
The comfortable chair. Mid-nineteenth century.
The nineteenth-century sitter engaged in a ritual of relaxation by
sinking into the uphostered chair, his or her body immobilized. This
same surrender marked the nineteenth-century rocking chair. In its
eighteenth-century form, as in the Windsor rocking chair, the sooth-
ing motion comes directly from the push of the sitter's feet; when
nineteenth-century manufacturers added springs to these chairs,
more complicated mechanical motions resulted. In 1853 the first
American patent was issued for what we now call the tilting office
chair, at the time known simply as a sitting chair. Its rocking action
via springs and coils meant that "relaxation" is derived from small
and often "unconscious shifts of position."' 9 Leaning back in a
spring-held, tilting office chair is a different physical experience from
leaning back in a wooden rocking chair; to experience comfort, the
body moves less; the springs do the work of the feet.
The junction of comfort and passive bodily surrender appeared in
the most private of seated acts. The development of flush toilets in
Urban Individualism 343
the middle of the nineteenth century continued the eighteenth-cen-
tury drive toward hygiene. But the vitreous-glass toilet bowls and
wooden seats of the Victorian era far surpassed utilitarian concerns.
Their bowls cast in fanciful shapes and their porcelain painted, the
more exuberant of these toilets were meant to be furniture; their
manufacturers anticipated that people would rest when sitting on
them, juSt as people rested in other chairs. Some were outfitted with
magazine racks, others with holders for glasses and plates; an inge-
nious "rocking Crapper"-named after its inventor-was even
launched upon the seas of Victorian commerce.
Defecation became a private activity in the nineteenth century-
entirely unlike the habit people had a century earlier of talking to
friends while sitting on a chaise-perce beneath which lay a chamber
POt. In the chamber which now contained bath, sink, and toilet, one
sat quietly, thinking, perhaps reading or taking a drink, and literally
let go, completely undisturbed. This same withdrawal occurred in
easy chairs in more public parts of the house, chairs in which a per-
son exhausted after work had the right nOt to be disturbed.
Sitting while travelling came to follow the same trajectory of indi-
vidualized comfort. Dervilliers' techniques of upholstery spread to
the design of carriage interiors; the springs underneath carriages
became ever more cushioning against jolts. The comfort of the car-
riage made its increase in speed bearable to passengers, who in older
vehicles had suffered most when the carriages went fast.
These changes altered the social conditions of travel. The nine-
teenth-century European railway carriage placed its six to eight pas-
sengers in a compartment where they faced one another, a seating
plan derived from the large horse-drawn coaches of an earlier era.
When it first appeared as train seating, the historian Wolfgang Schi-
velbusch argues, this arrangement provoked a sense of "the embar-
rassment of people facing each other in silence," for now the cover
of noise in the horse-drawn carriages was gone
20
The comfortable
smoothness of the railroad carriage, however, permitted people to
read by themselves.
The railway carriage filled with close-packed bodies who read or
silently looked out the window marked a great social change which
occurred in the nineteenth century: silence used as a protection of
individual privacy. On the streets, as in the railway carriage, people
began to treat as their right not to be spoken to by strangers, to treat
the speech of strangers as a violation. In Hogarth's London or
David's Paris speaking to a stranger carried no connotation of vio-
344 FLESH AND STONE
Men's compartment of an American railroad coach, 1847.
lating his or her privacy; in public people expected to talk and be
talked to.
The American railroad carriage, as developed in the 1840s, put its
passengers in a position which virtually assured the desire to be left
alone in silence. Without compartments, the American railroad car-
riage turned all passengers looking forward, staring at one another's
backs rather than faces. American trains frequently travelled
immense distances-by European standards-yet it struck Old
World visitors that one could cross the North American continent
without having to address a word to anyone else, even though there
were no physical barriers between people in the carriage. Before the
advent of mass transport, the sociologist Georg Simmel remarked,
people had rarely been obliged to sit together in silence for a long
time, just staring. This "American" way of sitting in public transport
now also appeared in Europe in the ways people sat in cafes and
pubs.
Urban Individualism 3 45
The cafe and the pub
Cafes on the European continent owe their origins to the English
coffee house of the early eighteenth century. Some coffeehouses
began as mere appendages to coaching stations, others as self-con-
tained enterprises. The insurance company Lloyd's of London began
as a coffee house, and its rules marked the sociability of most other
urban places; the price of a mug of coffee earned a person the right
to speak to anyone in Lloyd's room.
2 1
More than sheer chattiness prompted strangers to talk to one
another in the coffeehouse. Talk was the most important means of
gaining information about conditions on the road, in the city, or
about business. Though differences in social rank were evident in
how people looked and in their diction, the need to talk freely dic-
tated that people not notice, so long as they were drinking together.
The advent of the modern newspaper in the later eighteenth century
sharpened, if anything, the impulse to talk; displayed on racks in
the room, the newspapers offered topics for discussion-the written
word seeming no more certain than speech.
The French cafe of the Ancien Regime took its name from and
operated much like the English coffee house, strangers freely
argumg, gossiping, and informing one another. In the years before
the Revolution, political groups often arose from these cafe encoun-
ters. At first many different groups met in the same cafe, as in the
original Cafe Procope on the Left Bank; by the outbreak of the Rev-
olution, contending political groups in Paris each had their own
place. During and after the Revolution the greatest concentration of
cafes was in the Palais-Royal; here, early in the nineteenth century
an experiment began which was to transform the cafe as a social insti-
tution. The experiment was simply to put a few tables outside the
wooden galerie du bois running through the center of the Palais-
Royal. These outside tables deprived political groups of their cover;
the tables served customers watching the passing scene, rather than
conspiring with one another.
The development of the great boulevards of Paris by Baron Hauss-
mann, particularly in the Second Nerwork streets, encouraged such
use of outdoor space; the wide streets provided much more space
for the cafe to sprawl. Apart from the cafes of the Second Nerwork
there were rwo centers of cafe life in Haussmann's Paris, one clus:
tered around the Opera, where the Grand Cafe, the Cafe de la Paix,
and the Cafe Anglais were to be found, the other in the Latin Quar-
346 FLESH AND STONE
ter, whose most famous cafes were the Voltaire, the Soleil d'Or, and
Premier. The clients of the great cafes were in the nine-
teenth century drawn from the middle and upper classes, the price
of drinks discouraging poorer customers. Moreover, in these vast
cafes, Parisians acted like Americans in their trains; the cafe-goer
expected that he or she had a right to be left alone. The silence
of people in these large establishments proved uncongenial to the
working classes, who clung to the sociability of the cafes intimes in
the side streets.
At an outdoor table in the big cafe one was expected to remain
seated in one place; those who wanted to hop from scene to scene
stood at the bar. The speed of service for these fixed bodies became
slower than for the standing patrons. In the 1870s, for instance, it
became a common practice for the oldest waiters to be relegated to
the outer tables of cafes, their slowness no failure in the minds of
these patrons. On the terrace, the denizens of the cafe sat silently
watching the crowd go by-they sat as individuals, each lost in his or
her own thoughts.
By Forster's time there were a few big French-style cafes in Lon-
don near Piccadilly Circus, but the more universal drinking place in
the city was, of course, the pub. For all their coziness, Edwardian
pubs in London had assimilated some of the public manners of their
continental cafe-cousins; if people talked freely standing at the bar,
elsewhere they could sit, silent and alone. Cafes for the most part in
Paris were as much neighborhood affairs as were London pubs; "in
the boulevard, Opera and Latin Quarter cafe, the backbone of trade
was the habitue rather than the tourist or the elegant out with a
demi-mondaine."22 Of course the pub did not relate spatially to the
street as did the cafe; it appeared as a refuge space, fragrant inside
with the comforting mixed smells of urine, beer, and sausage. Yet
the Patisian dawdling on a cafe terrace also was disconnected from
the street he or she inhabited a realm rather like that of the Ameri- ,
can travelling across a continent in silence, the people on the street
now appearing as scenery, as spectacle. "Half an hour spent on the
boulevards or on one of the chairs in the Tuileries gardens has the
effect of an infinitely diverting theatrical performance," the traveller
Augustus Hare wrote.'3 Or, in both pub and cafe, this spectacle
could take place in the theatre of one's private thoughts while one
sat.
The exterior crowd composing itself into a spectacle no longer
carried the menace of a revolutionary mol>-nor did people on the
Urban Individualism 347
street make demands on the person nursing a beer or aline. In 1808,
police spies looking for dangerous political elements in Paris spent a
great deal of time infiltrating cafes; in 1891, the police disbanded
the bureau dedicated to cafe surveillance. A public realm filled with
moving and spectating individuals-in Paris as much as in London-
no longer represented a political domain.
Like the chair, the cafe thus provided a space of comfort which
joined the passive and the individual. Yet for all this the cafe was,
and remains, intensely urban and urbane. One was and is surrounded
by life, even if detached from it. The space of comfort took another
turn inward when urban architecture began to be mechanically
sealed.
Sealed space
The designers of the eighteenth century had sought to create a
healthy city on the model of a healthy body. As the urbanist Reyner
Banham has observed, the building technology of that time hardly
served this purpose; buildings were both drafty and stuffy, the move-
ment of air in them irrational, the loss of heat, when heating existed
at all, extravagant.'4 In the late nineteenth century, these difficulties
of respiration within stone began to be addressed.
The advent of central heating may not seem a great event in the
history of Western civilization, any more than the invention of the
overstuffed chair. Yet central heating, like later advances in interior
lighting, air conditioning, and the management of waste, did create
buildings that fulfilled the Enlightenment dream of a healthy envi-
ronment-at a social price. For these inventions isolated buildings
from the urban environment.
We owe to Benjamin Franklin the concept of heating a room with
radiating hot air, rather than an open fire. Franklin created the first
"Franklin stove" in 1742. The inventor of the steam engine, James
Watt, heated his own offices by steam in 1784; large buildings began
to be steam-heated early in the nineteenth century. The boiler which
produced the steam could also produce hot water, distributed by
pipes to each room where needed, rather than carried thete by ser-
vants who heated water in the kitchen. In 1877, Birdsill Holly con-
ducted experiments in New York aimed at providing several build-
ings with steam heat and hot water from a single boiler.
The problem with these inventions was two-fold: the buildings
were so poorly insulated that the hot air seeped outside; they were
348 FLESH AND STONE
so poorly ventilated that hot air did nOt move inside. The ventilation
problem could be, and was in part, solved through the development
of forced-air heating in the 1860s by the Sturtevant Company, but
this new technology still suffered from the evils of leakage. When
architects began to seal buildings, they could also address the prob-
lem of efficient circulation of air, directing its flow within the build-
ing and sucking stale air outside. The development of effective,
flexible insulating materials came late, in the 1910s and 1920s; nine-
teenth-century efforts focused on effective sealing through design.
One way of doing so was to use new materials like continuous sheets
of plate glass to clad window openings, a development that first
occurred in department stores in the 1870s; the other was to make
ventilating ducts do the work formerly done by windows. The giant
Royal Victorian Hospital, completed in 1903 in Belfast, Northern
Ireland, made ducts work in this way.
Sealing buildings also succeeded thanks to advances in lighting.
The gaslights of nineteenth-century buildings usually leaked, often
dangerously so. Thomas Edison's assembly of materials to make elec-
tric light became by 1882 a reference point for British builders in
new construction, as it became in France and Germany a few years
later. In 1882, electric lights for street lighting also began to replace
gaslights. The development of electric light for large urban buildings
meant that interior spaces could become even more usable, and
more independent from the windows giving Onto the street; eventu-
ally the window could be done away with, in buildings entirely filled
with uniform electric light. The new technology broke the necessary
lighting tie in earlier construction berween inside and outside.
All of these technologies could be installed in existing urban build-
ings. The electric lights, for instance, could be fitted into the older
gas sockets; heating pipes and ventilator ducts could be cut into
floors or put in stairwells. The greatest source of physical discomfort
in large buildings, however, generated a new urban form. This was
the effort of walking up many flights of stairs; overcoming the rigors
of vertical ascent through the technology of the elevator gave birth
to the skyscraper. The elevator began to be used in buildings in
1846, at first powered by men pulling on counterweights, later by
steam engines; the Dakota Apartment House in New York and the
Connaught Hotel in London used water hydraulics to mOve the plat-
form up and down. The fortune of the elevator depended on its
safety, and Elisha Graves Otis in 1857 made it a safe machine by
inventing automatic locking brakes in case power failed.
We take elevators so much for granted that we do not readily per-
Urban Individualism
349
ceive the changes they have wrought in our bodies; the aerobic strain
of climbing has been largely replaced by standing still in order to
ascend. The elevator, moreover, has permitted buildings to become
sealed spaces in an entirely new way; one can in a few seconds rise
far from the street and all it contains. In modern buildings which
couple their elevators to underground garages, it is possible for a
passively moving body to lose all physical contact with the outside.
In all these ways, the geography of speed and the search for comfort
led people into the isolated condition which Tocqueville called "indi-
vidualism." Yet in an age whose architectural emblem is the airport
waiting lounge, few people today are likely to walk through the
ornate streets of Edwardian London thinking, "How dull!" More-
over, the spaces and technology of comfort have produced real plea-
sures in the modern city. A New Yorker would think, for instance,
of a much-loved building constructed within fifteen years of the writ-
ing of Howards End, the Ritz Tower at the northeast corner of 57th
Street and Park Avenue. Centrally heated and ducted, forty-one sto-
ries tall, when the Ritz Tower opened in 1925, it was the first sky-
scraper composed entirely of residences and the tallest building of
this kind in the Western world. Its setbacks, making use of a 1916
zoning ordinance, meant there were Babylonian terraces high in the
sky, the noises of the street muffled, the views at the time giving out
to empty space. "It looked like sheer verticality as it narrowed,"
writes the architectural historian Elizabeth Hawes, "like a telescope,
up through its setbacks, to tower in the clouds."25
The Ritz Tower was efficient as well as dramatic; the internal engi-
neering of heat and fresh air by the builder Emery Roth was impecca-
ble in design and in execution, so that the RitZ apartment dwellers
were no longer tied to the window as a lifeline. Even today, when
the Ritz Tower is surrounded by other skyscrapers and Park Avenue
is a hideous scene of traffic congestion at this corner, inside the
building one has a great sense of calm, of peace, in the heart of the
world's most neurotic city. Why resist? Howards End gave one
answer.
4. THE VIRTUE OF DISPLACEMENT
Against the social organization of speed, comfort, and efficiency,
E. M. Forster invoked the virtue of a more psychological kind of
movement, one which dislodges people from feeling secure. The
350
FLESH AND STONE
author may seem rather unsuited for this task; the man who com-
manded, "Only connect . . . " also declared, in Two Cheers for Democ-
racy, "I hate the idea of causes, and if I had to choose between
betraying my country and betraying my friend, I hope I should have
the guts to betray my country."26 In Howards End the herome
reflects, "Doing good to humanity was useless, the many-coloured
efforts thereto spreading over the vast area like films and resulting
in a universal grey"; she believed instead that "to do good to one, or
... to a few, was the utmost she dare hope for."27 The artist's world
seems particular and small. And yet within this intimate compass,
monumental challenges to comfort occur. The novelist convinces us
that they must occur.
Howards End charts the fortunes of three families which cross at
the modest English country house of Howards End. The Wilcox fam-
ily lives mostly for money and prestige, but possesses also enormous
energy and resolve; they are part of the new Edwardian urban elite.
The Schlegel family consists of two orphaned and modestly wealthy
sisters, Margaret and Helen, and their younger brother, who live for
high art and elevated personal relationships. The third family comes
from much lower in society, consisting of the young clerk Leonard
Bast, whose mistress eventually becomes his wife.
Because Forster was not a good contriver of plots, his stories read
like abstract crossword puzzles, everything tidily worked out. Helen
Schlegel has a brief but messy romance with the younger Wilcox
son. Mrs. Wilcox dies; her husband marries the older Schlegel sister,
Margaret; both Helen and the other Wilcox children hate the mar-
riage. Helen befriends and sleeps with the working-class clerk Leo-
nard Bast his sluttish wife turns out to be the mistress of the elder
Mr. W i l c ~ x during his first marriage. The denouement of these his-
tories occurs at Howards End when the elder Wilcox son attacks
Leonard Bast, who has come to the country to find his beloved
Helen. Leonard dies; the Wilcox son is charged with manslaughter
and goes to jail; the disaster reconciles the elder Wilcox and his wife;
the unmarried sister and her child install themselves at Howards End
as their home.
The novel is saved by the human displacements its action requires,
and these displacements Forster describes in almost surgical prose.
To understand them, it helps to see Howards End as half of a larger
project, for this novel is linked to another-Maurice---which Forster
began to write immediately after publishing Howards End In 1910.
The second novel told the story of a homosexual love between an
Urban Individualism
35 1
upper-middle-class stockbroker and an uneducated gamekeeper. A
story which transgresses the bounds of both sex and class should,
according to the standards of Forster's time, end in disaster; instead,
Maurice ends with the ultimate happiness of the otherwise conven-
tional and classbound gentleman in the arms of a servant. Forster
said, "a happy ending was imperative ... I was determined that in
fiction, anyway, two men should fall in love and remain in it for the
ever and ever that fiction allows. "28
Howards End also tells a tale of illicit sex among people of different
classes, in Helen Schlegel's one-night affair with Leonard Bast. How-
ards End does nOt end in the enduring "for ever and ever" of fictional
love which concludes MatiNee. Instead, there is murder: the most
conformist and respectable character in the novel murders Leonard
Bast and goes to jail. There is betrayal discovered: Margaret Schlegel
learns her husband has lied to her abnut sex and about money. There
is indeed happiness achieved: the intrepid sexual outlaw Helen
Schlegel moves with her bastard son to the country house of How-
ards End. All of the characters in Howards End come to feel uncertam
about themselves by the end-they do not find the confirmation of
an identity such as Maurice finds in his homosexuality. Yet even as
the people in Howards End lose certainty about themselves, they
become physically aroused by the world in which they live and they
gain more awareness of one another. Forster conceived of displace-
ment somewhat as Milton thought of exile from the Garden m Para-
dise Lost. In Forster's novel, personal displacements have a specific
social dimension.
Forster's readers might have thought at first, for instance, to
understand only too well the Schlegel sisters, who conformed to the
image of the "Glorified Spinster," a stereotype of the liberated young
woman which first appeared in the pages of Macmillan's Magazine in
1888. Macmillan's described the Glorified Spinster both admiringly
and with condescension; she was unwilling to live "in a position of
dependence and subjection," she wanted to extract "the greatest pos-
sible amount of pleasure out of every shilling," she sought "to find
happiness and intellectual pleasures and to care comparatively little
about social environment."29 The Glorified Spinster paid for her
freedom with the loss of her sexuality and of motherhood.
In the course of Howards End, Margaret and Helen Schlegel sub-
verted the Glorified Spinster in separate ways, Margaret by finding
sexual fulfillment with the elder Wilcox even as she remains critical
and independent of him, Helen even more radically by becoming a
352 FLESH AND STONE
happily unmarried mother. Yet the sisters do nOt quite understand
what they have done, and by the end of the novel they have stopped
trying to explain themselves or analyze each other.
Howards End is an unusual novel because the characters do insis-
tently try to reckon who they are through the look, smell, and touch
of their surroundings. Like sex, stereotypes of place gradually crack
apart. When Margaret Schlegel first sees the beamed, low rooms of
Howards End, for instance, she thinks she has found Innocence and
Peace: "Drawing-room, dining-room, and hall ... here were simply
three rooms where children could play and friends shelter from the
rain."3o Against this she contrasted "the phantom of bigness, which
London encourages," and which "was laid [to rest} for ever when
she paced from the hall at Howards End to its kitchen and heard
the rains run this way and that where the watershed of the roof
divided them."31 By the end of the novel, these stereotypes no
longer work.
Forster prepares for this change when Henry Wilcox declares to
Margaret, as the weight of his son's and his own misforrunes falls
upon him, "I don't know what to do-what to do. I'm broken-I'm
ended." The novel could at this moment collapse into sentimental
bathos. Forster saves it through Margaret's response: "No sudden
warmth arose in her ... she did not enfold the sufferer in her arms
... he shambled up to Margaret ... and asked her to do what she
could with him. She did what seemed easiest-she took him down
to recruit [i.e., recover} at Howards End."32 Though her husband is
shattered, her own full and independent life now begins there. For
him to recover, he must live without the cliched pie ties which have
ruled his past-he must accept her "ruined" sister and accept Marga-
ret's own independent power. It will be a place which tests and alters
him. Perhaps the subtlest declaration in this book is when Margaret
tells her sister that at Howards End they must do "battle against
sameness. Differences-eternal differences, planted by God in a sin-
gle family, so that there may always be colour; sorrow perhaps, but
colour in the daily grey."33 The country house has filled with the
uncertainties and provocations of vivid life.
This shifting sense of place matters as much to the author as to
anyone of his characters. Forster modelled the house in the novel
on the home he lived in as a child from the ages of four to fourteen,
when he and his mother were forced to leave. Yet he looked upon
being rurned out of this childhood home as providential: "if the land
had welcomed me then, the Tory side of my character would have
Urban Individualism 353
developed and my liberalisms been atrophied"; or, as he put it even
more strongly at the end of his life, "The impressions received there
. .. still glow ... and have given me a slant upon society and history.
It is a middle-class slant ... and it has been corrected by contacts
with those who have never had a home in [this} sense, and do not
want one."34
Displacement thus becomes something quite different in this
novel from sheer movement, the detestable, meaningless movement
epitomized for Forster by the automobile. Human displacements
ought to jolt people into caring about one another, and where they
are. Thus the possibility of the good SOft of displacement appears
even in descriptions of London, as when the Schlegel sisters in Lon-
don, like the young author in the country, lose their own home. At
this moment, Forster remarks more generally, "the Londoner seldom
understands his city until its sweeps him ... away from his moorings;
Margaret's eyes were not opened until the lease of Wick ham Place
[her home in the city}
Forster once said to his friend Forrest Reid about his own life, "I
was trying to connect up and use all the fragments I was born with."36
The characters in his novels try to do that as well. Yet the places
Rooksnest, the model for Howacds End.
354 FLESH AND STONE
where people connecr in Forster's novels lack the "Jimple oneneH of
things" the philosopher Martin Heidegger imagined in a farmhouse
in the Black Forest of Germany, an enduring dwelling "designed for
the different generations under one roof, showing the character of
their journey through time."3? Howards End is a place where discon-
tinuity becomes a positive value.
Alfred Kazin writes of Forster's hope in HowardJ End that "a griev-
ously class-proud, class-protecting, class-embittered society may yet
come to think of some deeper, more ancient 'comradeship' as one of
its distinguishing marks. "38 In both Maurice and HowardJ End Forster
wants to show that by breaking through sexual and class boundaries.
But in HowardJ End he also reflects on a possible modern meaning
of place. His sense of place is not that of a sanctuary; instead, it is a
scene in which people come alive, where they expose, acknowledge,
and address the discordant parts of themselves and one another.
What can this critique mean for us who live today in discordant
cities filled with differences, different races, ethnicities, sexualities,
classes, ages? How could a multi-cultural society be in need of dis-
placement, rather than security and comfort?
CONCLUSION
Civic Bodies
Multi-Cultural New York
1. DIFFERENCE AND INDIFFERENCE
Greenwich Village
I
ke so many others, I had read my way into Greenwich Village,
before arriving there twenty years ago, in the pages of Jane
Jacobs's The Death and Life 0/ Great American CitieJ-the Vil-
lage appearing in her famous book as the quintessential urban center,
mixing groups and stimulating individuals through its diversity.
Unlike Harlem or the South Bronx, she painted a picture of the
races living in fair harmony here, as did the ethnic mixture of Ital-
ians, Jews, and Greeks. The Village appeared to her a modern agora
in the heart of New York.'
The place 1 found did not belie her words. Though by 1970 the
Village had lost many of the children of these immigrants to the
suburbs, the community was indeed diverse and tolerant. Teenagers
356
FLESH AND STONE
L?rgt' .-U;rQI P
. Sl i1C" k
~ L i l l i n o
o While Calholh-
l!IIII]] Whll t" Liberal
Ethnic and political make up of New York Assembly Districts, ca. 1980.
Reproduced with permission from John Hull Mollenkopf, A PhoeOlx In the
Ashes: The Rise and Fall of the Koch Coalition in New York City Politics
(Princeton University Press, 1992).
with clean sheets and warm beds elsewhere slept on the ground in
the open air of Washington Square, lulled to sleep by competing
nocturnal folk singers, unmolested by thieves, untroubled by the
presence of people who had nowhere else to sleep. The well-kept
houses and streets in the Village contributed to the impression that
this place differed from the rest of New York, possessing a strong
sense of community among strangers who lived in relative safety.
The village continues to be a space of differences tOday. There are
still knots of Italian families surviving along MacDougal Street,
mixed in with tOurists. The community's charming houses and apart-
ment buildings still contain elderly people who have guarded their
cheap housing and live intermixed with newcomers who are richer
and younger. Since]acobs's time, a large homosexual community has
flourished on the western edge of the Village, harassed by some of
the tOurists but living in relative harmony with immediate neighbors.
The writers and artists who remain are, like myself, people who came
when rents were cheap; we are ageing, bourgeois bohemians upon
whom this variegated scene works like a charm.
Yet one's eye often provides misleading social information about
Civic Bodies 357
diversity. lane ]acobs saw people in the Village so tightly packed
tOgether they seemed to have fused. On MacDougal Street, though,
the tOurist action consists mostly of people looking at one another;
the Italians occupy the space above the street-level shops, talking to
their neighbors in opposite buildings as though there were nobody
below. Hispanics,] ews, and Koreans interweave along Second A ve-
nue, but to walk down Second Avenue is to pass through an ethnic
pal imps est in which each group keeps neatly to its own turf.
Difference and indifference co-exist in the life of the Village; the
sheer fact of diversity does not prompt people to interact. In part
this is because, over the last two decades, the diversities of the Vil-
lage have grown more cruel, in ways The Death and Life 0/ Great
American Cities did not envision. Washington Square has become a
kind of drug supermarket; the swings of the children's north sand lot
serve as a stand-up boutique for heroin, the benches under the statue
of a Polish patriot serve as display counters for various pills, while
all four corners of the square deal wholesale in cocaine. No young
people sleep in the park now, and though the various dealers and
their outriders are familiar figures to the mothers watching infants
on the swings or to students at the university next to the square,
these criminals seem all but invisible to the police.
In his History, Thucydides reckoned the civic strength of Athens
by pairing Perikles' Funeral Oration to the outbreak of plague in
Athens a few months later. Nothing like the moral collapse Thucyd-
ides depicted occurred when the modern plague of AIDS appeared
on the Streets of the Village. In the western part of the community
the spread of the disease made many homosexual residents more
politically engaged; the health machinery of the city has positively if
inadequately responded to them; much of the art, theatre, and dance
made or performed in the West Village explores AIDS.
At the eastern edge of the Village where Greenwich Village
shades into the great swatch of poverty on the Lower East Side, how-
ever, it is a different stOry. Here are concentrated drug addicts of
both sexes who have become ill with AIDS from sharing needles,
and women who have become ill through sexual encounters as pros-
titutes. AIDS and drugs mix most graphically along Rivingron Street,
a gap-toothed place of abandoned houses off the Bowery, the houses
serving as "shooting galleries" for the addicted. Occasionally young
social workers can be seen wandering RivingtOn Street, knocking
at the locked doors or on the boarded-up windows of the shooting
galleries, offering free, clean needles. But Villagers otherwise tend
358 FLESH AND STONE
not to give the dying trouble; tolerated by citizens, perhaps profit-
able to the police, the crackhouses are flourishing.
If locals do not bother the police about drugs, having drawn the
obvious conclusion, few of my neighbors are inclined to telephone
about the homeless, new strangers to the Village. By one count, dur-
ing the summer nearly one in every rwo hundred people in the cen-
ter of New York is homeless, placing the city above Calcutta but
below Cairo on this particular index of misery'> In the Village the
homeless sleep in streets near Washington Square, but off the drug
route; during the day, they stand outside the local banks, my own
financial "doorman" claiming that while people in the Village give
him less money than in more affluent parts of the city, we also give
him less trouble. It is no more and no less than that; here people let
one another alone.
In the course of the development of modern, urban individualism,
the individual fell silent in the city. The street, the cafe, the depart-
ment store, the railroad, bus, and underground became places of the
gaze rather than scenes of discourse. When verbal connections
berween strangers in the modern city are difficult to sustain, the
impulses of sympathy which individuals may feel in the city looking
at the scene around them become in turn momentary-a second of
response looking at snapshots of life.
Diversity in the Village works this way; ours is a purely visual
agora. There is nowhere to discuss the stimulations of the eye on
streets like Second Avenue, no place they can be collectively shaped
into a civic narrative, nOf, perhaps more consequently, a sanctuary
which takes aCCOunt of for the disease-ravaged scenes of the East
Village. Of course the Village as elsewhere in the city offers myriad
formal occasions in which our citizens voice civic complaint, outrage.
But the political occasions do not translate into everyday social prac-
tice on the streets; they do little, moreover, to compound the multi-
ple cultures of the city into common purposes.
It may be a sociological truism that people do not embrace differ-
ence, that differences create hostility, that the best to be hoped for
is the daily practice of toleration. This truism would argue that the
arousing personal experience conveyed in a novel like Howards End
cannot be translated more largely into society. Yet New York has
been for over a century a city filled with a diversity of cultures, many
often as discriminated against as the Jews of Renaissance Venice.
To say that difference inevitably provokes mutual withdrawal means
saying that such a multi-cultural city cannOt have a common civic
Civic Bodies
359
culture; it means taking the side of the Venetian Christians, who
imagined a civic culture possible only among people who are alike.
More, the sociological truism means dismissing a deeper Judeo-
Christian source of faith-compassion-as though that animating
reltglOus force had simply washed away into the multi-cultural sea.
If New York's history poses the general question of whether a
civic culture can be forged out of human differences, the Village
poses a more particular question: how that diverse civic culture
might become something people feel in their bones.
Center and periphery
The dilemmas of visceral arousal in a multi-cultural society have
been compounded by New York's history and geography.
New York is a grid city par excellence, an endless geometry of
equal blocks, though not quite the grid which the Romans envisaged;
New York's grid has no fixed edge or center. The Roman city build-
ers studied the heavens to site the earthly city, and plotted the
boundaries of a town in order to define its internal geometry. The
designers of modern New York conceived of the urban grid as an
expanding chessboard; in 1811 the city fathers bestowed the grid
plan on city lands above Greenwich Village, and in 1855 this plan
was extended beyond Manhattan into the northerly borough of the
Bronx and the easterly borough of Queens.
Like the Roman town grid, the New York plan was laid down on
largely empty land, a city designed in advance of being inhabited; if
the Romans consulted the heavens for guidance in this effort the
city fathers of New York consulted the banks. Of the mOdern'grid
plan in general Lewis Mumford has said that "the resurgent capital-
ism of the seventeenth century treated the individual lot and the
block, the street and the avenue as abstract units for buying and sell-
ing, without respect for histori c uses, for topographic conditions or
for social needs. "3 The absolute uniformity in the lots created by the
New York grid meant that land could be treated just like money,
each piece worth the same amount. In the happier, early days of the
Republic, dollar bills were printed when bankers felt the need of
money; so too the supply of land could be increased by extending
this turf, so that more city came into being when speculators felt the
urge to speculate.
This boundless grid city lacked a center. Neither the city plan of
1811 nor of 1855 contains indications of greater or lesser value on
360 FLESH AND STONE
the maps, nor reckonings of where people would be likely to meet,
as the Roman could reckon abroad by finding the intersection of the
principal streets. A visitor to New York logically suspects that the
center of the city lies around Central Park; when Calvert Vaux and
Frederick Law Olmsted began planning the park in 1857, they imag-
ined it as a refuge from the city. From the moment local politicians
harried Olmsted out of his great project, the park began to decay,
people avoiding the ill-kept, crime-ridden lawns as meeting grounds.
In theory, a city plan lacking both a fixed boundary and a fixed
center makes possible many diverse points of social contact in the
city; the original plan does not dictate to later generations of build-
ers. In New York, for instance, the great office compound of Rocke-
feller Center begun in the 1930s could have been located a few
blocks north or south or further west; the neutral grid did not dictate
its placement. Though the flexibility of space in New York may seem
to echo in spirit L'Enfant's plan for a diverse rather than centralized
city, New York is in fact closer to realizing urban space such as the
revolutionary French urbanists conceived it. The lack of directives
in New York's plan means spaces can easily be swept clear of obsta-
cles, those obstacles constituted by the accretion of stone, glass, and
steel from the past.
Until quite recently, perfectly viable buildings in New York disap-
peared with the same regularity they appeared. Within the space of
sixty years, for instance, the great mansions lining Fifth Avenue for
miles, from Greenwich Village to the top of Central Park, were con-
structed, inhabited, and destroyed to make way for taller buildings.
Even today, with historic controls, new New York skyscrapers are
planned to last fifty years, and financed accordingly, though as engi-
neered objects they could last much longer. Of all the world's cities,
New York has the most destroyed itself in order to grow; in a hun-
dred years people will have more tangible evidence about Hadrian's
Rome than they will about fiber-optic New York.
This chameleon urban fabric has had great importance for the his-
tory of multi-culturalism in New York. Duting the era after the Civil
War when N ew York first became an international city, its immi-
grants crowded into great dense grids of poverty, principally on the
Lower East Side of the borough of Manhattan but also behind the
docks all along on the West Side of Manhattan and on the eastern
edge of the borough of Brooklyn. Diverse miseries met on these
blocks in so-called New Law Tenements. These buildings had been
designed to provide light and air to interior spaces, but the good
Civic Bodies 361
intentions of their architects were overwhelmed by the sheer num-
bers of people stuffed into the structures.
At the beginning of this century, the children of the immigrants
began to push ourward as their circumstances permitted, like the
achieving English working classes who made use of the Underground
to move Out to better housing in North London. Some immigrant
children moved first into Harlem, others farther into sparsely popu-
lated territory in the outer boroughs, the most prosperous into pri-
vate houses, the sufficiently prosperous into apartment buildings
whose designs broke the mold of the cramped New York tenements
in the center. Two forces stemmed that ourward flow; the bulk of
jobs remained in the urban core, and the New York region lacked
an elaborate nerwork of urban arteries and veins.
After the Second World War, a new push ourward became possi-
ble in New York largely thanks to the work of one man, Robert
Moses. Like Haussmann's works, the sheer scale of Moses's enter-
prises begun in the 1920s and 1930s staggers the imagination; he
built bridges, parks, ports, beachfronts, and highways. Again like
Haussmann, and before Haussmann, Boullee and Wailly, Robert
Moses viewed the existing urban fabric of his city as arbitrary in
form, entailing no obligation on his part to preserve or renovate what
others before him had made.
The great transport Moses made for the N ew York region con-
summated the Enlightenment impulse to create a city based on the
moving body. Though New York had developed the most extensive
mass transit system in the world by the time Moses began to build,
he favored travel by individuals in automobiles. To other planners,
this huge nerwork of roads seemed to threaten the viability of the
established urban center, rather than extend the center's reach. So it
appeared, for instance, to the urbanistJean Gottmann, who imagined
in his classic study, Megalopolis, that a vast urban region would take
form along the Eastern Seaboard of the United States, stretching
from Boston to Washington. This megalopolis would destroy, Gott-
mann said, the central city as "the 'center,' the ' heart' of a region."4
Moses defended his highways as amenities rather than destructive
designs. His sense of the pleasutes of movement appeared in the
parkway system, which were roads that excluded trucks, laid out in
curving ribbons of concrete passing through artfully constructed
parks, screened from houses; these expensive, illusionistic parkways
were meant to make the experience of driving an automobile a self-
contained pleasure, free of resistance.
362
.. ,.-" .. ,
_"_'''-'l-' _'
..... --
FLESH AND STONE
,
, -
' -
KE.Y PLAN
'.-
HIGHWAY ROUTES
Ll<itNO
.. ..... .clr
... ... , ... , .. 8JhH
Key plan for New York regional highway routes, 1929. From The Graphic
Regional Plan: Atlal and DeJcription. Courtesy of Columbia University,
Avery Architectural and Fine Arts Library, New York.
Thanks to this system of highways and parkways, he believed, peo-
ple could put the Stresses of the city out of mind. One of Moses's
great destinations in this regard was Jones Beach, the long stretch of
sand he organized into a public resort near the city. Of Moses's atti-
tude toward the beach a colleague, Frances Perkins, remarked, "He' d
denounce the common people terribly. To him they were lousy,
dirty people, throwing bottles all over Jones Beach. 'I'll get them!
Civic Bodiel
3 6 3
I'll teach them!' .. . He loves the public, bur nOt as people.'" In
particular Moses tried to keep blacks our of Jones Beach, as in the
public parks he created, considering them especially unclean.
The title Robert Caro chose for a biography of Robert Moses, The
Power Broker, aptly characterizes the spirit in which Moses worked
6
Moses was not himself a professional planner; instead he forged the
governmental and financial instruments which designers used. Moses
lacked in particular the visual imagination to see how map drawings
and blueprints would actually look as three-dimensional forms.
Often treated as a planning devil, he was in a way something else
more frightening, a person of immense power who often did nOt
understand what he was building. Bur, as in Jones Beach, his social
aims were clear enough.
His planning sought to undo diversity. The impacted mass of the
city seemed a rock to be chipped apart, and "the public good" was to
be achieved by fragmenting the city. In this, Moses made a selective
effort; only those who had succeeded-succeeded enough to own a
car, to buy a house-were provided the means of escape, the bridges
and highways offering them an exit from the noise of strikers, beg-
New York landscapes shaped by Robert Moses. From R. CarD, The Power
Broker: Robert Mow and the Fall 0/ New York (New York: Alfred A.
Knopf, 1974), inside front cover.
Reprinted by permission.
-'-
--- _.-
--
._v __
,----
._-
364 FLESH AND STONE
gars, and the distressed which had filled the streets of New York
during the Great Depression.
It should be said that if Moses eroded the dense urban center,
his interventions served a deeply felt communal need, the need for
adequate family housing. When Moses spread out the New York
urban region through fingers of highways out to the east, developers
built housing tracts after the Second World War on the great estates
and potato farms of Long Island; when he spread out other highway
fingers to the north, more modest land holdings were transformed
into suburbs. Herbert Gans studied a generation ago the new resi-
dential community of Levittown on Long Island made possible by
the highways Moses built; he observed that the mass of single family
houses provided "more family cohesion and a significant boost of
morale" within each house.
7
Gans rightly derided those who snob-
bishly dismissed this housing; able to leave city apartments which
were too cramped for families, people valued their new homes
because of their "desire to own a free-standing house."s
Moses had difficulty understanding, though, that he had created a
new economic territory. The growth of the New York periphery in
fact coincided with the increase in office and service tasks which,
thanks to electronic communications, no longer had to be located in
the dense urban core where rents were high. The periphery also
grew in concert with changes in manufacturing. Increasingly the
periphery employed women workers in both services and small sub-
factories; the women were able to work in jobs close to where they
live, but received wages inferior to those paid men
9
As the periph-
ery took on an economic life of its own, part of the dream of escape
thus began to fade. Poverty and low-wage jobs reappeared in the
suburbs. As did crime and drugs. The suburban hopes for a stable,
secure family life recorded by Herbert Gans have also withered,
insofar as they were premised on escape.
Yet the legacy of Robert Moses has endured in twO ways. His
restructuring of New York brought to a head the forces of individual
movement which began to take form two centuries before in Europe.
And he bequeathed to those who remained in the old, diverse urban
core a sharpened, more difficult problem in dealing with their own
perceptions and sensations of others.
Bodily movement first took on its modern importance as a new prin-
ciple of biological activity. The medical analysis of circulation of the
Civic Bodies 365
blood, of the respiration of the lungs, and of the electrical forces
moving throughout the nerves created a new image of the healthy
body, a body whose freedom of movement stimulated the organism.
From this medical knowledge it followed that space should be
designed to encourage bodily movement and the processes of respi-
ration associated with it; this deduction about space was drawn by
Enlightened urban planners in the eighteenth century. The person
who moved freely felt more self-possessed and individual as a result
of experiencing this physical freedom.
People now move rapidly, especially to and within peripheral ter-
ritories whose fragments are linked together only by automobiles.
The logistics of speed, however, detach the body from the spaces
through which it moves; highway planners seek, for reasons of safety
if nothing else, to neutralize and standardize the spaces through
which a speeding vehicle travels. The act of driving, disciplining the
sitting body into a fixed position, and requiring only micro-move-
ments, pacifies the driver physically. Harvey's generation imagined
movement as stimulating; in Robert Moses's New York we know it
as monotonous.
I n the nineteenth century designs for both movement and sitting
became tied to technologies that made the individual body comfort-
able. Comfort lowers the amount, and relaxes the intensity, of stimu-
lation; it, too, is an essay in monotony. The search for comfortable,
lesser stimulation has a direct connection to how we are likely to
deal with the disturbing sensations which potentially loom in a
diverse multi-cultural community.
Roland Barthes first called attention to this connection in what he
termed people's use of an "image repertoire" when they encounter
strangers. to Scanning a complex or unfamiliar scene, the individual
tries to sort it out rapidly in terms of images which fall into simple
and general categories, drawing on social stereotypes. Encountering
a black man or an Arab on the street, a white person registers threat,
and does not look more searchingly. The judgment, Barthes ob-
served, is instant and the result surprising; thanks to the classifying
powers of the image repertoire, people shut out further stimulation.
Confronted with difference, they quickly become passive.
The urbanist Kevin Lynch has shown how an image repertoire can
be used to interpret urban geography in the same way. Every urban-
ite, he says, carries an image of "where I belong" in the mind's eye;
in his research Lynch found that his subjects compared new places
to this mental snapshot and, the less the twO corresponded, the more
368 FLESH AND STONE
by Robert Moses, the word "ghetto" took on the barely submerged
meaning of "those who have been left behind." Harlem, for instance,
depopulated; the Jews and the Greeks left it in the 1930s, the
nascent black bourgeoisie left it forty years later. To belong to a
ghetto came to be seen as a matter of sharing a common failure.
Many of the modern attempts to revive ghetto spaces have, in the
manner of the Renaissance Jews, sought to transform segregated
lives also into an honorable collective identity. This effort has
occurred everywhere in New York, among new ethnic migrants as
among the blacks, poor Jews, and other ethnics left behind. To
revive the honor of the ghetto has meant turning inward both spa-
tially and mentally. Most community-building efforts focus on defin-
ing a common identity and shoring up buildings or spaces which
define a center of that common life, rather than making contact with
those who are different. New York was never a melting pot, but its
multi-cultural problems now are tinged with this history of abandon-
ment, and the needs of the abandoned to restitute their honor. Yet
the very forces which brought new people to the urban center after
the heirs of Robert Moses left will not permit this inward turning,
this honor forged in a space of separation on the model of the Vene-
tianJews.
In terms of population, New York has only been able to take in
new ethnics by repopulating the old ghetto spaces. The zones of pov-
erty to the northeast of Wall Street, for instance, are now filling with
the night army who work as cleaners, printers, messengers, and ser-
vice workers in the temples of fiber-optic finance. Dominicans, Sal-
vadoreans, and Haitians are pressing into the still habitable housing
at the northwest corner of Harlem. In Brooklyn, Russian Jews, Has-
ids, and Syrians have repopulated the places abandoned by the Jews
who came in earlier generations. And throughout the urban core,
the steady, inflowing stream of young native whites presses into the
places vacated by an earlier middle class.
Moreover, the economy of the city will not permit this inward
turning. National chain stores have replaced many local businesses;
small businesses remain strong in New York engaged in those kinds
of enterprises-from violin repair to copper restoration to specialist
printing-which draw on a metropolitan rather than local clientele.
These quirky, small, specialist businesses offer many immigrants
now, as in the past, a first step up on the social ladder. The recent
history of multi-culturalism in New York has moved in a separatist
Civic Bodies 369
direction, but this ethnic separatism is a dead end, economically if
nothing else.
From Perikles' Athens to David's Paris, the word "civic" has implied
an interrwined fate, a crossing of fortunes. It was inconceivable to a
Periklean Greek that his or her fortune could be separated from the
fortunes of a city, or to a pagan Roman of Hadrian's time. Though
early Christians believed their fate lay within themselves, this inner
life was eventually reconnected to worldly fortunes they shared with
others. The medieval corporation seemed to break with this notion
of a common destiny, since it could will itself to change, and like the
University of Bologna, break with its present circumstances. Yet the
corporation was a collective body, literally an incorporation of partic-
ular people into a legal entity with a larger life of its own. And the
Venetian Ghetto told a bitter story about a common destiny, for the
Christian Venetians knew their fortunes could not be divorced from
the Jews whom they kept in the city, while the fortunes of the Jews
in the Ghetto could not be untied from the lives of their oppressors.
The food riots launched by the Parisian women at the dawn of the
French Revolution also sought to interlock their fortunes with pow-
ers beyond themselves.
In the modern world, belief in a common destiny suffered a curi-
ous division. Nationalist ideologies have asserted that people share
a fate, as have revolutionary ideologies; the city, however, has falsi-
fied these assertions. During the course of the nineteenth century,
urban development used the technologies of motion, of public
health and of private comfort, the workings of the market, the plan-
ning of streets, parks, and squares to resist the demands of crowds
and privilege the claims of individuals. Those individuals, as Tocque-
ville observes, feel "strangers to the destinies of each other"; in com-
mon with other observers of the progress of individualism,
Tocqueville saw its profound connection to materialism, a "virtuous
materialism," he wrote, "which would not corrupt, but enervate the
soul, and noiselessly unbend its springs of action."12 In withdrawing
from common life, that individual would lose life.
The churning energies of destruction and rebuilding which have
created and destroyed great office buildings, apartment houses, and
homes in New York have denied time's claims on civic culture. The
trajectories out of New York resemble socially the routes taken out
370 FLESH AND STONE
of London and other cities--cities which have taken on their modern
shapes through individually detaching movements. The denial of a
common fate was crucial to all these movements.
Yet if the whites fleeing to Long Island after the Second World
War flatly denied they shared a fate with the whites or blacks who
remained, more subtle denials also occurred. Those who were left
behind denied, for the sake of honor, that their fates intertwined
with others. The privileged have protected chemselves against the
poor as they have protected themselves against stimulation; the
needy have sought to wear a like armor, which only wards off those
they need. Life in Greenwich Village exemplifies perhaps the most
we have been able to achieve: a willingness to live with difference,
though a denial this entails a shared fate.
2. CIVIC BODIES
At the beginning of this study, I said chat I have written it as a reli-
gious believer, and now, at its end, I should like to explain why. In
Flesh and Stone I have argued that urban spaces take form largely
from the ways people experience their own bodies. For people in a
multi-cultural city to care about one another, I believe we have to
change the understanding we have of our own bodies. We will never
experience the difference of others until we acknowledge the bodily
insufficiencies in ourselves. Civic compassion issues from chat physi-
cal awareness of lack in ourselves, nOt from sheer goodwill or politi-
cal rectitude. If these assercions seem far from the practical realities
of New York, perhaps it is a sign of how much urban experience has
become divorced from religious understanding.
These lessons to be learned from the bod y are one of the founda-
tions of the Judeo-Christian tradition. Central to that tradition are
the transgressions of Adam and Eve, the shame of their nakedness,
their exile from the Garden, which lead to a story of what the first
humans became, as well as what chey lost. In the Garden, they were
innocent, unknowing, and obedient. Out in the world, they became
aware; they knew they were flawed creatures, and so they explored,
sought to understand what was strange and unlike; they were no
longer God's children to whom all was given. The Old Testament
recounts over and over stories of people who mirror this sorrowful
awakening of the first humans, people who transgress in their bodily
desires the commandments of God, are punished, and then, like
Civic Bodies 371
Adam and Eve in exile, awaken. The first Christians made from
Christ's passage on earth such a story; crucified for man's sins, His
gift to men and women is to rouse a sense of the insufficiency of the
flesh; the less pleasure His followers take in their own bodies, the
more they will love one another.
Pagan history told this ancient truth in another way, as the story
of what bodies experience in cities. The Athenian agora and Pnyx
were urban spaces in which citizens felt bodily insufficiency: the
ancient agora scimulaced people physically, ac che price of depriving
ch em of coherent speech wich others; che Pnyx provided continuity
10 speech and so gave che communicy experiences of narracive logic,
ac che ptlce of rendering people vulnerable to che rhetorical stimula-
cion of words. The stOnes of che agora and the Pnyx put people in a
scace of flux, each of che two centers a source of dissacisfaction che
other could resolve only by arousing dissacisfactions of its own. In
the dual-centered cicy, people knew incompleteness in their bodily
experiences. Yet no people more self-consciously valued civic cul-
ture ch an these same Achenians: "human" and "polis" were inter-
changeable words. Intense civic bonds arose from the very play of
displacement, people cared scrongly about one anocher in spaces
which did noc fully satisfy cheir bodily needs-indeed, aJewish con-
cemporary mighc have said, because chese spaces did not sacisfy bodily
needs. Yet the ancient cicy was itself noc like a monument to stabil-
ity. Not even the most binding of human acts, ritual, could guarantee
its cohesion.
It is a modern habit to think of social instability and personal insuf-
ficiency as pure negatives. The formacion of modern individualism
has in general aimed ac making individuals self-sufficient, chat is to
say, complete rather than incomplete. Psychology speaks the lan-
guage of people finding a center for chemselves, of achieving integra-
tion and wholeness of che self. Modern social movements also speak
chls language, as chough communities ought to become like individu-
als, coherent and whole. In New York, the pains of being lefc behind
or lefc out have inflecced this individual-communal language; racial,
echnlc, and social groups cum inward in order to cohere, and so to
heal. The psychological experience of displacement, of incoher-
ence-che domain of whac che psychoanalysc Robert Jay Lifton calls
a "protean self'-would seem only a recipe for deepening chose
social wounds.
13
However, without significant experiences of self-displacement
social differences gradually harden because interest in che Othe;
372 FLESH AND STONE
withers. Freud pointed to this sociological truth as a bodily truth in
Beyond the Pleasure Principle, the short essay he published in 1920.
He cOntrasts the bodily pleasure in wholeness and equilibrium to a
more reality-centered bodily experience which transcends that plea-
sure. Pleasure, Freud wrote, "is invariably set in motion by an
unpleasurable tension . .. [and] its final outcome coincides with a
lowering of that tension."14 Pleasure, that is, is not like sexual excite-
ment, which involves an arousing disturbance of the senses; pleasure
instead seeks to return to a state which Freud imagined ultimately to
be like the comfort of a fetus in the womb, safe and unknowing of
the world. Under sway of the pleasure principle, people wish to dis-
engage.
Freud speaks to us as a worldly realist rather than as a religious
ascetic because he knows the desire for comfort expresses a pro-
found biological need. "Protection against stimuli," he writes, "is an
almost more important function for the living organism than reception
0/ stimuli."15 But if protection rules, if the body is not open to peri-
odic crises, eventually the organism sickens for lack of stimulation.
The modern urge for comfort, he said, is a highly dangerous impulse
for human beings; the difficulties we seek to avoid do not therefore
disappear.
What could defeat the urge to withdraw into pleasure? In Beyond
the Pleasure Principle, Freud envisaged rwo ways. One he called the
"reality principle": a person faces up to difficulties physical or emo-
tional by force of sheer will. Under the sway of the reality principle,
a person resolves to know "unpleasure."16 That "unpleasure"
requires courage in everyday life. But Freud is also a realist because
he knows the reality principle is not a very strong force, courage a
rarity. The other defeat of pleasure is more certain and more endur-
ing. In the course of a person's experience, he writes, "it happens
again and again that individual instincts or parts of instincts turn out
to be incompatible in their aims or demands with the remaining
ones." l7 The body feels at war with itself; it becomes uncomfortably
aroused; but the incompatibilities of desire are toO great to be
resolved, or to be pushed aside.
This is the work civilization does: it confronts us, in all our frailty,
with contradictory experiences which cannot be pushed away, and
which make us feel therefore incomplete. Yet precisely in that state
of "cognitive dissonance"-to use the term of a later critic-human
beings begin to focus upon, to attend to, to explore, and to become
engaged in the realm where the pleasure of wholeness is impossible.
Civic Bodies
3 7 3
The history of the Western city records a long struggle berween this
civilized possibility and the effort to create power as well as pleasure
through master images of wholeness. Master images of "the body"
have performed the work of power in urban space. The Athenians
and pagan Romans made use of such master images; in the evolution
of the Judeo-Christian tradition, the spiritual wanderer returned
home to the urban center where his suffering body became a reason
for submission and meekness, the spiritual body thereby becoming
flesh and stone. At the dawn of the modern scientific era, the center
served a new master image of "the body"-the body a circulating
mechanism and the center its heart-pump and lungs-and this scien-
tific body image evolved socially to justify the power of the individ-
ual over the claims of the polity.
Yet, as I have tried to show, this legacy contains deep internal
contradictions and strains. In the Athenian city, the master image of
male nakedness could not fully control or define the clothed bodies
of women. The Roman center served as the mythic focus of a fiction
of Rome's continuity and coherence; the visual images which
expressed this coherence became the instruments of power. Yet, if
in the democratic center, the Athenian citizen became a slave of the
voice, in the imperial center the Roman citizen became a slave of
the eye.
When early Christianity took rOOt in the city, it reconciled its rela-
tion to this visual and geographic tyranny so antithetical to the spiri-
tual condition of the wandering people of the Judeo-Christian Word
and Light. Christianity reconciled itself to the powers of the urban
center by dividing its own visual imagination in rwo, inner and outer,
spirit and power; the realm of the Outer city could not fully conquer
the need for faith in the inner city of the soul. The Christian cities
of the Middle Ages continued to experience this divided center, now
built in stone as the differences berween sanctuary and street. Yet
not even Christ's body, meant through imitation to rule the Christian
city, could rule the street.
Nor could the center hold by acts of purification. The impulse to
atone and to cleanse the polluted Christian body which animated the
segregation of the Jews and other impure bodies in Christian Venice
could nOt restore its spiritual core. Nor could the ceremonies of rev-
olution make the core cohere. The impulse to clear away obstacles,
to create a transparent space of freedom at the urban center of revo-
lutionary Paris, became mere emptiness and induced apathy, helping
defeat the ceremonies aiming at a durable civic transformation. The
374 FLESH AND STONE
modern master image of the individual, detached body has hardly
ended in triumph. It has ended in passivity.
In the crevices and contradictions of master images of the body in
space, there have appeared moments and occasions for resistance,
the dignifying resistances of the Thesmophoria and the Adonia, the
rituals of the dining room and the bath in the Christian house, the
rituals of the night in the Ghetto-rituals which did not destroy
the dominant order but created a more complex life for the bod-
ies the dominant order sought to rule in its own image. In our his-
tory, the complex relations between the body and the city have car-
ried people beyond the pleasure principle, as Freud described it;
these have been troubled bodies, bodies nOt at rest, bodies aroused
by disturbance. How much dissonance and unease can people bear?
For two thousand years they sustained a great deal in places to which
they had been passionately attached. We might take this record of
an active physical life conducted in a center which does not hold as
one measure of our present estate.
In the end this historic tension between domination and civiliza-
tion asks us a question about ourselves. How will we exit from our
own bodily passivity-where is the chink in our own system, where
is our liberation to come from? It is, I would insist, a peculiarly press-
ing question for a multi-cultural city, even if it is far from current
discourse about group injuries and group rights. For without a dis-
turbed sense of ourselves, what will prompt most of us-who are not
heroic figures knocking on the doors of crack houses-to turn out-
ward toward each other, to experience the Other?
Any society needs strong moral sanctions to make people tolerate,
much less experience positively, duality, incompleteness, and oth-
erness. Those moral sanctions arose in Western civilization through
the powers of religion. Religious rituals bonded, in Peter Brown's
phrase, the body to the city; a pagan ritual like the Thesmophoria
did so by literally pushing women out of the boundaries of the
house, into a ritual space where both women and men confronted
the gendered ambiguities in the meaning of citizenship.
It would be crass to say that we need, i(l a utilitarian fashion, reli-
gious ritual again in order to turn human beings outward-and the
history of ritual spaces in the city will not allow us to think of
believing in so instrumental a way. As the pagan world disappeared,
the Christian found in the making of ritual spaces a new spiritual
C ivie Bodies 3 75
vocation, a vocation of labor and self-discipline that eventually put
its mark upon the city as it had earlier upon the rural sanctuary. The
gravity of these ritual spaces lay in ministering to bodies in pain, and
the recognition of human suffering inseparably bound in the Chris-
tian ethos. By a terrible twist of fate, when Christian communities
found they had to live with those unlike themselves, they imposed
this conjoint sense of place and the burdens of a suffering body on
those, like the Venetian Jews, whom they oppressed.
The French Revolution played out this Christian drama again, and
yet not again. The physical environment in which the Revolution
imposed suffering, and in which the revolutionaries sought to recu-
perate a maternal figure incorporating and transforming their own
sufferings, had lost the specificity and density of place. The suffering
body displayed itself in empty space, a space of abstract freedom but
no enduring human connection.
The drama of the revolutionary rituals echoed a pagan drama as
well, the attempt deeply rooted in ancient life to deploy ritual, to
guide it in the service of rhe oppressed and the denied. On the
Champ de Mars this effort at the design of ritual also aborted; the
ancient belief that ritual "comes from somewhere else" now seemed
to mean that its powers were beyond design, beyond human agency,
inspired by forces which lay beyond the powers of a humane and
civilized society.
In its stead, design turned to the shaping of pleasure, in the form
of comfort, originally to compensate for fatigue, to lighten the bur-
den of work. But these powers of design which rested the body came
as well to lighten its sensory weight, suspending the body in an ever
more passive relation to its environment. The trajectory of designed
pleasure led the human body to an ever more solitary rest.
If there is a place for faith in mobilizing the powers of civilization
against those of domination, it lies in accepting exactly what this soli-
tude seeks to avoid: pain, the kind of lived pain evinced by my friend
at the cinema. His shattered hand serves as a witness; lived pain wit-
nesses the body moving beyond the power of society to define; the
meanings of pain are always incomplete in the world. The acceptance
of pain lies within a realm outside the order human beings make in
the world. Wittgenstein bore witness to pain thus in the passage
quoted at the beginning of this study. In a magisterial work, The Body
in Pain, the philosopher Elaine Scarry has drawn upon Witt-
genstein's insight. "Though the capacity to experience physical pain
is as primal a fact about the human being as is the capacity to hear,
376 FLESH AND STONE
to touch, to desire," she writes, pain differs "from every other bodily
and psychic event, by not having an object in the external world."!8
The vast volumes which appear in Boullee's plans serve as one
marker of the point at which secular society lost contact with pain.
The revolutionaries believed they could fill an empty volume, free
of the obstacles and litter of the past, with human meanings, that a
space without obstructions could serve the needs of a new society.
Pain could be erased by erasing place. This same erasure has served
different ends in a later time, the purposes of individualllight from
others rather than moving closer toward them. The French Revolu-
tion thus marked a profound rupture in our civilization's understand-
ing of pain; David placed the body in pain in the same space that
Marianne occupied, an empty, homeless space, a body alone with its
pain-and this is an unendurable condition.
Lurking in the civic problems of a multi-cultural city is the moral
difficulty of arousing sympathy for those who are Other. And this
can only occur, I believe, by understanding why bodily pain requires
a place in which it can be acknowledged, and in which its transcen-
dent origins become visible. Such pain has a trajectory in human
experience. It disorients and makes incomplete the self, defeats the
desire for coherence; the body accepting pain is teady to become a
civic body, sensible to the pain of another person, pains present
together on the street, at last endurable--even though, in a diverse
world, each person cannot explain what he or she is feeling, who he
or she is, to the other. But the body can follow this civic trajectory
only if it acknowledges that there is no remedy for its sufferings in
the contrivings of society, that its unhappiness has come from else-
where, that its pain derives from God's command to live together
as exiles.
NOTES
INTRODUCTION: Body and City
1. Hugo Munsterberg, Th, Film: A Psychological Study: Th, Silent Photoplay in 1916
(New York: Dover Publicarions, 1970; 1916), 9 ~ , 82.
2. Robert Kubey and Mihaly Csikszentmihalyi. Television and the Quality of LIfe:
How Viewing Shapes Everyday Experience (Hillsdale, NJ: Lawrence Erlbaum.
1990), 1 7 ~ .
3. M. P. Baumgartner. The Moral Ordtr 0/ a Suburb (New York: Oxford University
Press, 1988), 127.
4. See, especially, Max Horkheimer and Theodor Adorno, "The Culrure Industry:
Enlightenment as Mass Deception, " Dialectic 0/ En/igh/mmem, rcans. John Cum-
mings (New York: Continuum, 1993; 1944), 120-167; Theodor Adoeno, "Cul-
ture Industry Reconsidered," New GeNtIan Critique 6 (1975): 12-19; and
Herbert Marcuse, One-Dimensional Man: Studies in the Ideology 0/ Advanced InduI-
trial Society (Boston: Beacon Press, 1964).
5. John of Salisbury, PolicraticuI, ed. C. C. J. Webb (Oxford: Oxford University
Press, 1909; original , 1159), pt. 5, no. 2. Because this text is corrupt, quotations
from it follow the version used by Jacques Le Goff, "Head or Heart ? The Political
378 NOTES (PAGES 26-42)
Use of Body Metaphors in the Middle Ages," in Fragments for a His/ory of the
Human Body, Part Three, eds. Michel Feher. Ramona Naddaff, and Nadia Tazi
(New York: Zone Books, 1990), 17.
6. See Michel Foucault and Richard Sennett, "Sexuality and Solimde," H uman;l;e!
in Review l.1 ( 1982): 3-21.
7. Ludwig Wingensrein, The Blue and Brown Books: Preliminary S/udiu!or,he "Phi/o-
lophical lnvesligatiom" (New York: Harper Colophon, 1965), 50.
CHAPTER ONE: Nakedness
1. Nicole Loraux, The Invention 0/ Athens: The Funeral Ora/ion in the Classical Cify,
rcans. Alan Sheridan (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1986; Paris,
1981),113.
2. Thucydides, His/ory 0/ the Peloponnesian War, trans. Rex Warner (London: Pen-
guin, 1954), 145.
3. Ibid., 146.
4. Ibid., 14 7.
5. See Kenneth Clark, The Nude: A Study in Ideal Form (Princecon: Princeton Uni-
versity Press, 1956).
6. Thucydides, History o/ Ihe Peloponnesian War, 38.
7. R. E. Wycherley, Tht Stones 0/ A/htnJ (Princeton: Princecon University Press,
1978),19.
8. Qumed in C. M. Cipolla, Economic H iJlory of Europe, vol. I (London: Fontana,
1972),144-145.
9. M. l. Finley, The Ancient Economy, 2nd cd. (London: Hogarth Press, 1985),81.
10. Hesiod, Works and Days, 176- 178; quoted in Finley, The Ancielll Economy, 81.
11.]. W. Roberts, City 0/ Sokrates: An Introduction to Classical AthtnJ (London and
New York: Routledge & Kegan Paul, 1984), 10-11.
12. Ariscode, Politics, ed. Richard McKeon, rrans. Benjamin Jowett (New York:
Random House, 1968), VII, 1330B.
13. Thucydides, History 0/ the Peloponnesian War, 120.
14. M. I. Finley, The Ancimt Greeks: An IllIroduction to Their Life and Thought (Lon-
don: Penguin, 1963), 137.
15. E. R. Dodds, The Greeks and the Irrational (Berkeley: University of California
Press, 1951), 183.
16. Evelyn B. Harrison, .. Athena and Athens in the East Pediment of the Parthenon"
(1967), in The Parthenon, ed. Vincent). Bruno (New York: Norton, 1974),226.
17. Philipp Fehl, "Gods and Men in the Panhenon Frieze" (1961), in Tht Par-
thenon, 321.
18. John Boardman, "Greek Arc and Architecmre," in The Oxford Hislory of the
Clauical World, eds. John Boardman, Jasper Griffin, Oswyn Murray (New York:
Oxford University Press, 1986), 291.
19. See Clark, The Nude, 3,23-24.
20. Peter Brown, Tht Body and Society: Men, Women, and Sexual Renunciation in
Early Christianity (New York: Columbia University Press, 1988), 10.
21. Ariscotie, On the Generation 0/ Animalr, II.i, 7l6a 5; trans. A. L. Peck, Loeb
Classical Library (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1953), 11.
Notes (Pages 42-50) 379
22. Thomas Laqueur, Making Sex: Body and Gender/rom the Greeks to Freud (Cam-
bridge: Harvard University Press, 1990),39.
23. Frant;oise Heritier-Auge, "Semen and Blood: Some Ancient Theories Concern-
ing Their Genesis and Relationship," in Fragments /01' a History 0/ the Human
Body, Part Three, 171.
24. Aristotle, On the Generation 0/ Animals, lI.i, 732a 22-23; trans. Peck, 133.
25. Laqueur, Making Sex, 25.
26. Quoted in ibid., 25.
27. See the critique of Empedokles in Ariswtie, On Sense and Sensible Objects, 437b
25; On the Soul, Paroa Natura/is, On Breath, trans. W. S. Hett, Loeb Classical
Library (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1964),223.
28. Aristotle, On Sense and Sensible Objects, 438b; rrans. Hett, 225.
29. See for example, the discussion of "Tyranny" in Book Eight in PlatO, The Repub-
lic, <rans. Desmond Lee, 2nd ed. (New York: Penguin, 1974), 381-398.
30. See B. M. W. Knox, "Silent Reading in Antiquity," Greek, Roman, and Byzantinc
Studies 9 (1968): 421-435; andJesper Svenbro, "la voix incerieure," Phrasikleia:
anthropologie de la lecture en Griee ancienne (Paris: Editions la Decouverte, 1988),
178-206.
31. Giulia Sissa, "The Sexual Philosophies of Plaw and Ariswtie," in A History 0/
Women in the West. Vol. I: From Ancient Goddesses to Christian Saints, ed. Pauline
S. Pantel, rrans. Arthur Goldhammer (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University
Press, 1992; Paris, 1991 ),80-81.
32. Joint Association of Classical Teachers, The World of Athens: An Introduction to
Classical Athenian Culture (Cambridge, UK: Cambridge University Press,
1984), 174.
33. Wycherley, The Stones 0/ Athem, 219.
34. Aristophanes, The Clouds, 1005ff; paraphrased in ibid., 220.
35. R. E. Wycherley, How the Greeks Built Cities, 2nd ed. (New York: Norton,
1976),146.
36. See Brown, "Body and City," The Body and Society, 5-32.
37. Aiskhines, Prosecution 0/ Timarkhus, 138ff; quOted in Kenneth Dover, Greek
Homosexuality (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1989)
38. David M. Halperin, One Hundred Years 0/ Homosexuality (London: Routledge,
1990),22.
39. Dover, Greek Homosexuality, 100.
40. Quored in ibid., 106.
41. Homer, Iliad, 15.306-10; <rans. A. T. Murray, vo1. 11, Loeb Classical Library
(Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1963), 129.
42. Jan Bremmer, "Walking, Standing, and Sining in Ancient Greek Culture," in A
Cultural History of Gesture, eds. Jan Bremmer and Herman Roodenburg (I thaca,
NY: Cornell University Press, 1991), 20. The Homeric quote is from the
Iliad, 5.778.
43. Alexls, fragment 263; T. Kock, Comicorum Auicorumfragmmta, tcans. C. B. Gul-
ick (Leipzig, 1880-88); quoted in Bremmer, "Walking, Standing, and Sicting in
Greek Culture," 19.
44. Thucydides, HiJ/ory 0/ the PeloponneJian War, 149.
45. My thanks co Professor G. W. Bowersock for pointing this out.
46. Birgina Bergquist, "Sympotic Space: A Funcrional Aspecr of Greek Dining-
380
NOTES (PAGES 50-72)
Rooms," In Sympolica: A Symposium on the Symposion, ed. Oswyn Murray
(Oxford: CI.rendon Press, 1990), 54.
47. John M. Camp, The Athenian Agora: Excavations in the Heart of Classical Athem
(London: Thames & Hudson, 1986).
48. Vincent]. Bruno, 'The Panhenon and [he Theory of Classical Form," in The
Parthenon, 95.
49. Camp, The Athenian Agora, 72.
SO. Aris[Qphanes, The Clouds, 207; quoted in Wycherley, The Stone! 0/ Athens, 53.
51. See Johann Joachim Winckelmann, His/Dry of Ancient Art, rcans. Johann GOCt-
fried Herder (New York: Ungar, 1969).
52. AristOtle, Politics, [cans. Jowect . 310.
53. Ibid.,
54. See the discussion in Josiah Ober, Mass and Elite in Democratic Athens: Rhetoric,
Ideology, and the PftWer 0/ the People (Princccon: Princeron University Press
1989),299-304. '
55. Wycherley, How the Greeks Built Cities, 130.
56. Finley, The Ancient Greeks, 134.
57. Bremmer, "Walking, Standing, and Sining in Ancient Greek Culture," 25-26.
58. Zeitiin, "Playing the Ocher," in Nothing to Do with Dionysos?, eds. John
J. Wlnkler and Froma Zeitiin (Princecon: Princecon University Press, 1990),72.
59. The following account is taken from Xenophon, Hellenika, I. 7.7 -35; Hellenika,
1- 1':3. 10, crans. Peter Krentz (Warmin"er, UK: Aris & Phillips, 1989), 59-67.
60. HeslOd, Works and Days, 43; quoted in Joint Association of Classical Teachers
The World of Athens, 95. '
61. Ober, Mass and Elite in Democratic Athens, 175-176.
62. Thucydides, History ol the Peloponnesian War, 49.
63. Ibid., 242. My emphasis.
64. John. ]. Winkler, ''The Ephebes' Song," in Nothing to Do with DionyJOJ?, 40-41.
65. For (hose who wish CO pursue (his further, see G. R. Stanton and P. J. Bicknell
"Voting in Tribal Groups in the Athenian Assembly," GRBS 28 (1987): 51-92:
and Mogens Hansen, ''The Athenian Ekklesia and the Assembly Place on the
Pnyx," GRBS 23 (1982): 241-249.
66. The Invention 01 Athens, 175. See also Edouard Will, "Bulletin histor-
.que," R .. ue Historique 238 (1967): 396-397.
CHAPTER TwO: The Cloak of Darkness
1. Thucydides, History 0/ the Peloponnesian War, 151 .
2. Ibid. , 146.
3. Roberts, City olSokrates: An Introduction 10 Classical Athens, 12B.
4. Erika Simon, Festivals 0/ Allica: An Commentary (Madison: Univer-
sity of Wisconsin Press, 1983), 18-22.
5. J .-P. Vernant, "Introduction" (Q Marcel Detienne, The Gardens 0/ Adonis, crans.
Janet Lioyd (Arlantic Highlands, NJ : The Humanities Press, 1977), xvii-xviii.
Notes (pages 73-84)
38 1
6. Sarah Pomeroy, Goddesses, Whores , Wives, and Slaves: Women in Classical Anliq-
uity (New York: Schockcn Books, 1975),78.
7. See Roman Jakobson, "Two Types of Language and Two Types of Aphasic Dis-
turbances," in Fundamtntals 0/ Language, eds. R. Jakobson and Morris Halle
(The Hague: MoutOn, 1956); and Peter Brooks, Readingfor th, Plot (New York:
Knopf, 1984), Chapter 1.
8. Herodocus, History, 11.35; quoted in Fran()ois Lissarrague, "Figures of Women,"
A History o/Women in the West , vol. I: Prom Ancient GoddesJes to ChriJlian Saints,
ed. Pauline Schmict Pantel , 194.
9. Xenophon, Oikonomikos 7.35; quored in Joint Association of Classical Teachers,
The World 01 Athens: An Introduction 10 Classical Athenian Culture, 16B.
10. Annick Le Geurer. Scent, (rans. Richard Miller (New York: Random House,
1992),8.
11. Aristophanes, Lysistrata, 928; quoted by NicoJe Loraux, "Herakles: The Super-
Male and (he Feminine," in Belore Sexuality: The Construction 01 Erotic Experief1ce
in the Ancient Greek World, eds. David Halperin, John J. Winkler, and Froma I.
Zeitlin (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1990), 3 1.
12. AJciphron, Lellers, IV. 14; quored in Detienne, The Gardens 01 Adonis, 65.
13. Dioscorides, Materia Medica, 11.136.1- 3; quoted in ibid., 68.
14. Ibid.
15. Eva Cantarella, Bisexuality in the Ancient World, trans. Corma O'Cuilleanain
(New Haven: Yale University Press, 1992),90.
16. 0swyn Murray, "Sympotic History," in Sympolica: A Symposium on the Sympo-
sion, 7.
17. L. E. Rossi, "11 simposio greco arcaico e classico. . , quoted in Ezio PeJlizer,
"Sympotic Enrertainment," crans. Catherine McLaughlin, in Sympotica, 183.
18. Sappho, Greek Lyrics, vol. 1, trans. David A. Campbell, Loeb Classical Library
(Cambridge: Harvard Universicy Press, 1982),79-80.
19. Plato, Phaedrus, 276b; Phaedrus and utters VII and VIII, (rans. Waiter Hamilton
(London: Penguin, 1973),98.
20. See John]. Winkler, "The Laughter of the Oppressed: Demeter and (he Gar-
dens of Adonis," The Constraints 0/ Desire: The Anthropology 01 Sex and Gtntkr
in Ancient Greece (New York: Routledge, Chapman & Hall , 1990),
21. Waiter Surkert, Structure and History in Greek Mythology and Ritual (Berkeley:
University of California Press, 1979) 3. "Ouk emos ho mythos" is found originally
in Euripides, fragment 484. The distinction is pursued in Plato, Symposium,
177a, trans. Alexander Nehamas and Paul Woodruff (lndianapolis: Hackett
Publishing, 1989), 7; and in Gorgias, 523a and 527a, (rans. WaIter Hamilton
(London: Penguin, 1960), 142-143, 148-149.
22. Meyer Fortas, "Ritual and Office," in Essays on the Ritual o/Social Relations, ed.
Max Gluckman (Manchester: Manchesrer University Press, 1962),86.
23. Thucydides, History of the Peloponnesian War, 152-153.
24. Ibid., 155.
25. Ibid.
26. Plutarch, "Perikles," The Rist and Fall 0/ A/hens: Nine Greek Lives, trans. lan
Sco{(-Kilvert (London: Penguin, 1960),20 I.
27. Thucydides, Hislory 0/ the Peloponnesian War, 604.
382 NOTES (PAGES 84-97)
28. See Loraux, The Invention 0/ Athens: The Funeral Oration in the C/aSJieal Cily,
98-118. The qum3rion in nOfe 123 is from Thucydides, His/Dry 0/ the Peloponne.
sian War, 148.
29. Thucydides, His/Dry of the Pe/oponnesian War, 156.
30. Jean-Pierre Vernant. "Dim Body. Dazzling Body," in Fragments for a His/Dry 0/
the Human Body, Pan One, eds. Michel Feher. Ramona Naddaff. and Nadia Tazi
(New York: Urzone Books, 1989),28.
31. Thucydides, His/Dry 0/ the Peloponnesian War, 147.
CHAPTER THREE: The Obsessive Image
1. Frank E. Brown, Roman Architecture (New York: George Braziller, 1972),35.
2. William L. MacDonald, The Pantheon (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University
Press, 1976),88-89.
3. Ibid., 88.
4. Seneca, Ullers 10 LucilillJ, no 37; quoced in Carlin A. Bareoo, The SO"OWS 0/ the
Ancient Romans (Princeron: Princeton University Press, 1993), 15-16.
S. Barron, The SON'OWS 0/ the Ancient Romani. 49.
6. E. H. Gombrich, Art and Illusion: A Study in tht Psychology o/Pictorial Representa-
tion, Bollin,gen Series XXXV.S (PrincetOn: Princecon University Press, 1961),
129.
7. Augustine, Confessions, X.30; trans. R. S. Pine-Coffin (London: Penguin, 1961),
233. The biblical reference is IJohn 2:16.
8. Richard Brilliam, Visual NaN'ativts (lthaca. NY: Cornell University Press,
1984),122.
9. Mary Taliaferro Boatwri,ght, Hadrian and the City 0/ Rome (Princecon, Princecon
Universiey Press, 1987),46.
la. Sueconius, "Nero/' 31; The Twelve Caesars, trans. Robett Graves, rev. ed. (Lon-
don: Penguin, 1979),229.
11. Fer,gus Millar, The Emperor in the Roman World (lthaca: Cornell University Press,
1992),6.
12. Vicruvius, The Ten Books 0/ Architecture, trans. Morris Hicky Mor,gan (New
York: Dover, 1960), 1. I have altered Ms. Mor,gan's translation slightly.
13. Livy, Histories, V.54.4; quoced in Urbs Roma, ed. Donald Dudley (London: Phai-
don Press, 1967),5.
14. S p i r ~ Koscof, A History 0/ Architecture: Stttings and Rituals (Oxford: Oxford
Universiey Press, 1985), 191.
15. Ovid, Fasti, 11.683-684; crans. James George Frazer, Loeb Classical Library
(Cambridge, MA: Harvard Universiey Press, 1976), 107. I have aleered slighciy
Frazer's translation.
16. Quoted in Lidia Mazzolani, The Idea 0/ the City in Roman Thought, trans. S.
O'Donnell (London: Hollis and Career, 1970), 175.
17. Michael Grant, History 0/ Rome (New York: Scribners, 1978),302.
18. Ibid., 266.
19. Boarwright, Hadrian and the City o/Rome, 132.
20. Scriptores Hiscoriae Augustae, Hadriani 8.3; quoted in Boarwright, Hadrian
andtheCityo/Rome, 133.
Notes (Pages 97-111) 383
21. William L MacDonald, The Architecture 0/ the Roman Empire. Vol. I: An Introduc-
tory Study (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1982), 129.
22. Dio Cassius, Roman History, LXIX 4.6; Dio's Roman History, vol. 8, trans. Ear-
nest Cary, Loeb Classical Library (Cambridge, MA: Harvard Universiry Press,
1925),433.
23. Pliny, Natural His/ory, xxxv. 64-66; qumed and translared in Norman Bryson,
Vision and Painting (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1983), 1.
24. BartOn, The Sorrows of the Ancient Romam, 13.
25. See Keich Hopkins, "Murderous Games," Death and Renewal (New York: Cam-
bridge Universiey Press, 1983), 1-30.
26. Quoted in Kacherine Welch, '''The Roman Amphirheacer After Golvin" (Unpub-
lished manuscript, New York University, Institute of Fine Arts), 23. My thanks
to Dr. Welch for this and other materials on che amphitheatre.
27. Tenullian, Apology, no 15; Apologelical Works [and Octavius, Minucius Felix],
trans. Rudolph Arbesrnann, Emily )oseph Daly, and Edwin A. Quain, Fathers of
the Church Series, vol. la (Washington, D.e. : Catholic University of America
Press, 1950),48.
28. Mattial and Welch in Welch, "The Roman Amphitheater After Golvin," 23.
29. Sueronius, "Nero/' 39; The Twelve Cawtrs, 243.
30. Ibid.
3 1. Richard C. Beacham. The Roman Thealer and Its Audience (Cambridge, MA:
Harvard University Press, 1992), 152.
32. Quintilian. Inslitutio Oratoria, 100; quoted and translated by Fritz Graf, "Ges-
rures and Conventions: The Gestures of Roman ActOrs and OratOrs," in A Cul-
tural History 0/ Gesture, 41.
33. Richard Brilliant, Geslllre and Rank in Roman Ar/ (New Haven: Connecticut
Academy of Arcs and Sciences, 1963), 129-130.
34. See Robert Auguet, Cruelty and Civilization: The Roman Games (London: Alien
& Unwin, 1972).
35. Vitruvius. The Ten Books 0/ Architecture, 73.
36. Ibid., 75.
37. Joseph Rykwerc, TheIdea o/a Town (Cambridge, MA: MIT Press, 1988), 59.
38. Polybius, Histories, V1.31 , trans. F. Hultsch and E. S. Shuckburgh (Blooming-
[On: Indiana University Press, 1962),484; quoted in Spiro Kos[Of, The City
Shaped: Urban Patterns and Meanings Through History (London: Thames & Hud-
son, 1991 ), 108.
39. )oyce Reynolds, "Cities," in The Administration 0/ tht Roman Empire, ed. David
Braund (Exeter: University of Exerer Press, 1988), 17.
40. Ovid, Tristia, V.7.42-46, 49-52; Ovid, vol. VI, crans. Archur Leslie Wheeler,
rev. G. P. Gould, 2nd ed., Loeb Classical Library (Cambridge, MA: Harvard
Universiry Press, 1988),239.
4 1. Tacitus, Agricola, 21; Tacirus, Agricola, Germania, DialogJls, [rans. M. HuttOn,
rev. R. M. Ogilvie, Loeb Classical Library (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University
Press, 1980), 67.
42. Rykwen, The Idea 0/ a Town, 62.
43. Plautus, Curculio, 466-482; Plaurus, vol. 11 , tcans. Paul Nixon, Loeb Classical
Library (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1977).239.1 have revised
this rranslation slightly.
384 NOTES (PAGES 112-130)
44. Ramsay MacMullen. PaganiJm in the Roman Empire (New Haven: Yale Univer-
siry Press, 1981),80.
45. Richard Krautheimer, Early ChriItian and Byzantine Architecture, 4th ed. (New
York: Viking-Pengwn, 1986),42.
46. John E. Stambaugh, The Ancitnl Roman City (Baltimore: The Johns Hopkins
Universiry Press, 1988), 119.
47. Frank E. Brown, Roman Architecture, 13-14.
48. Srambaugh, Th, Ancient Roman City, 44.
49. Malcolm Bell, Observations on Western Greek Stoas," (Unpublished
manuscript, American Academy of Rome, 1992), 19-20; see also Maree!
Detienne. "En Gce-ce archalque: Geometrie Politique et Societe," Annates ESC
20 (1965): 425-442.
50. Velleius Paterculus. Compendium 0/ Roman HiI/Ory, 11, trans. Frederick William
Shipley (London: Heinemann, 1924), xx, cxxvi, 2-5.
51. Frank E. Brown, Roman Architecture, 14.
52. Yvon Thebert , "Private Life and Domestic Architecture in Roman Africa," in A
History 0/ Private Ltfe. Vol. I: From Pagan Rome to Byzantium, ed. Paul Veyne,
rrans. Archur Goldhammer (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press,
1990),363.
53. See Mark Girouard, Ltfe in the English Country House: A Social and Architectural
History (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1978).
54. Perer Brown, Th, Body and Sociny, 2 L
55. Plutarch, Pratcepta conjugalia, 47.144f; quoted in Peter Brown, The Body and
Society, 21.
56. Borh rexts from H. W. Garrod, ed., Th, Oxford Book 0/ Latin Vers, (Oxford:
Oxford University Press, 1944), Larin on 349, English on 500.
57. Again, my thanks to Professor Bowersock for this suggestion.
58. Marguerite Yourcenar, Memoirs o/Hadrian, trans. Grace Frick (New York: Far-
rar, Srraus, & Giroux, 1954),319-320.
59. H. W. Garrod, in The Oxford Book 0/ Latin Verse, makes this connection but
believes Pope's poem is suggested by Hadrian's, a direer connection which
seems tenuous. The poem is printed on pp. 500- 50 1.
CHAPTER FOUR: Time in the Body
1. Origen, Contra Celsum, trans. and ed. Henry Chadwick, rev ed. (Cambridge,
UK: Cambridge University Press, 1965), 152.
2. Ibid.
3. Ibid.
4. Ibid.
5. Arrhur Darby Nock, Conversion (Oxford: Oxford Universiry Press, 1969),227.
6. For both quotes, see Nock, Conversion, 8. The reference in James is to The
Varieties 0/ Religious Experience, 209.
7. See Peter Brown, The Body and Society, especially 5-32.
8. The folJowing ewo paragraphs are adapted and rewrinen from my earlier book,
Th,Conscienc.o/th,Ey,(New York: Norron, 1992; 1990),5-6.
Notes (Pages 130-141) 385
9. Harvey Cox, The Secular City: Secuiarization and the Urbanization in Theological
Perspectiv" rev. ed. (New York: Macmillan, 1966),49.
10. "Epistle to Diognatus," 7.5; trans. and quoted in Jaroslav Pelikan,jesus Through
the Centuries (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1985), 49-50. I have
removed here Pelikan's emphasis of the final sentence.
11. Augustine, The City o/God, XV. 1 ; trans. Gerald G. Walsh, et al., vol.. 2,
of the Church Series, vol. 14 (Washington, D.e. : Carholic Umverslty of
America Press, 1950),4 15.
12. Origen, Contra Ceisum, 313.
13. See I Corinrhians 11:2-16; 12:4-13.
14. John Chrysostom, Homiliae in Mallhaeum, 6.8:72; quored and discussed in Peter
Brown, Th,BodyandSociety, 315-317.
15. Perer Brown, Th, Body and Society, 316.
16. Origen, Contra Ceisum, 38 1.
17. Ibid., 382.
18. Regina Schwartz, "Rethinking Voyeurism and Patriarchy: The Case of Paradise
Lost," Representations 34 (1991): 87.
19. Dio Cassius, Roman His/ory, LII1.27.2; Dio's Roman History, vot. VI, trans. Ear-
nest Cary, Loeb Classical Library (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press,
1917), 263; quored in MacDonald, Th, Pantheon, 76. Percy Bysshe SheUey,
letter of March 23, 1819, to Thomas Love Peacock, Utlers o/Perry ByssheShelley,
ed. F. L Jones, voL 2 (Oxford: Oxford Universiry Press, 1964),87-88; quOted
in MacDonald, Th, Pantheon, 92.
20. I Corinthiam 11 :20 and 12-14.
21. L Michael White, Building God's House in the Roman World: Architectural Adap-
tation Among Pagans, jews, and Christians (Baltimore: Johns Hopkins Universiry
Press, 1990), 107, 109.
22. Galarians 3:28.
23. Augustine, The Confessions, 229. The biblical reference is Galatians 5: 17.
24. Augustine, The Confessions, 235.
25. I Corinrhians Il :24-25.
26. Quoted and translated in this context by Wayne A. Meeks, The Moral 0/
the First Christians (Philadelphia: Westminsrer Press, 1986), 113. The biblIcal
references are Colossians 3:9-1 1 and Ephesians 4:22-24.
27. Seneca, Moral Epistles, lvi.I-2; quored in Roman Civilization. Vol II : The Empire,
3rd ed., eds. Naphtali Lewis and Meyer Reinhold (New York: Columbia Uni-
versiry Press, 1990), 142.
28. Jerome Carcopino, Daily Ltfe in Ancielll Rome, trans. E. O. Lorimer (New
Haven: Yale Universiry Press, 1968),263. The Latin may be found in the Corpus
Inscriptionllm Latinarum, VI 15258.
29. Wayne A. Meeks, The First Urban Christians (New Haven: Yale University
Press, 1983), 153.
30. Jacob Neusner, A History 0/ the Mishnaic Law 0/ Purities, Studies in Judaism in
Lare Antiquity, 6.22: The Mishnaic System 0/ Uncleanness (Leiden: Brill, 1977),
83-87.
3 L Romans 6:3.
32. Colossians 2:11-12.
386 NOTES (PAGES 142-163)
33. Kraurheimer. Early Christian and Byzantine Architecrurt, 24-25.
34. Richard Krautheimer, Rome: Profile 0/ a City, 312-1308 (Princeton: Princeton
University Press, 1983),24.
35. Krautheimer, Early Christian and Byzantine Architecture, 40.
36. See White, Building God's House in the Roman World, 102-123.
37. Ibid.
38. Peter Brown, Augustine 0/ Hippo (Berkeley: University of California Press,
1967),289.
39. Ibid., 321.
40. AuguStine, The City of God, XIV. 1; (fans. Gerald G. Walsh, veil. 2, 347.
41. See Friedrich Nierzsche, On the Genealogy 0/ Morals 1.l3. rrans. Waiter Kauf-
mann and R. J. Hollingdale (New York: Vintage Books, 1967),44-46.
42. Ibid., 45.
43. Ibid. Emphasis in original.
44. Ibid., 46.
45. See Louis Dumonr. Homo Hierarchicus: EJIai sur le systeme des castes (Paris: Galli-
mard, 1967).
CHAPTER FIVE: Community
I. Georges Duby, The Age of the Cathedrals: Art and Society, 980-1420, <rans. Elea-
nor Levieux and Barbara Thompson (Chicago: University of Chicago Press,
1981; Paris, 1976), 112.
2. Max Weber, The City, trans. Don Martingale and Genrud Neuwirth (New
York: Macmillan, 1958; Tiibingen, 1921),212-213.
3. Waiter Ullmann, The Individual and Society in the Middle Ages (Baltimore: Johns
Hopkins University Press, 1966), 132.
4. John of Salisbury, Po/icraticus, quoted in Le Goff, "Head or Heart? The Political
Use of Body Metaphors in the Middle Ages," in Fragments for a History of the
Human Body, Part Three, 17.
5. Ullmann, The Individual and Society in the Middle Ages, 17.
6. Weber, The City, 181-183.
7. Henri Pirenne, Medieval Cities, trans. Frank Halsey (Princecon: Princecon Uni-
versity Press, 1946; Paris, 1925), \02.
8. Duby, The Age of the Cathedrals, 221. My emphasis.
9. Roben Grinnell, "The Theoretical Attitude Towards Space in the Middle Ages,"
Speculum XXI.2 (April 1946): 148.
10. Jean Berthelemy, Lt Livre de Crainte Amoureuse; quoted in Johann Huizinga, The
Waning of the Middle Ages, trans F. Hopman (New York: Se. Martin's Press,
1954; Leiden, 1924), 199.
11. Jacques Le Goff, Medieval Civilization, 400-1500, trans. Julia Burrows (Cam-
bridge, MA: Basil Blackwell, 1988), 158. .
12. Vern Bullough, "Medieval Medical and Scientific Views of Women," Viator 4
(1973): 486.
13. Galen, Ars medica, preface; quoted and trans. in Owsei Temkin, Galenism: Rise
and Decline of a Medical Philosophy (lthaca, NY: Cornell University Press,
1973), \02.
Notes (pages /63-170) 387
14. Galen, Ars medica, 11; quoted in Temkin, Galenism, 103.
15. My thanks to Or. Charles Malek for rranslating rhis information.
16. The following account draws upon the work of Marie-Chrisrine Pouchelle, The
Body and Surgery in the Middle Ages, trans. Rosemary Morris (New Brunswick,
NJ: Rutgers University Press, 1990; Paris, 1983).
17. See also the description of de Mondeville in Georges Duby, "The Emergence
of the Individual; Solitude: Elevemh co Thirteenth Century," in A History of
Private Lt/e. Vol. 11: Revelations of the Medieval World, eds. Philippe Aries and
Georges Duby, trans. Anhur Goldhammer (Cambridge, MA: Harvard Univer-
sity Press, 1988), 522.
lB. Henri de Mondeville, Chimrgie [ofE. Nicaise], 243; and Barthelmey I'Anglais,
Grand Proprietaire f.xxvj; both quored in Pouchelle, The Body and Surgery in the
Middl, Ages 115.
19. Ibid.
20. Menagier de Paris, I ; quored in Pouchelle, The Body and Surgery in the Middle
Ages, 116.
21. Duby, The Age of the Cath,drals, 233.
22. John of Salisbury, Policraticus, IV.B, "De moderatiore justitiae et elementiae
principis"; quored in Pouchelle, The Body and Surgery in the Middle Ages, 203.
23. De Mondeville's image of an internally permeable city resonates with later Ital-
ian ideas of urban form; see Franc;oise Choay, "La ville et le domaine bati comme
corps dans les textes des archirectes-theoriciens de la premiere Renaissance ita-
lienne," Nouv,ll, Revue de Psychanalyse 9 (1974).
24. See Caroline Walker Bynum, Jesus as Mother: Studies in the Spirituality of the
High Middl, Ages (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1982), 110-125.
25. See Caroline Walker Bynum, 'The Female Body and Religious Practice in rhe
Later Middle Ages," in Fragments for a History of the Human Body, Part One,
176-188.
26. Anselm, prayer 10 to St. Paul, Opera omnia; quoted in Bynum,}esus as Mother,
114. Anselm's biblical reference is to Matthew 23:37.
27. Bynum,}esus as Mother, 11 S.
28. Quoted in David Luscombe, "City and Politics Before the Coming of the Poli-
tics: Some Illustrations," in Church and City 1000-1500: EJJays in Honour 0/
Christopher Brooke, eds. David Abulafia, Michael Franklin, and Miri Rubin (Cam-
bridge, UK: Cambridge University Press, 1992),47.
29. See Raymond Klibansky, "Melancholy in the System of the Four Tempera-
ments," in Saturn and Melancholia, eds. Raymond Klibansky, Erwin Panofsky,
and Fritz Saxl (New York: Basic Books, 1964),97-123.
30. Duby, Th, Age of the Cath,drals, 228.
31. Philippe Aries, Western Attitudes Toward Death: From the Middle AgeJ to the P r ~ s
ent, trans. Parricia Ranum (Bairimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 1974),
15.
32. Ibid., 12.
33. Ibid., 12-13.
34. Moshe Barasch, Gestures of Despair in Medieval and Early RenaiJJance Art (New
York: New York University Press, 1976), 5B.
35.0rto von Simson, The Gothic Cathedral, 3rd ed., Bollingen Series XLVIII
(Princeton: Princeton Universiry Press, 198B), 13B.
388 NOTES (PAGES 171-199)
36. Achille Luchaire, Social France at the Time 0/ Philip AuguJ!IIJ, rrans. Edward
Krehbiel (London: John Murray, 1912), 145.
37. Allan Temko, NOire-Dame 0/ PariI (New York: Viking Press, 1955),249.
38. Ibid., 250.
39. Howard Saalman, Medieval CititI (New York: George Braziller, 1968),38.
40. Michel Mollat . The Poor in the Middle Ages, (cans . Anhur Goldhammer (New
Haven: Yale U Diversiry Press, 1986), 41.
41. Lester K. unie, ReligiouJ Poverty and the Profit Economy in Medieval Europe (Lon
don: Paul Elek, 1978), 199.
42. Humben de Romans, Sermons, xl.4 75-476; quoted in Bede Jarrett. Social Theo-
ritI o/ the MiddleAgtI 1200-1500 (New York: Frederick Ungar, 1966),222.
43. Little, Religious Poverty and the Profit Economy in Medieval Europe, 67.
44. Ibid., 173.
45. Duby, ''The Emergence of the Individual," 509.
46. Marie Luise Gothein, A His/Dry 0/ Garden Art, val I, (cans. M. Archer-Hind
(New York: Hacker, 1966; Heidelberg, 1913), 188.
47. I have revised the translation of Eclogue X in Virgif's Works, rcans.]. W. Mack-
ail, intro. Charles Durham (New York: Modern Library, 1934),291.
48. Saalman, Medieval CititI, 119,016.
49. Terry Comiro, The Idea 0/ the Garden in the Renaissance (New Brunswick, N):
Rurgers University Press, 1978),4 1.
50. Quoted in ibid. , 43.
51. Bynum,lesus as Mother, 87.
CHAPTER SIX: "Each Man Is a Devil to Himself'
1. Maurice Lombard, quoted in )acques Le Goff, "Introduction," Histoirt de la
Prance urbaine. Vol. II: La Ville Medievale, eds. Andre Chedeville, )acQues Le
Goff, and Jacques Rossiaud (Paris: Le Seuil, 1980), 22. Translated by R.S.
2. Le Goff, M,di",al Civilization, 400-1500, 207.
3. Ibid, 215.
4. Jacques Heecs, La Ville au Moyen Age (Paris: Fayard, 1990), 189.
5. Philippe COntarnine, "Peasant Hearth ro Papal Palace: The Fourteenth and Fif-
teenth Centuries," in A History 0/ Private Lt/e. Vol. 11 : Revelations 0/ the Medieval
World, ed. Duby and Aries, 439.
6. Ibid.
7. Jean-Pierre Leguay, La rue au Moym Age (Rennes, France: Editions Ouest-
France, 1984), 156-157.
8. Leguay, La rueau Moyen Age, 155 .
9. Ibid., 198. Translated by R.S.
10. See Virginia Wylie Egbert, On the Bridges of Medieval Paris: A Record of Four-
teenth-Century Life (Princeton: Princeron University Press, 1974).
11. Ibid., 26.
12. Robert S. Lopez, The Commercial Revolution 0/ th. Middle AgtJ, 930-1350
(Englewood Cliffs, NJ: Prentice-Hall, 1971), 88.
13. Ibid., 89.
Notes (pages 200-210) 389
14. Humbert de Romans, Sermon xcii, In Merchatis 562; Quoted in Jarrett, Social
Theories of the Middle Ages, 164 .
15. Ibid.
16. Lopez, The Commercial Revolution of the Middle Ages, 127.
17. Summerfield Baldwin, Business in the Middle Ages (New York: Cooper Square
Press, 1968),58.
18. Lopez, The Commercial Revolution 0/ the Middle AgtI, 127.
19. Gerald Hodgeu, A SOfial and Economic History of Medieval Europe (London:
Methueo, 1972), 58.
20. Gordon Leff, Paris and Oxford Universities in the Thirteenth and Fourteenth Cen-
turies: An Institutional and Intellectual History (New York: John Wiley & Sons,
1968), 16-17.
21. Jarrett, Social TheoritJ 0/ the Middle Ages, 95.
22.]acques Le Gaff, Your Money or Your Lt/e: Economy and Religion in the Middle
Ages, trans. Patricia Ranum (New York: Zone, 1988),67.
23. Ernst Kantorowicz, The King's Two Bodies: A Study in Medieval Political Theology
(Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1981), 316.
24. Leff, Paris and Oxford Universities in the Thirteenth and Fourteenth Centuries, 8.
25. Guillaume d'Auxerre. Summa aurea, Ill, 2 1; the original is in the Biblioteca S.
Croce in Florence. These quotations translated by R.S., derive from the printed
transcription in JacQues Le Goff, ''Temps de l'EgIise et temps du marchand, "
AnnaltI ESC 15 ( 1960): 417.
26. Etienne de Bourbon, Tabula Exemplorum, rrans. and ed. J. T. Welter (1926),
139.
27. Guillaume d'Auxerre, Summa aurea; "Temps de I'Eglise et temps du
marchand," 417.
28. See Norman Cohn, The Pursuit 0/ the Millennium: Revolutionary Millenarians
and Mystical Anarchists of the Middle Ages, rev. ed. (New York: Oxford Univer-
sity Press, 1972).
29. Le Goff, "Temps de l'Eglise et temps du marchand," 424-425.
30. See David Landes, Revolution in Time: Clocks and the Making 0/ the Modern World
(Cambridge, MA: Belknap Press, 1983).
3 1. Quoted in Marie-Dominique Chenu, La thlologie au Xllme siede (Paris:). Vrin,
1957; 1976),66.
32. Albert Hirschmann, The Passions and the Interests: Political Arguments for Capi-
talism Before Its Triumph (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1977), 10-11 .
33. William of Conches, MoraliI philoJophia, PL 171.1034-1035; quoted in Jean-
Claude Schmitt, the Ethics of Gesture," Fragments for a History of the Human
Body, Part Two, eds. Michel Feher, Ramona Naddaff, and Nadia Tazi (New
York: Zone Books, 1989), 139.
34. Le Goff, Your Money or Your Li/e, 73.
35. Wolfgang Stechow, Breughel (New York: Abrams, 1990),80.
36. Marilyn Aronberg Lavin, Piero della Francesea: The Plagellation (New York: Vik-
ing Press, 1972), 71.
37. Philip Guston, "Piero della Francesca: The Impossibility of Painting," Art News
64 ( 1965): 39.
38. Quoced in Stechow, Breughel, 51.
390 NOTES (PAGES 211-225)
39. W. H. Auden. "Musee des Beaux Arts," Collected Poems, ed. Edward Mendelson
(New York: Random House, 1976), 146-147.
CHAPTER SEVEN: Fear of Touching
1. William Shakespeare, The Merchant 0/ Venice, ed. W. Moelwyn Merchant (Lon-
don: Penguin, 1967), IlI.3.26.
2. Ibid., IV. 1.215-216.
3. Ibid., lll.3.27-31.
4. See William H. McNeill, Venice, The Hinge 0/ Europe, 1081-1797 (Chicago:
University of Chicago Press, 1974).
5. Frederick C. Lane, "Family Partnerships and Joint Ventures in che Venerian
Republic," Journal 0/ Economic HiI/ory IV (1944): 178.
6. Figures from Ugo Tueci, "The Psychology of the Venetian Merchant in the
Sixteenth Cencucy," in RenaiJIance Venice, ed. John Hale (Torowa, NJ: Rowman
& Litdefield, 1973),352.
7. Frederick Lane, Venice: A Maritime Republic (Baltimore: Johns Hopkins Univer-
sity Press, 1973), 147.
8. Quoted in Alberro Tenenti, "The Sense of Space and Time in the Venetian
World," RenaiIIance Venice, 30.
9. Ibid., 27.
10. Quoted in Brian Pullan, Rich and Poor in RenaiJJance Venice (Oxford: Basil
Blackwell, 1971),484.
11. Felix Gilbert, "Venice in the Crisis of the League of Cambrai," in RenaiJJance
Venice, 277.
12. Anna Foa, ''The New and the Old: The Spread of Syphilis, 1494-1530," in
Sex and Gender in Historical Perspective, eds. Edward Muir and Guido Ruggiero
(Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 1990), 29-34.
13. Sigismundo de' Concida Foligno, La Storie dei Iuoi tempi dal 1475 al 1510, vol.
2 (Rome 1883),271-272; quoted in Foa, ''The New and the Old," 36.
14. Gilberc, "Venice in the Crisis of che League of Cambrai," RenaiHance Venice,
279.
15. Roberc Finlay, "The Foundation of the Gherro: Venice, the Jews, and che War
of che League of Cambrai," Proceedings 0/ the American Philosophical Society 126.2
(April 1982): 144.
16. See Aristotle, The Politics, ed. Richard McKeon, trans. Jowett (New
York: Modern Library, 1947), Book I, chapter 9.
17. Benjamin N. Nelson, "The Usurer and the Merchant Prince: ltalian Business-
men and the Ecclesiastical Law of Restitucion, 1100-1500," Journal 0/ Economic
HiI/ory VU (1947): 108.
18. Thomas Dekker, The Seven Deadly Sins 0/ London (London 1606); quoted in
L. C. Knights, Drama and Society in the Age o/Jonson (London: Chatw & Windus.
1962), 165.
19. Sir Thomas Overbury, "A Devilish Usurer," Characters (1614); quoted in
Knights, Drama and Society in the Age o/Jonson, 165.
20. Sander L. Gilman. Sexuality (New York: John Wiley & Sons, 1989),31.
Notes (Pages 225-244) 391
21. Le Geuter, Scent, 153, also 159.
22. Quoted in Gilman, Sexuality, 86, 87.
23. See Mary Douglas, Purity and Danger: An Analysis 0/ Concepts 0/ Pollution and
Taboo (London: Routledge & Kegan Paul, 1978).
24. Marino Sanuto, [ Diarii di Marino Sanuto, ed. Rinaldo Fulin, et al. (Venice
1879-1903), vol. 20, 98; quoted in Finlay, "The Foundation of the Ghetto,"
146.
25. Quoted in Pullan, Rich and Poor in Renaissance Venice, 495.
26. Ibid., 486.
27. Shakespeare, The MerchanlO/Venice, llI.1.76-77.
28. Hugh Honour, Venice (London: Collins, 1990), 189.
29. See Douglas's Purity and Danger for an entirely convincing, general account of
how asceticism can "migrate" into sensuality in the eyes of [hose it threatens.
30. Norbert Huse and Wolfgang Wolters, The Art o/Renaissance Venice: Architecture,
Sculpture, and Painting, /460-1590, trans. Edmund Jephcott (Chicago: Univer-
sity of Chicago Press, 1990), 8.
31. Zacaria Dolfin; quoted in Benjamin Ravid, "The Religious, Economic, and
Social Background and Context of the Establishment of the Ghetti of Venice"
(1983), Gli Ebre; e Venezia, ed. Gaetano Cozzi (Milano: Edizioni di Communita,
1987),215.
32. Brian S. Pullan, The Jews 0/ Europe and the inquisition 0/ Venice, 1550-1670
(TotQwa, N]: Barnes & Noble, 1983), 157-158.
33. Quoted in ibid., 158.
34. Johann Burchard, Liber NOIarum (Cita di Castello, n.p.l., 1906).1 have followed,
with some minor changes, the translation of Georgina Masson, Courltsans 0/ the
Italian RenaiHance (New York: St. Martin's Press, 1975),8.
35. Pietro Aretino, Ragionamenti, quoted and translated in Masson, Courtesans 0/ the
Italian RenaiHance, 24.
36. Quoted in ibid., 152.
37. Guido Ruggiero, The BoundarieI 0/ Eras: Sex Crime and Sexuality in RenaiHance
Venice (New York: Oxford University Press, 1985),9.
38. Quoted in Masson, Courltsam 0/ the Italian RenaiSJance, 152.
39. Diane Owen Hughes, "Earrings for Circumcision: Distinction and Purification
in the Italian Renaissance City," in Persons in Groups, ed. Richard Trexler (Bing-
hamton, NY: Medieval and Renaissance Texcs and Studies, 1985), 157.
40. Ibid., 163, 165.
41. Quoted in Ravid. ''The Religious, Economic and Social Background and Context
of the Establishment of the Ghetti of Venice," 215.
42. Carol H. Krinsky, Synagogues 0/ Europe: Architecture, History, Meaning (New
York: The Architectural History Foundation and MIT Press, 1985), 18.
43. Thomas Coryat, Coryat's Crudities, vol.I (Glasgow, 1905),372-373.
44. Kenneth R. Stow, "Sanctity and the Construction of Space: The Roman Ghetto
as Sacred Space," in Jewish Assimilation, Acculturation and Accommodation: Past
Traditions, Current [Hues and Future Prospects, ed. Menachem Mor (Lanham,
NE: University Press of America. 1989),54.
45. My thanks to Joseph Rykwert for pointing this out.
46. See Elliott Horowitz, "Coffee, Coffeehouses, and the Nocturnal Rituals of Early
Modern Jewry," Association for Jewish StuditJ 14 (1988): 17-46.
392
NOTES (PAGES 244-262)
47. Jacob Karz, ExclusiveneH and Tolerance: Studies in Jewl!h-Gentile ReialionJ In
Medieval and Modern Times (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1961). 133.
48. Katz, Exclusiveneu and Tolerance, 138.
49. Howard Adelman, "Leon Modena: The Aucobiography and the Man," in The
Autobiography of a Seventeenth-Century Rabbi: Lean Modena's "Llie 0/ Judah", ed.
Mark R. Cohen (Princeron: Princeton University Press, 1988), 28.
50. See Frank Manuel, The Broken Stafl Judaism Through Christian Eyes (Cam-
bridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1992).
51. Adelman, "Leon Modena," 31.
52. Benjamin C. I. Ravid, 'The First Charter of the Jewish Merchants of Venice,
1589," Association for Jewish Studies Review, I (1976): 207.
53. Naralie Z. Davis, "Fame and Secrecy: Leon Modena's Life as an Early Modern
Autobiography," in The Autobiography 0/ a Seventeenth-Century Venetian Rabbi,
68.
54. Gilman, Sexuality, 41.
55. Leon Modena, "Life of Judah," in The Autobiography 0/ a Seventeenth-Century
Venetian Rabbi, 144.
56. Ibid.
57. Ibid, 162.
58. Shakespeare, Merchant o/Venice, 1/1.1.53-62.
CHAPTER EIGHT: Moving Bodies
1. William Harvey, De motu cordis (Frankfurt, 1628), 165; quoted in Richard Toell-
ner, "Logical and Psychological Aspects of the Discovery of the Circulation of
the Blood," On Scientific Discovery, eds. Mirko Grmek, Roberc Cohen, and
Guido Cimino (Boston: Reidel, 1980),245.
2. Quoced in William Bynwn, "The Anatomical Method, Natural Theology, and
the Functions of the Brain," /sis 64 (December 1973): 453.
3. Thomas Willis, Two Discourses Concerning the Soul 0/ Brutes (London, 1684),44;
quoted in Bynum, ''The Anatomical Method, Natural Theology, and the Func-
tions of the Brain," 453.
4. See E. T. Carlson and Meribeth Simpson, "Models of the Nervous Sysrem in
Eighteenth-Century Neurophysiology and Medical Psychology," Bulletin 0/ the
HIstory 0/ Medicine 44 (1969): 101-115.
5. Barbara Maria Stafford, Body Criticism: Imaging the Unseen in Enlightenment Art
and Medicine (Cambridge: MIT Press, 1991),409.
6. Harvey, De motu cordis, 165; quoced in Toellner, "Logical and Psychological
Aspects of the Discovery of the Circulation of the Blood," 245.
7. Dorinda Outram, The Body and the French Revolution: Sex, Class and Political
Culture (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1989),48.
8. Alain Corbin. The Foul and the Fragrant: Odor and the French Social Imagination
(New York: Berg, 1986; Paris, 1982), 71.
9. Marie-France Morel, "Vi lie et campagne dans le discours medical sur la petite
enfanee au XVI/I siecle," Annales ESC 32 (1977): 1013. Trans. R.S.
10. Oucram, The Body and the French Revolution, 59.
Notes (pages 265-281) 393
11. Corbin, The Foul and the Fragrant , 91.
12. John W. Reps, Monumental Washington (Princecon: Prince ton University Press,
1967),21.
13. Quoted in Elizabeth S. Kite, L'En/ant and Washington (Baltimore: Johns Hop-
kins University Press, 1929),48.
14. L'Enfant's memorandum is reproduced in H. Paul Caemmerer, The Life 0/ Pierre
Charles L'En/ant (New York: Da Capo, 1970), 151-154; this quotation on 153.
15. Mona Ozouf, Festivals 0/ the French Revolution, trans. Alan Sheridan (Cambridge,
MA: Harvard University Press, 1988; Paris, 1976), 148.
16. Robert Harbison, Eccentric Spaces (BostOn: Godine, 1988),5.
17. L'Enfant, "Memorandum," in Caemmerer, LI/e, 151.
18. See, for example, "Query VI: Productions Mineral, Vegetable and Animal," in
Thomas Jefferson, Notes on the State 0/ Virginia, edited with an introduction by
William Peden (Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press, 1955),26-72.
19. See Karl Polanyi, The Great Trans/ormation: The Political and Economic Origim
o/Our Time (BostOn: Beacon Hill Press, 1957).
20. Adam Smith, The Wealth 0/ NationJ (New York: Everyman's Library, Knopf,
1991),4.
21. Ibid., 15.
22. Ibid., 12.
23. See Smith, "How Commerce of the Towns Contributed to the Improvement of
the Country," ibid., 362-374.
24. Johann Wolfgang Goethe, Italian Journey, trans. W. H. Auden and Elizabeth
Mayer (New York: Pantheon, 1962), 124.
25. Goethe, Diary of the Journey from Karlsbad co Rome, September 24, 1786;
quoted in T. J. Reed, Goethe (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1984),35.
26. Goethe, Italian Journey, 58.
27. Ibid., 202.
28. Ibid., 124; I have changed Auden and Mayer's excellent translation here, to
show more literally the words Goethe uses in the originaL
29. Reed, Goethe 35, draws anencion to this strange usage.
30. Goethe, [talianJourney, 124.
31. Leon Cahen, "La Population parisienne au milieu du 18me siecle," La Revue de
Paris (1919): 146-170.
32. George Rude, The Crowd in the French Revolution (Oxford: Oxford University
Pcess, 1959),21-22.
33. Charles Tilly, The Contentious French (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University
Pcess, 1986) 222.
34. Joan Landes, Women and the Public Sphere in the Age 0/ the French Revolution
(Ithaca: Comell University Press, 1988), 109.
35. Rude, The Crowd in the French Revolution, 75-76.
36. Marie-Amoinette, letter of October 10, 1789, to Mercy d'Argemeau; qumed in
Simon Schama, Citizens (New Yock: Knopf, 1989),469.
37. Schama. Citizens, 470.
38. See Lynn Hunt, The Family Romance 0/ the French Revolution (Berkeley: Univer-
sity of California Press, 1992), especially chapters 1 and 2.
394 NOTES (PAGES 282-296)
CHAPTER NINE: The Body Set Free
1. Anonymous, Les Revolutions de Paris, vol. 17, no. 215 (23-30 brumaire an 11, in
the revolutionary calendar).
2. Gustave Le Bon, The Crowd, inrro. Roberc K. Merton, no rcans. listed (New
York: Viking, 1960; Paris, 1895),33.
3. Ibid., 30.
4. Ibid., 32.
5. Furee, Penser la Revolution Pranfaise (Paris: GalIimard, 1978), 48-49.
Translated by R.S.
6. Joan Landes, "The Performance of Citizenship: Democracy, Gender and Differ-
ence in the French Revolution." Unpublished paper presemed at the Confer-
ence for the Study ofPolicical Thought (Yale University, April 1993), 2.
7. See Joan Wallach Score, .. 'A Woman Who Has Only Paradoxes to Offer';
Olympe de Gouges Claims Rights for Women," in Rebel Daughters: Women and
the French Revolution, eds. Sara E. Melzer and Leslie W. Rabine (New York:
Oxford University Press, 1992), 102-120.
8. Jean-Jacques Rousseau, Emile (Paris: Pleiades, 1971), book V, 247
9. Peter Brooks, Body Work: ObjectI o/Desire in Modern Narrative (Cambridge, MA:
Harvard University Press, 1993), 59.
10. See Michel Foucaulc and Richard Sennett, "Sexuality and Solitude," Humanities
in Revue 1.1 (1982): 3-21.
11. Olwen Hufton, Women and the Limitl 0/ Citizemhip in the French Revolution
(Toronto: University of Toromo Press, 1992),64.
12. Michel Vovelle, La Revolution FranfaiJe: Images et rlcilI (Paris: Editions Messi.
dorlLivre Club Diderot, 1986), vol. 2, 139.
13. Edmond Sirel, "Les Levres de la Nation," revolutionary broadsheet (Paris,
1792),6.
14. See Jean Starobinski,jean:/acquel RouHeau, la tramparence etl'obltacle: Suivi de
Iept eHais lur RousJeau (Paris: Gallimard, 1971).
15. For Wailly's plan, see Vovelle, La Revolution Franfai.Je: Images et reeits, vol. 4, p.
264; for Poyer's plan, see Ministere de la Culture et de la Communication, des
Grands Travaux et du Bicemenaire, Les Architectel de la Liherti, 1789-1799, exh.
cat. (Paris: Ecole Nationale Superieure des Beaux Arts de Paris, 1789), 216,
fig. 154.
16. Quoted in Helen Rosenau, Boullie and Visionary Architecture (New York: Har-
mony Books, 1976),8.
17. Etienne-Louis BoulU:e, Architecture, An EHay on Art, tcans. Sheila de Valle (orig-
inal MS Fransais 9153, Bibliotheque Nationale, Paris); reprinted in Rosenau.
Boullee and Vilionary Architecture, 107.
18. Ibid.
19. Ibid., 91.
20. Ibid., 82.
21. Anthony Vidler, The Architectural Uncanny: Essays in the Modern Unhomely
(Cambridge, MA: MIT Press, 1992). I am also indebted co Professor Vidler for
his trencham analysis of Boul1ee's work.
22. Emmet Kennedy, A Cultural History 0/ the French Revolution (New Haven: Yale
University Press, 1989), 197.
Notes (pages 299-316) 395
23. Anonymous engraving, "Machine pcoposee a J' Assemblee N;uionale pour le
Supplice des Criminelles par M. Guillotin," Musee Cacnavalet # 10-63; repro
duced in Daniel Gecould, Guillotine: Its Legend and Lore (New York: Blast
Books, 1992), 14.
24. Georges Dauban, Madame Roland et son temps (Paris, 1864; 1819), 263. Modern
historians like Daniel Arasse use a corrupted version of this text; the original is
one of the great documents of the Revolution.
25. Daniel Arasse, The Guillotine and the Terror, trans. Christopher Miller (London:
Alien Lane, 1989), 28.
26. ].-B. Bossuet, Oeuvres oratoires, ed. J Lebourg (LiIle and Paris, 1892), vol. 4,
256; quoted in Kantorowi cz, The King'l Two Bodies: A Study in Mediet'al Political
Theology, 409, n. 3 19. Translated by R.S.
27. Lynn Hunt, Politics, Culture, and Clasl in the French Revolution (Berkeley: Uni
versity of California Press, 1984),32.
28. Ourram, The Body and the French Revolution, 115.
29. Ibid.
30. Ozouf, Feltivals o/the French Revolution, 79.
31. Ibid, 66.
32. David Uoyd Dowd, Pageant-Master 0/ the Republic:jacquesLouis David and the
French Revolution (Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 1948),61.
33. Revolutionl de Paris; quoted in Ozouf, Festtt.'als of the French Revolution, 67.
34. Annales PatriotiqueJ 108 (April 17, 1792): 478. Dowd, PageantMaster 0/ the
Repuhlic, 61, has nOt translated this quire accurately.
35. Edmond Constantin, Le Livre des Heureux (Paris, 1810), 226.
36. I am indebted to Professor SCOtt for pointing this out to me.
37. "A Boy's Testimony Concerning an Illiterate Woman Signing the Petition at the
Champ de Mars, July 17, 1791"; quoted in Women in Revolutionary Paris, 1789-
1795, eds. Darlene Gay Levy, et al., (Chicago: University of Illinois Press,
1980), 83-84
38. Mary Jacobus, "Incorruptible Milk: Breast-feeding and the French Revolution,"
in Rebel Daughters. Women and the French Revolution, eds. Sara Melzer and Leslie
Rabine (New York: Oxford University Press, 1992),65.
39. Engraving by Helman, after Monnet, La Fontaine de la Regeneration; reproduced
in Vovelle, La Revolution FranraiJe: Imagel et Recit, vol. 4, 142.
40. Marie-Helene Huet, Rehearsing the Revolution: The Staging 0/ Marat's Death,
1793-1797 (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1983),35.
41. Jacobus, "Incorruptible Milk," 65; see also Hunt , Politics, Culture, and Class in
the French Revolution, 94-98.
42. Hunt, The Family Romance 0/ the French RN/olution, 80.
43. Anita Brookner,jacques-Louil David (London: Thames & Hudson, 1980), 114.
44. Charles Baude1aire, quoted in Daniel and Guy Wildenstein, David: Documentl
supplimentaires au catalogue complet de l'oeuvre (Paris: Fondation Wildenstcin,
1973); reproduced in Brookner, David, 116. Translated by R.S.
45. See Warren Roberts, "David's 'Bara' and the Burdens of the French Revolu-
tion," in Revolutionary Europe, 1750-1850 (Tallahassee, FL Conference Pro-
ceedings, 1990).
396 NOTES (PAGES 319-347)
CHAPTER TEN: Urban Individualism
1. Raymond Williams, The Country and the City (New York: Oxford University
Press, 1973),2 17.
2. Ibid., 220.
3. E. M. Fomer, Howards End (New York: Vintage Books, 1989; London, 1910),
112.
4. Judith R. Walkowitz, City 0/ Dread/ul Delight: NarralivtJ 0/ Sexual Danger in
Lale-Viaorian London (Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1992),25.
5. Housing of th, Working Classes, Royal Commission Report 4402 (1884-85.xxx):
19-20; quoted in Donald]. Olseo, Town Planning in umdon: The Eighteenth
and Nineteenth CenturitJ, 2nd ed. (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1982),
208.
6. See the table on distribution of national capital derived from estate duty statis-
tics in Paul Thompson, The Edwardiam: The Remaking 0/ Bri/ish Sociely, 2nd ed.
(New York: Routiedge, 1992),286.
7. Alfred Kazin, "Howards End Revisited," Partisan Review LIX. I (1992): 30, 31.
8. See Alexis de Tocqueville, Democracy in America, trans. Henry Reeve, 4th ed.,
vol. 11 (New York: H. G. Langley, 1845).
9. Virginia Woolf, ''The Novels of E. M. For"er," Th, D,alh o/th, Moth and Olhtr
Essays (New York: Harcourt, Brace, 1970), 172.
10. Bruno Fortier, "La Politique de !'Espace parisien," in lA Politique de l'espace pa-
rtsien a la fin de I'Ancien Regime, ed. Forrier (Paris: Editions Fortier, 1975), 59.
11. David Pinckney. Napoleon III and the Rebllilding 0/ PariJ (Princeron: Princeron
University Press, 1958),25.
12. See G. E. Haussmann, Memoim, vol. 3 (Paris, 1893),478-483; quoted in Pinck-
ney, Napoleon 1lI and th, R,buiiding of Paris, 78.
13. Pinckney, Napoleon 1Il and th, R,buiiding of Paris, 93.
14. Donald Olsen, The City as a Work 0/ Art: London, Paris, Vienna (New Haven:
Yale University Press, 1986),92.
15. Walkowitz, City of Dread/ul Delight, 29.
16. Angelo Masso, Fatigu" trans. M. and W. B. Drummond (London, 1906), 156;
quoted in Anson Rabinbach, The Hllman Motor: Energy, Fatiglle, and the Orjgim
of Mod,rnity (New York: Basic Books, 1990), 136.
17. Roubo; quoted in Sigfried Giedion, Mechanization Takes Command (New York:
Oxford University Press, 1948), 313.
18. Giedion, Mechanization Takes Command, 396.
19. Ibid., 404.
20. Wolfgang Schivelbusch, The RailwaYJourney (Berkeley: University of California
Press, 1986),75.
21. See Richard Sennen, Th, Fall of Public Man (New York: W. W. Norton, 1992;
1976),81.
22. Ibid., 216.
23. Augustus). C. Hare, Paris (London: Smith, Elder, 1887) 5; quoted in Olsen,
Th,CityaJa Work of Art, 217.
24. See Reyner Banham, The Well-Tempered Environment, 2nd ed. (Chicago: Univer-
sity of Chicago Press, 1984), 18-44.
NoteJ (pageJ 349-366) 397
25. Elizabeth Hawes, New York, New York: How the Apartment HOIlJe Tram/ormed
th, Lif"f th, City, 1869-1930 (New York: Knopf, 1993), 23 1.
26. E. M. Fomer, Two Chit" for Democracy (London: Edward Arnold, 1972),66.
27. Forster, Howards End, 134.
28. E. M. Fomer, Maurice (New York: W. W. Norton, 1993). 250 ("terminal
note").
29. Anonymous, the Glorified Spinster," Macmillan's Magazine 58 (l888): 371,
374.
30. Fomer, Howards End, 209-210.
31. Ibid., 210.
32. Ibid., 350.
33. Ibid., 353-354.
34. Both remarks quoted in Alistair M. Duckworth, Howards End: E. M, Forster's
House 0/ Fiction (New York: Twayne/Macmillan, 1992),62.
35. Forster, Howards End, 113.
36. Letter to Forrest Reid, 13 March 1915, quoted in P. N. Furbank, E. M. Forster:
A Life (New York: Harcourt Brace Jovanovich, 1978), vo!. lI, 14.
37. Martin Heidegger, "Building Dwelling Thinking," in Heidegger, Poetry, Lan-
guage, Thollght, intro. and trans. Alberr Hofstadter (New York: Harper & Row,
1975), 160. Emphasis in original. First given as a lecture in Darmstadt, Ger-
many, on August 5, 1951.
38. Kazin, "Howords End Revisited," 32.
CONCLUSION: Civic Bodies
1. See Jane Jacobs, The Death and Ltfe o/Great American Cities (New York: Ran-
dom House, 1963).
2. Statistics on the homeless are as shifting as the people they tabulate; nonethe-
less, in recent years the summer homeless population of Manhanan has hovered
around 30,000, the winter population between 10,000 to 12,000; the majority
of these displaced persons are single individuals. In the outer boroughs of the
city, the numbers of homeless are less, and the percentage of homeless families
or family fragments far greater.
3. Lewis Mumford, The City in Hislory (New York: Harcourr Brace Jovanovich,
1961),421.
4. J ean Gottmann. Megalopolis (New York: Twentieth Century Fund, 1961), 736.
5. Quoted in Robert Caro, The Power Broker (New York: Knopf, 1974), 318.
6. See Caro, The Power Broker.
7. Herbert Gans, The LevittowntrJ (New York: Pantheon, 1967),220.
8. Gans, The Leviuowners, 32.
9. For a succinct statement of these changes, see Melvin M. Webber, "Revolution
in Urban Development," in Housing: Symbol, Structure, Sire, ed. Lisa Taylar (New
York: RizlOli, 1982),64-65.
10. See, for example, Roland Barrhes, A Lover's Discourse, trans. Richard Howard
(New York: Hill & Wang, 1978).
11. See Kevin Lynch, Th, 1mage of Ih, C;ly (Cambridge, MA: MIT Press, 1960);
398 NOTES (PAGES 369-376)
Erving Goffmann, Relations in Public: Microsludies of the Public Order (New York:
Basic Books, 1971).
12. Alexis de Tocqueville, Democracy in America, rcans. Edward Reeve (New York:
VinrageBooks, 1963), Vol. 2, 141.
13. See RobertJay Lifton. The Protean Self: Human Relilience in an Age o/ Fragmenta-
tion (New York: Basic Books, 1993),
14. Sigmund Freud, Beyond the Pleasure Principle. trans. l ames Srcachey (New York:
W. W. Norron, 1961), 1.
15. Ibid., 21. Emphasis in original.
16. Ibid., 4.
17. Ibid., 5.
18. Elaine Scatey, The Body in Pain: The Making and Unmaking 0/ the World (New
York: Oxford University Press, 1985), 161.
WORKS CITED
Adelman, Howard. "Leon Modena: The Autobiography and the Man." In The Auto-
biography of a S",enteenth-Century Rabbi: uon Modena', "Life of Judah." Ed.
Mark Cohen. 19-38.
Adoeno, Theodor. "Culture Industry Reconsidered." New German Critique 6
(1975): 12-19.
Agulhon, Maurice. Marianne into Bailie: Imagery and SymboliJm in France, 1789-
1880. Trans. Janet Lloyd. New York: Cambridge University Press, 198 1.
Anonymous. "The Glorified Spinster." Macmillan', Magazine 58 (1888): 37 1, 374.
Arasse, Daniel. The Guillotine and the Terror. Traos. ChristOpher Miller. London:
Allen Lane, 1989; Paris, 1987.
Arendt, Hannah. The Human Condition. Chicago: University of Chicago Press,
1957.
Aries, Philippe. Western Allitudes Toward Death: From the Middle Ages to the Present.
Trans. Patricia Ranum. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 1974.
AristOphanes. Vol. I: The Clouds. Trans. Benjamin Bickley Rogers. Loeb Classical
Lbrary. New York: G. P. Putnam's Sons, 1924.
Ariswde. De Anima (On the Soul). Trans. Hugh Lawson-Tancred. London: Pen-
guin, 1986.
400 WORKS CITED
---. Gmeration 0/ Animals. Trans. A. L. Peck. Loeb Classical Library. Cambridge,
MA: Harvard University Press, 1943.
---. On Sense and Sensible Objects (De Sensu). On the SOIlI, Parva Naluralia, On
Breath. Trans. W. S. Hen. Loeb Classical Lbrary. Cambridge, MA: Harvard
University Press, 1964.
---, The Polilics. Ed. Richard McKeon, [cans. BenjaminJowetr. New York: Ran-
dom House, 1968.
Auden, W. H. Collecud Poems. Ed. Edward Mendelson. New York: Random
House, 1976.
Auguer. Roben. Cruelty and Civilization: The Roman Games. London: Alien &
Unwin, 1972.
Augustine. The City 0/ God. Trans. Gerald G. Walsh, S. J. . et al. 3 vols. Fathers of
the Church series, voL 14. Washingron, D.e. : Catholic Universiry of
America Press, 1950.
---. Confessions. Trans. R. S. Pine-Coffin. London: Penguin, 1961.
Baldwin, Summerfield. Business in the Middle Ages. New York: Cooper Square Pub-
lishers, 1968.
Banham, Reyner. The Well-Tempered Environment. 2nd ed. Chicago: University of
Chicago Press, 1984.
Barasch, Moshe. Gesrures 0/ Despair in Medieval and Early Renaissance Art. New
York: New York University Press, 1976.
Banhes, Roland. A uwer's Discourse. Trans. Richard Howard. New York: Hill &
Wang, 1978.
Banon, Carlin. The Sorrows 0/ the Ancient Romans: The Gladiator and the Monster.
PrincetOn: PrincetOn University Press, 1993.
Baumgartner, M. P. The Moral Order 0/ a Suburb. New York: Oxford University
Press, 1988.
Beacham, Richard. The Roman Theatre and Its Audience. Cambridge, MA: Harvard
University Press, 1992.
Beaucourt, Charles. Captiviti et demiers moments de Louis XVI. Paris, 1892.
Bell, Malcolm. "Some Observations on Western Greek StOas." Unpublished manu-
script, American Academy in Rome, 1992.
Bergquist , Birgitta. "Sympotic Space: A Functional Aspect of Greek
Dining Rooms." In Sympotica: A Symposium on the Symposion. Ed, Oswyn
Murray.
Berlin, Isaiah. "Two Concepts of Liberty." Essays on Liberty. London: Oxford Uni-
versity Press, 1969.
Black, Max. "On Metaphor. " Models and Metaphors: StudieJ in Language and Philoso-
phy. Ichaca, NY: CornelI University Press, 1962.
Boardman, John. "Greek An and Architecture." In The Oxford History 0/ the Classi-
cal World. Eds. John Boardman with jasper Griffin and Oswyn Murray. New
York: Oxford University Press, 1986.
Boarwright, Mary Taliaferro. Hadrian and the City 0/ Rome. PrincetOn: Princewn
University Press, 1987.
Boegehold, Alan L. loward a Study of Athenian Voting Procedure." Hesperia 32
( 1963): 366- 374.
Baucher, Fram;ois. 20,000 Years 0/ Fashion: The History 0/ Costume and Personal
Adornment. New York: Abrams, 1973.
Works Cited 401
Braund, David. The Administration 0/ the Roman Empire. Exeter: University of Exe-
ter Press, 1988.
Bremmer, Jan. "Walking, Standing and Sitting in Ancient Greek Culture." In A
Cultural History 0/ Gesture. Eds. Jan Bremmer and Herman Roodenburg.
Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press, 1991.
Brilliant, Richard. GtJture and Rank in Roman Art. New Haven: Connecticut Acad-
emy of Arts and Sciences, 1963.
---. Visual Narratives. lrhaca, NY: Cornell University Press, 1984.
Brookner, Anira.jacques-UJuis David. London: Thames & Hudson, 1980.
Brooks, Peter. Body Work: Objects of Desire in Modern Narrative. Cambridge, MA:
Harvard University Press, 1993.
---. The Melodramatic Imagination. New Haven: Yale University Press, 1976.
---. Reading/or the Plot: Design and Intention in Narratirle. New York: Knopf,
1984.
Brown, Frank E. Roman Architecture. New York: Braziller, 1972.
Brown, Peter. AuguJtine 0/ Hippo. Berkeley: University of California Press, 1967.
---. The Body and Society: Men, Women, and Sexual Renunciation in Early Chns-
tianity. New York: Columbia University Press, 1988.
Bruno, Vincent)' "The Parthenon and the Theory of Classical Form." In The Par
thenon. Ed. Vincent). Bruno. New York: W. W. Norton, 1974.
Bryson, Norman. Vision and Painting. New Haven: Yale University Press, 1983.
Burchard, johann. Liber Notarllm. Cita di CastelJo, 1906.
Burken, Walter. Structllre and History in Greek Mythology and Ritual. Berkeley: Uni-
versity of California Press, 1979.
Bynum, Caroline Walker.jeJus as Mother: Studies in the Spirituality 0/ the High Mid-
dle Ages. Berkeley: University of CaJifornia Press, 1982.
---. the Female Body and Religious Practice in the Later Middle Ages." In
FragmenlJ for a History 0/ the Human Body, Part One. Eds. Michel Feher, with
Ramona Naddaff and Nadia Tazi.
Bynum, William. the Anatomical Method, Natural Theology, and the Functions
of the Brain." /si, 64 (December 1973): 445-468.
Caemmerer, H. Paul. The LIfe o/Pierre Charles UEn/ant. New York: Da Capo, 1970.
Cahen, Leon. "La population parisienne au milieu du I8eme siecie." La Revue de
Pa.i, Xl ( 1919).
Camp, John M. The Athenian Agora: Excavations in the Heart 0/ ClaSJical Athens.
London: Thames & Hudson, 1986.
Cantarella, Eva. Bisexuality in the Ancient World. Trans. Corma 0' Cuilleanain. New
Haven: YaJe University Press, 1992.
Carcopino, jerome. Daily Life in Ancient Rome. Trans. E. O. Lorimer. New Haven:
Yale University Press, 1968; Paris, 1939.
Carlson, E. T., and Meribeth Simpson. "Models of the Nervous System in Eigh-
teenth-Century Neurophysiology and Medical Psychology." Bulletin 0/ the
History 0/ Medicine 44 ( 1969): 101-115.
Caro, Robert. The Power Broker. New York: Knopf, 1974.
Cave, Ray C, and Herbert H. Coulson. A Source Book for Medieval Economic History.
New York: Bruce Publishing Co., 1936.
Chedeville, Andre, Jacques Le Goff, and jacques Rossiaud, eds, Histoire de la France
urhaine. Vol. 2: La ville mediivale. Paris: Editions du Seuil, 1980.
Chenu, Marie Dominique. La thlologie all Xllme sitcle. Paris: J. Vriu, 1957.
402
WORKS CITED
Chenu, Marie Dominique. La thiologie au Xllme sitcle. Paris: J. Vriu, 1957.
Choay, Fran<;oise. "La ville et le domaine bati (omme corps dans les rcxrcs des
architectes-rheoriciens de la premiere Renaissance italienne." Nouvelle Revue
de Plychallalyse 9 ( 1974).
CipoJla, C. M. The Economic History 0/ Europe. Vol. I. London: Fomana, 1972.
Clack, Kenneth. T he Nude: A Study in Ideal Form. Princecon: Princeton University
Press, 1956.
Cohen, Mark, cd. The AUlobiography 0/ a SeventeenthCm/ury Rabbi: Leon Modena's
"Life o/Judah." Princecon: Princeton University Press, 1988. . .
Coho Norman. T he Pursuit 0/ the Millennium: Revolutionary Millenarlflm and MYJ/I
, cal Anarchists 0/ the Middle Ages, Rev. cd. New York: Oxford University
Press, 1972.
Cole, Toby, and Hel en Gich Chinoy, eds. Actors on Acting. Rev. ed. New York:
Crown, 1970.
Comito, Terry. The Idea 0/ the Garden in the RenaiHance. New Brunswick, NJ : Rutg-
ers University Press, 1978.
Constancin, Edouard. Le livre des heureux. Paris, IBID.
Contarnine, Philippe. "Peasant Hearth to Papal Palace: The Fourteenth and Fif-
teenth Centuries." In A History o/ Private Li/e. Vol. 11 : Revelations 0/ the Medi-
eval World. Eds. Georges Duby and Philippe Aries.
Corbin, Alain. The Foul and the Fragrant: Odor and the French Social Imagination.
New York: Berg, 1986; Paris, 1982.
Coryat, Thomas. Coryal's Crudities. 2 vols. Ed. James Macle house. Glasgow: Univer-
si [y of Glasgow Press, 1905; London, 16 I l.
Cox, Harvey. The Se(ular City. Rev. ed. New York: Macmillan, 1966: ...
Cozzi, Gaetano, ed. CH Ebrei e Venezia. secoli XIV-XVIII. Milano: EdlZlonl dl Com-
unidi, 1987.
Dauban, Georges. Madame Roland et son temps. Paris, IB64; IB1 9.
Davis, Natalie Z. "Fame and Secrecy: Leon Modena's Li/e as an Early Modern Auto-
biography." In The Autobiography 0/ a Seventeenth-Century Rabbi: Leon
Modena'I "L,!, o/Judah." Ed. Mark Cohen.
Detienne, Marcel. "En Grece Archatque: Geometrie polirique et socicrc." Annales
ESC 20 ( l 965): 425-442.
___ . The Gardens 0/ Adonis: Spices in Greek Mythology. Trans. J anet Lloyd. Intro.
J. -P. Vernant. Atlantic Highlands, NJ: Humaniries Press, 1977; Paris,
1972.
Dio Cassius. Dio's Roman History. Ve l. VllL Trans. Earnest Cary. Loeb Classical
Library. New York: G. P. Putnam's Sons, 1925. .' .'
Dodds, E. R. The Greeks and the Irrational. Berkeley: Umverslty of Cahforma
Press, 195 1.
Douglas, Mary. Purity and Danger: An Analysis 0/ Concepts 0/ Pollution and Taboo.
London: Roudedge & Keg.n Paul, 1978.
Dover, K. J. Greek Homosexllality. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1989.
Dowd, David. Pageant-Master 0/ the Republic. jacques-Louis David and the French
Revolution. Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 1948.
Duby, Georges. The Age 0/ Cathedra!J: Art a'ld Society, 980--:1420. Eleanor
Levieux and Barbara Thompson. Chicago: U niverslty of ChICago Press,
1981;Paris, 1976.
Works Cited 403
"The Emergence of the Individual ; Solitude: Eleventh to Thirree nth Cen
tury ... In A History 0/ Private Life. Vol. 11 : 0/ the Medieval World.
Eds. Georges Duby and Philippe Aries. Trans. Arthur Gold hammer. Cam-
bridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1985; Pari s, 1985.
Duckworth, Alistair M. Howards End: E. M. Forster's Houu 0/ Fiction. New York:
Tw.yne I MacmilIan, 1992.
Dudley, Donald R., ed. and trans. Urbs Roma. London: Phaidon Press, 1967.
Dumesnil , Marie- Fran<,;oise. "A Repl y to the ' Reflections of Dramatic At{' of
Clairon" (1800). Trans. Joseph M. Bernstei n. In Actors on ACling. Eds. Toby
Cole and Helen Crich Chinoy.
Dumont. Louis. Homo Hierarchi(us: Essai sur II' systeme des castes. Paris: Gallimard,
1967.
Egberr, Virginia Wylie. On the Bridges 0/ Medieval Paris: A Record 0/ Early FOIIrteenth-
Century LIfe. Princeron: Princemn University Press, 1974.
Feher, Michel , with Ramona Naddaff and Nadia Tazi, eds. FragmflllS for a History
0/ the Human Body. Parts One, Two, and Three. New York: Urzone, 1989.
Fehl, Philippe. "Gods and Men in rhe Parthenon Frieze." In The Parthfllon. Ed.
Vincent J. Bruno.
Finlay, Robert. ''The Foundation of the Gheno: Venice, the Jews, and rhe War of
the League of Cambrai." Proceedings 0/ the American Philosophical Society 126.2
(8 April 1982): 140-l54.
Finley, M. I. The Ancient Greeks: An Introduction 10 their Life and Thought . London:
Penguin, 1963.
---. The Anciflll Economy. 2nd ed. London: Hogarth Press, 1985.
Foa, Anna. ''The New and [he Old: The Spread of Syphilis, 1494- 1530." In Sex
and Gender in Historical Perspectives. eds. Edward Muir and Guido Ruggiero.
Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 1990.
Fomer, E. M. HowardI End. New York: Vimage Books, 1989. London, 1910.
---. Two Cheers for Democracy. London: Edward Arnold. 1992.
---. Maurice. New York: W. W. NortOn, 1993.
Fortas, Meyer. "Rimal and Office." In Essays on the Ritual o/Social Relations. Ed. Max
Gluckman. Manchester: Manchester University Press, 1962.
Fottier, Bruno. "La Politique de !' Espace parisien." In La politique de I'npace parisien
a la fin de "Ancien Regime. Ed. Bruno Fe rtier. Paris: Editions Fortier, 1975.
Foucaulr, MicheL Discipline and Punish. New York: Pantheon, 1977; Paris, 1975.
---. The History 0/ SexIJality. Vol. L An Introduction. Trans. Robert Hurley.
New York: Vimage Books, 1980; Pari s, 1976. Vo!. 2: Th, VIe 0/ PleaIure.
Trans. Robe" Hurley. New York: Vimage Books, 1990; Paris, 1984. Vo!. 3:
--- , and Richard Sennen. "Sexualiry and Solitude." Humam'litJ in Review 1.1
(1982): 3-2l.
Freud, Sigmund. Beyond the Pleasure Principle. Trans. James Strachey. New York:
W. W. Normn, 1961; Vienna, 1923.
Furbank, P. N. E. M. Fors/er: A LIfe. 2 vols. New York: Harcourr Brace J ovanov
ich, 1978.
Furet, Fran<,;aise. Penserla Rlvolu/ion Frallfaise. Paris: Gallimard, 1978.
Gans, Hcrbert . The Levilloumers. New York: Pantheon, 1967.
Garrod, H. W. , ed. T he Oxford Book 0/ La/ill Verse. Oxford: Oxford University
Press, 1944.
404
WORKS CITED
Giedion, Sigfried. Mechanization Takes Command. New York: Oxford University
Press, 1948.
Gilberc, Felix ... Venice in the Crisis of [he League of Cambrai." I n Renaissance
Venic,. Ed. John R. Hale.
Gilman, Sander l. Sexuality. New York: John Wiley & Sons, 1989.
Giruoard, Mark. LIfe in the EngliJh Country HaUle: A Social and ArchiteClllral HiJ/ory.
New Haven: Yale University Press, 1978.
Goerhe, Johann Wolfgang. Italianjourney, 1786-1788. Trans. W. H. Auden and E.
Mayer. New York: Pancheon, 1962.
Goffmann. Erving. Re/a/jom in Public: Micros/udies 0/ the Public Order. New York:
Basic Books, 1971.
Gombrich, E. H. Ar' and Illusion: A Study in the Psychology a/Pic/orial Representation,
Bollingen Series XXXV.5, Princeron: Princeron University Press, 1961.
GonzalesCrussi, F. The Five Senses. New York; Vintage Books, 1991.
Gothein, Marie Luise. A History of Garden Art. Vol. I. Trans. M. Archer-Hind. New
York: Hacker, 1966; Heidelberg, 1913.
Gonmann, Jean. Megalopolis. New York; Twentieth Century Fund, 1961.
Gould, Carol. Marx's Social Ontology. Cambridge, MA: MIT Press, 1980.
Graf, Fritz. "Gestures and Conventions; The Gestures of Roman Accoes and Ora-
tors." In A Cultural History of Gesture. Eds. Jan Bremmer and Herman
Roodenburg.
Grant, Michael. History of Rome. New York: Scribners, 1978.
Grunwald Cemer for the Graphic Ans, Los Angeles. French Caricature and the
French Revolution, 1789-1799. Exhibition Catalogue. Los Angeles: Univer-
sity of California Press, 1988.
GustOn, Philip. "Piero della Francesca: The Impossibility of Paiming." Art News 64
(1965): 37.
Habermas, Jurgen. The Structural Transformation of the Public Sphere: An inquiry
into a Category of Bourgeois Society. Trans. Thomas Burger, Cambridge, MA:
MIT Press, 1989; Darmstadt, 1962.
Hale,}ohn R., ed. Renaissance Venice. Totowa, N): Rowman & Littlefield, 1973.
Halperin, David. One Hundred Years of Homosexuality. London: Routledge, 1990.
Hansen, Mogens. Wfhe Athenian Ekklesia and the Assembly Place on the Pnyx."
Greek Roman ByzantimStudies 23.3 (Aurumn 1982): 241-249.
Harbison, Roben. EccmtricSpaces. BostOn: Godine, 1988.
Harrison, Evelyn B. "Athena and Athens in the East Pedimem of the Parthenon."
In The Parthenon. Ed. Vincem). Bruno.
Harvey, David. Social justice and the City. Baltimore and London: }ohns Hopkins
University Press, 1975.
Harvey, William. De motu cordis. Frankfun, 1628.
Haussmann, G. E. M/moires, vol. 3. Paris, 1893.
Hawes, Elizabeth. New York, New York: How the Apartment HOUJe Transformed the
Life of the City, 1869-1930. New York: Knopf, 1993.
Heers, jacques. La ville au Moyen Age. Paris: Libraire Anheme Fayard, 1990.
Heidegger, Manin. "Building Dwelling Thinking." In Poetry, Language, Thought.
Intro. and trans. Albert Hofstadter. New York: Harper & Row, 1975.
---. "The Origin of the Work of Art." In Poetry, Language, Thought.
Heritier-Auge, Fran<;oise. "Semen and Blood: Some Ancient Theories Concerning
Works Cited 405
Their Genesis and Relationship." In Fragments for a History of the Human
Body, Part Three. Eds. Michel Feher, Ramona Naddaff, and Nadia Tazi.
Hesiod. Works and Days. The Homeric Hymns and Homerica. Trans. Hugh G. Evelyn-
White. Loeb Classical Library. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press,
1936.
Hirschmann. Albert. The Passions and the [nttrests: Political ArgumentsforCapitalism
Before Its Triumph. Princemn: Princeton University Press, 1977.
Hodgen, Gerald. A Social and Economic History of Medieval Europe. London: Mefh-
uen, 1972.
Hollander, Anne. Moving Pictures. New York: Knopf, 1989.
Homer. The Iliad. 2 vols. Trans. A. T. Murray. Loeb Classical Library. Cambridge,
MA: Harvard Universiry Press, 1963; 1925.
Honour, Hugh. Venice. London: Collins, 1990.
Hopkins, Keith. Death and Renewal. New York: Cambridge University Press, 1983.
Horkheimer, Max, and Theodor Adorno. Dialectic of Enlightenment. Trans. John
Curnrnings. New York: Continuum, 1993.
Horowirz, Elliott. "Coffee, Coffeehouses, and the Nocturnal Rituals of Early Mod-
ern Jewry. American jewish Studies RNJiew 14 (1988): 17-46.
Huef, Rehearsing the Revolution: The Staging of Marat's Death, 1793-
1797. Trans. Robert Hurley. Berkeley: University of California Press,
1992.
Hufmn, Olwen. Women and the Limits of Citizenship in the French Revolution.
Toronto: University of Toronto Press, 1992.
Hughes, Diane Owen. "Earrings for Circumcison; Distinction and Purification in
the Italian Renaissance City." In Persons in Groups, W. Richard Trexler.
Binghamton, NY: Medieval and Renaissance Texts and Studies, 1985.
Huizinga, Johan. The Waning of the Middle Ages. Trans. F. Hopman. New York: Se.
Martin's Press, 1954; Leiden, 1919.
Hunt, Lynn. Politics, Culture, and Class in the French Revolution. Berkeley: Univer-
sity of California Press, 1984.
---. The Family Romance of the French Revolution. Berkeley; University of Califor-
nia Press, 1992.
Huse, Norbert, and Wolfgang Wolters. The Art of Renaissance Venice: Architecture,
Sculpture, and Painting, 1460-1590. Trans. EdmundJephcott. Chicago: Uni-
versity of Chicago Press, 1990; Munich, 1986.
jacobs, Jane. The Death and Ltfe of Great American Cities. New York: Random
House, 1961.
Jacobus, Mary. "Incorruptible Milk: Breast-feeding and the French Revolution." In
Rebel Daughters: Women and the French Revolution. Eds. Sara E. Melzer and
Leslie Rabine. New York: Oxford University Press, 1992.
Jakobson, Roman. lWO Types of language and Two Types of Aphasic Distur-
bances." Fundamentals of Language. Eds. Jakobson and Morris Halle. The
Hague: Mouron, 1956.
lames, E. o. Seasonal Feasts and Festivals. New York: Barnes & Noble, 1961.
jarrett, Bede. Social Theories of the Middle Agts 1200-1500. New York: Frederick
Ungar, 1966.
Jefferson, Thomas. Notes on the State of Virginia. Edited with an Introduction by
WilIiam Peden. Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press, 1955.
406 WORKS CITED
John of Salisbury. Po/icralims. Ed. C. C. J. Webb. Oxford: Oxford Universiry
Press, 1909.
Joint Association of Classical Teachers. The World 0/ Athem: An Introdllction 10 Clas-
sical Athenian Culture. Cambridge. UK: Cambridge University Press, 1984.
Kaminsky. Jack. Hege/ on Art. Albany. NY: State University of New York Press,
1970.
Kanrorowicz. Ernesr H. The King's Two Bodif1: A Stlldy in Medirllal Political Theol-
ogy. Princeton: Princcron University Press, 1957.
Karz, Jacob. ExdllJiz'eness and Toler-anre: S,"din in Jewish- Gentile Re/a/iam in Medi-
et-a! and Modern Timn. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1961.
Kennedv, Emmet. A Cultllral History 0/ the French Rei-olll/ion. New Haven: Yale
Universiry Press, 1989.
King James Bible. Cambridge, UK: Cambridge Universiry Press, 1988; also New
Tesrament text, New York: Thomas Nelson & Sons, 1925.
Kite, Elizabeth S. L'En/anl and Washington. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University
Press, 1929.
Klibansky, Raymond. "Melancholy in the Sysrem of The Four Temperamenrs." In
Satllrn and Melancholia. eds. Raymond KJibansky, Erwin Paustsky, and Fritz
Sax!. New York: Basic Books, 1964.
Knights, L. C. Drama and Sociely in the Age 0/ jonson. London: Chatm & Wind us,
1962.
Knox, B. M. W. "Silenr Reading in Anriquity." Greek Roman Byzantine Studies 9
(1968):421-435.
Konrad, Gyorgy. Anti-Politics. Trans. Richard E. Alien. New York: Harcourt Brace
Jovanovich,1984.
Kosrof, A History 0/ Architectllre: Sellings and Ritllals. Oxford: Oxford Univer-
sity Press, 1985.
---. The City Shaped: Urban Pallerns and Meanings Throllgh History. London:
Thames & Hudson, 1991.
---. The City Assembled: The Elements of Urban Form Throllgh Hist ory. London:
Thames & Hudson, 1992.
Krautheimer, Richard. Rome: Profile 0/ A City. 312-1308. Princecon: Prince con Uni-
versity Press, 1980.
---. Early Christian and Byzantine Architectllre. 4th ed. Ncw York: Viking-Pen-
guin, 1986.
Krinsky, Carol HerseJle. Synagoglles of Europe: Architerlllre. History. Meaning. New
York and Cambridge, MA: The Archirccmral Hisrory Foundarion and MIT
Press, 1985.
Kubey, Robert, and Mihaly Csikszenrmihalyi. Television and the Qllality o/Life: How
Viewing Shapes El'eryday Experience. Hillsdale, NJ: L'lwrene Erlbaum, 1990.
Landes, David. Revollltion in Time: Clocks alld the Making of the Modern \'(forld. Cam-
bridge, MA: Belknap Press, 1983.
Landes, Joan B. Women and the Public Sphere in Age of the French Rel'ollltion.
Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press, 1988.
---. "The Performance of Citizenshi p: Democracy. Gender and Difference in
the French Revolurion." Unpublished paper presented at the Conference for
(he Srudy ofPoliticai Though(, Yale Universiry, April 1993.
Lane, Frederic Chapin. "Family Partnerships and Joint Venrures in rhe Venerian
Republic." jOllrnal 0/ Economic HiS/ory IV (1944): 178-196.
Works Cited
407
---. Venice: A Maritime Repllblic. Balrimore: Johns Hopkins University Press
1973. '
Lavin, Marilyn Aronberg. Piero della Francesca: The Flagellation. New York: Viking
Press, 1972.
lawrence, A. W. Greek Architectllre. Additions by R. A. Tomlinson. London: Pen-
guin, 1983.
Le Ban, Gustave. The Crowd. A Stlldy 0/ the Poplllar Mind. Ed. R. Menon. New
York: Viking Press, 1960.
Leff, Gordon. Paris and Oxford Universitin in the Thirteenth and FOllrteenth Centll-
ries: An Institutional and Intellectual History. New York: John Wiley &
Sons, 1968.
Le Goff. Jacques. "Introduction" [Q Histoire de la France Urbaine. Vol. Il: La Ville
Midievale. Eds. Andre Chedeville, Jacques Le Goff, and Jacques Rossiaud.
Paris: Editions le Seuil, 1980.
---. Medieval Civilization, 400-1500. Trans. Julia Burrows. Cambridge. MA:
Basil BlackweU, 1988.
---. Your Money or YOllr Life: Economy and Religion in the Middle Ages. Trans.
Patricia Ranum. New York: Zone Books, 1988.
---. "Head or Heart? The Political Use of Body Metaphors in rhe Middle Ages."
In Fragments for a HiS/ory 0/ the Human Body, Part Thret. Eds. Michel Feher,
Ramona Naddaff, and Nadia Tazi.
---. "Temps de I'Eglise er remps du Marchand. " Annales ESC 15 ( 1960):417-
433.
Leguay, Jean-Pierre. La rile all Moyen Age. Rennes, France: Ouest France, 1984.
Le Guerer, Annick. Scent. Trans. Richard Miller. New York: Random House, 1992.
Lenin, V. 1. Materialism and Empiro-CriticiS11J. New York: International Publishers,
1927; 1908.
Levy, Darlene Gay, Harrier Applewhite, and Mary Johnson, eds. Women in Revolu-
tionary Paris, 1789-1795. Chicago: University of Illinois Press, 1980.
Lewis, Naphrali, and Meyer Reinhold, eds. Roman Civilization: Selected Readings.
Vol. 11 : The Empire. 3rd ed. New York: Columbia University Press, 1990.
Lfton, Robert Jay. The Protean Self: Human Resilimce in an Age 0/ Fragmentation.
New York: Basic Books, 1993.
Lissarrague, Fran<,;:ois. "Figures of Women." Trans. Arthur Goldhammer. In A His-
tory o/Women in the West . Vol. I: From Ancient Goddesses to Christian Saints.
Ed .. Pauline Schmitt Pancell. Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 1992;
Pans, 1991.
Lrtle, Lesrer K. Religious Poverty and the Profit Economy in Medieval Europe. London:
Paul Elek, 1978.
Lopez, Robert. Th, Commercial Revolution 0/ th, Middl, Ages, 930-1350. Englewood
Cliffs, NJ: Prenrice-Hall, 1971.
Loraux, Nicole. The Invention 0/ Athens: The Fllneral Oration ill the Classical City.
Trans. Alan Sheridan. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1986.
---. "Herakles: The Super-Male and rhe Feminine." In Be/ore Sexuality: The Con-
strllction of Erotic Expen'mce in the Ancient Greek World. Eds. David Halperin,
John J. WinkIer, and Froma I. ZeirIin. Princecon: Princeton University
Press, 1989.
Luchaire, Achille. Social France at the Time 0/ Philip Augustus. Trans. Edward Benja-
min KrehbieI. London: John Murray, 1912; Paris, 1899.
408 WORKS CITED
Luscombe. D. E. "Cities and Politics Before the Coming of the Po/ilia: Some IlIu5
(rations," (n Church and City 1000-/ 500: EJlays in Honor 0/ Chris/opher
Brooke. Eds. David Abulafia. Michael Franklin, and Miri Rubin. Cambridge,
UK: Cambridge University Press, 1992.
Lykurgos. Agaiml uocra/es. Minor Attic Orators. Trans. j. O. Burtt. Locb Classical
Lbrary. Cambridge. MA: Harvard University Press, 1954.
Lynch, Kevin. The Image of the City. Cambridge, MA: MIT Press, 1960.
MacDonald, William L. The Pantheon: Design, Meaning and Progeny. Cambridge.
MA: Harvard University Press, 1976.
---. The ArchiUCl ure of the Roman Empire. Vol. I: An Introductory Stlldy. Rev. ed.
New Haven: Yale University Press, 1982.
MacMulIen. Ramsay. Paganism in the Roman Empire. New Haven: Yale University
Press, 1981.
Manuel, Frank. The Broken Sta/f'judaism Through Christian Eyes. Cambridge, MA:
Harvard University Press, 1992.
Marcus Aurelius Anroninus. Meditations. Trans. G. M. A. Grube. Indianapolis:
Hackett Publishing, 1983.
Marcuse, Herbert. One-Dimensional Man: Studies in the Ideology of Adt:anred Indus-
trial Soriety. Bosron: Beacon Press, 1964.
Masson, Georgina. Courltsans 0/ the Italian Renaissance. New York: St. Martin's
Press, 1975.
Mazzolani, Lidia Srorini. The Idea 0/ the City in Roman Thought: From Walled City to
Spiritual Commonwealth. Trans. S. O'Donnell. Bloomingron: Indiana Univer-
sity Press, 1970; Milan, 1967.
McNeill. William. Venice. The Hinge of Europe, lOBI -1797. Chicago: University of
Chicago Press, 1974.
Meeks, Wayne A. The First Urban Christians: The Sorial World of the Apostle Paul.
New Haven: Yale University Press, 1983.
---. The Moral World 0/ the First Christians. Philadelphia: Westminster Press,
1986.
Melzer, Sara, and Leslie Rabine, eds. Rebel Daughters. Women and the French Revolu-
tion. New York: Oxford University Press, 1992.
Mercier, Sebastien. Tableau de Paris. 12 vols. Amsterdam, NY: 1782-88.
Millar, Fergus. The Emperor in the Roman World. Ithaca, NY: Cornell University
Press, 1992.
Ministere de la Culture et de la Communication, des Grands Travaux et du Bicen-
tennaire. us Arrhiurlts de la Liberti 1789-1799. Exhibition Catalogue. Paris:
Ecole Nationale Superieure des Beaux Arts de Paris, 1989.
Modena. Leon. "Life of Judah." In The Autobiography of a Seven/eenth-Century Rabbi:
Leon Modena', "Life of)"dah." Ed. Mark Cohen.
Mollat, Michel. The Poor in the Middle Ages. Trans. Arthur Goldhammer. New
Haven: Yale University Press, 1986; Paris, 1978.
Morel, Marie-France. "Ville et campagne dans le discours medical sur la petite
enfance au XVlIIe siecIe." Annal" ESC 32 (1977): 1007-\024.
Mumford, Lewis. The City in History. New York: Harcourt BraceJovanovich, 1961.
Munsterberg, Hugo. The Film: A Psychological Study: The Silent Photoplay in 1916.
New York: Dover Publicacions, 1970; 1916.
Murray, Oswyn. "Sympocic History." In Sympotica: A Symposium on the Symposiom.
Ed. Oswyn Murray. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1990.
Works Cited
409
Nelson, Ben;amin N. ihe Usurer and the Mercham Prince: Italian Businessmen
and che Ecclesiastical Law of Restitution, 1100-1550." journal of Economic
HiJlory VII (1947): 104-122.
Neusner, Jacob. A History of the Mishnaic Law of Puri/ies. Leiden: Brill, 1977.
Nock, Arthur Darby. Conversion. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1969.
Ober, Josiah. Mass and Elilt in Democratic Athens: Rhetoric, Ideology and the Power 0/
the People. Princecon: Princecon University Press, 1989.
Olsen, DonaldJ. Town Planning in umdon: The Eighteenth and Nineteenth Cen/uries.
2nd ed. New Haven: Yale University Press, 1982.
---. The Cilyas a Work of Art: London, Paris, Vienna. New Haven: Yale Univer-
sity Press, 1986.
Origen. C01llra Celsum. Trans. and ed. Henry Chadwick. Cambridge, UK: Cam.
bridge University Press, 1965.
Ourram, Dorinda. The Body and the French Revolution: Sex, Class, and Political Cul-
ture. New Haven: Yale University Press, 1989.
Ovid. FaJti. Trans. James George Frazer. Loeb Classical Library. Cambridge, MA:
Harvard University Press, 1976.
---. Tris/ia. In Ovid, voL VI. Trans. Arthur Leslie Wheeler. Rev. G. P. Gould.
2nd ed. Loeb Classical Library. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press,
1988.
Ozouf, Mona. Fes/ivalJ and the French Revolution. Trans. Alan Sheridan. Cambridge,
MA: Harvard University Press, 1988; Paris, 1976.
Pamel, Pauline Schmict, ed. A HiJtory o/Women in the West. Vol. I: From Ancient
Goddesses to Christian Saints, crans. Arrhur Goldhammer. Cambridge, MA:
Harvard University Press, 1992; Paris, 1991.
Paterculus, Velleius. Compendium of Roman History 1I. Trans. Frederick William
Shipley. London: W. Heinemann, 1924.
Pelikan, Jaroslav. jesuJ Through the Centuries. New Haven: Yale Universicy Press,
1985.
Pellizer, Ezio. "Sympocic Emerrainment." In Sympolica: A Symposium on the Sympo-
sion. Ed. Oswyn Murray.
Pinckney, David. Napoleon III and the Building of Paris. Princeton: Princeton Uni-
versity Press, 1958.
Pirenne, Henri. Medieval CitieJ: Their Origins and the Revival o/Trade. Teans. Frank
D. Halsey. Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1946.
Plato. Gorgias. Trans. and intro. Waiter Hamilton. London: Penguin, 1960.
---. Symposium. Trans. and imro. Alexander Nehamas and Paul Woodruff. lndi-
anapolis: Hacken Publishing, 1989.
Plautus. Vol. VII: CUf'Culio. Trans. Paul Nixon. Loeb Classical Library. Cambridge,
MA: Harvard University Press, 1977.
Plutarch. "Perikles." The Rise and Fall of Athens: Nine Greek Lives. Trans. lan SCOct-
Kilvert. London: Penguin, 1960.
Polanyi, Karl. The Great Transformation: The Political and Economic Origins of Our
Time. Boston: Beacon Hill Press, 1957.
Polybius. Histories. 6 vols. Trans. W. R. Paron. Loeb Classical Library. Cambridge,
MA: Harvard University Press, 1980.
Pomeroy, Sarah. Goddesses, Whore! , Wives, and Slaves: Women in ClaJsical Antiquity.
New York: Schocken Books, 1975.
Pouchelle, Marie-Christine. The Body and Surgery in the Middle Ages. Teans. Rose-
410 WORKS CITED
mary Morris. New Brunswick, NJ: Rurgers University Press, 1990; Paris,
1983.
Pullan, arian S. Rich and Poor in RenaiISana Venice. Oxford: Basil Blackwell,
1971.
---, Tht}twJ ojEuropeand the Jnqu,jition a/Venice, 1550-1670. Torowa, NJ:
Barnes & Noble, 1983.
Rabinbach, Ansan. The Human Motor: Energy. Fatigue, and the Origin! of Modernity.
New York: Basic Books, 1990.
Ravid, Ben;amin. ''The First Charter of (he Jewish Merchanrs of Venice, 1589."
AHOciation for jfWish Studies Revi<w I (1976): 187-222.
---, ''The Religious, Economic, and Social Background and Comext of the
Escablishmenc of the Ghetti of Venice," In GH Ebrei e Venezia, seeo/; XIV-
XVlll. Ed. Gacrano Cozzi.
Recd. T.]. Got/he. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1984.
Reps,John. Monumental Washington. Princeron: Princeton University Press, 1967.
Reynolds, Joyce. "Cities." In The Administration of the Roman Empire. Ed. David
Braund.
Roberts, J. W. City of Sokrates: An Int roduction to Classical Athens. New York:
Routiedge & Kegan Paul, 1984.
Robens, Warren. "David's 'Bara' and [he Burdens of the French Revolution." In
Rtr'olulionary Ellrope 1750-/850. Tallahassee, FL: Conference Proceedings,
1990.
Rosenau, Helen. Boul/ee and Visionary ArchiltClllre. New York: Harmony Books,
1976.
Rousseau, Jean-jacQues. Emile, Oil Traite de L'Education. Paris: Gallimard, 1971;
1762.
Rude, George. The Crowd in the French Revolution. New York: Oxford University
Press, 1959,
Ruggiero, Guido. The Boundaries of Eros: Sex Crime and Sexuality in Renaissance Ven-
ice. New York: Oxford University Press, 1985.
Rykwert,joseph. The Idea of a Town: The Anthropology of Urban Form in Rome, Italy
and the Ancient World. Cambridge, MA: MIT Press, 1988.
Saalman, Howard. Medieval Cities. New York: George Braziller, 1968.
Sade, D. A. F, Marquis de. Three Complete NfWels Uustine, Philosophy in the Bedroom,
EllgEnie de Franval). Trans. Richard Seaver and Austryn Wainhouse. New
York: Grove Press, 1966.
Sappho. Greek Lyrics. Trans. David A. Campbell . Loeb Classical Library. Cambridge,
MA: Harvard University Press, 1982.
Scarry, Elaine. The Body in Pain: The Making and Unmaking 0/ the World. New
York: Oxford University Press, 1985.
Schama, Simon. Citizens. New York: Vimage Books, 1989.
Schivelbusch, Wolfgang. The Railway jOllrney. Berkeley: University of California
Press, 1986.
Schmitt, Jean-Claude. "The Ethics of Gesture." In Fragments for a History of the
Human Body, Part Two. Eds. Michel Feher, Ramona Naddaff, and Nadia
Tazi.
Schwarrz, Regina. "Rethinking Voyeurism and Patriarchy: The Case of Paradise
Lost," Representations 34 (1991): 85-103.
Scon, Joan Wallach. "'A Woman Who has Only Paradoxes to Offer'; Olympe de
Works Cited 41 1
Gouges Claims Rights for Women." In Rebel Daughlers: Women and the French
Rel'ollllion. Eds. Sara E. Melzer and Leslie Rabine.
Seneca. Seneca's Lelters 10 LIICI"/ills. 2 vols. Trans. E. Phillips Barker. Oxford:
Clarendon Press, 1932.
---. Senera: Moral Epistles. Trans. and intro. Anna Lydia Motto. Chico, CA:
Scholars Press, 1985.
Sennet<, Richard. The Fall of Public Man. New York: W. W. Norton, 1992; 1976.
--, The Conscience of the Eye. New York: W. W. Norton, 1992; 1990.
Shakespeare, William. The Merchant of Venice. Ed. W. M. Merchant. London: Pen-
guin, 1967.
Simon, Erika. Festivals 0/ Attica: An Archaeological Commentary. Madison: University
of Wisconsin Press, 1983.
Simson, OttO von. The Gothic Cathedral: OrigillS 0/ Gothic Architecture and the Medi-
et.'(l1 Concept of Order. 3rd ed., Bollingen Series XLVIII. Princeton: PrincetOn
University Press, 1988.
Sirel, Edmund. "Les Levres de la Nation." Paris, 1792.
Sissa, GiuIia. ''The Sexual Philosophies of Placo and Aristode." In A History 0/
Women in the West. Vo!. I: From Ancient Goddesus 10 Christian Saints. Ed.
Pauline Schmin Pame!. Trans. Arthur Gold hammer. Cambridge, MA: Har-
vard University Press, 1992; Paris, 1991.
Smith, Adam. The Wealth of Nations. New York: Everyman's Library, Knopf, 1991;
London, 1776.
Stafford, Barbara Maria. Body Criticism: lmaging Ihe UllSeen in Enlightenment Arl
and Medicine. Cambridge, MA: MIT Press, 1991.
Scambaugh, John E. The Ancient Roman City. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University
Press, 1988.
Seanton, G. R., and Bicknell, P.]. "Voting in Tribal Groups in the Athenian Assem-
bly." Greek Roman and Byzantine Studies 28 (1987).
Starobinski, jean.jean-jacqlles ROllsuau, la transparence ettobstade: SIIivi de sept essais
sur Rousseau. Paris: Gallimard, 1971.
Stechow, Wolfgang. Breugh'/. New York: Abram" 1990.
StOw, Kennech R. "Sanctity and the Construction of Space: The Roman Ghetto as
Sacred Space." Injewish Assimilation, Acculturation and Accommodation: Pasl
TradiliollS, Cu"entlssues and Future Prospects. Ed. Menachem Mor. I.anham,
Universiey Press of America, 1989.
Strauss, Leo. The City and Man. Chicago: Rand-McNaHy, 1964.
Suetonius. The Twelve Caesars. Trans. Roberr Graves. Rev. ed. London: Penguin,
1979.
Svenbro, jesper. "La voix interieure." Phrasikleia: anlhropologie de la lecture en Greee
ancienne. Paris: Editions de la Decouverte, 1988.
Symonds,]. A. Memoirs. New York: Viking Press, 1984.
Tacicus. Agricola. Trans. M. Hutton. Rev. R. M. Ogilvie. Agrieola, Germania, Dia-
logus. Loeb Classical Library. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press,
1970.
Talma, Franc;ois-Joseph. "Grandeur Without Pomp" (1825). In Actors on Acting. Eds.
Toby Cole and Helen Crich Chinoy.
Temkin, Owsei. Galenism: Rise and Dedine 0/ a Medical Philosophy. Irhaca, NY: Cor-
nell University Press, 1973.
Temko, AlIan. NoIre Dame 0/ Paris. New York: Viking Press, 1955.
412 WORKS CITED
Tenenti, Alberta. ''The Sense of Space and Time in the Venerian World." In Renais-
sance Venict. Ed. John R. Hale.
Tertullian. Apologetical Works [and Ocravius, MinllciuI Felix]. Trans. Rudolph Arb-
esmann, Emily ]oseph Daly, and Edwin A. Quain. The Fathers ofehe Church
Series, val. 10. Washington, DC: Catholic University of America Press,
1950
Theben, Yvon . "Private Life and Domestic Architecture in Roman Africa." In A
History of Private LIfe. Val. I: From Pagan Rome 10 Byzantium. Ed. Paul Veyne.
Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1990; Paris, 1985.
Thompson, Paul. The Edwardians: The Remaking 0/ Bri/ish Society. 2nd ed. New
York: Routledge, 1992.
Thucydides. History of the Peloponmsian War. Trans. Rex Warner, intro. M. I. Fin-
ley. London: Penguin, 1954.
Tilly, Charles. The Contentious French. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press,
1986.
Toellner, Richard. "Logical and Psychological Aspects of the Discovery of the Circu-
lation of the Blood." In On Scientific Discovery. Eds. Mirko Grmek, Robert
Cohen, and Guido Cimino. Boston: Reidel, 1980.
Tucci, Ugo. ''The Psychology of the Venerian Merchant in the Sixteenth Century."
In Renaissance Venice. Ed. John R. Hale.
Ullmann, WaIter. The Individual and Society in the Middle Ages. Baltimore: Johns
Hopkins Press, 1966.
Vernant,Jean-Pierre. "Introduction" to Marcel Derienne, The Gardens 0/ Adonis.
---. "Dim Body, Dazzling Body." In Fragments/ora History o/the Human Body,
Part One. Eds. Michel Feher, Ramona Naddaff, and Nadia Tazi.
Veyne, Paul. Bread and Circuses. Abridged and trans. Brian Pearce. London: Alien
Lane I Penguin, 1990; Paris, 1976.
Vidler, Anthony. The Architectural Uncanny: Essays in the Modern Unhomely. Cam-
bridge, MA: M1T Press, 1992.
Virgil, Eclogues. Virgil's Works. Trans. J. W. Mackail. Intra. Charles Durham. New
York: Modern Library, 1934.
Vitruvius. The Ten Books 0/ Architecture. Trans. Morris Vicky Morgan. New York:
Dover Publications, 1960.
Vovelle, Michel. La Revolution Franraise: Images et recilS. 5 vols. Paris: Messidor l
livre Club Dideror, 1986.
Walkowitz, Judith R. City 0/ Dread/ul Delight: Narratives 0/ Sexual Danger in Late-
Victorian London. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1992.
Weber, Max. The City. Trans. Don Martindale and Gerrrud Neuwirrh. New York:
The Free Press, 1958; Tubingen, 1921.
Webber, Melvin. "Revolution in Urban Development ." In Housing: Symbol, Struc-
ture, Site. Ed. Lisa Taylor. New York: Rizzoli, 1982.
Welch, Katherine. ''The Roman Amphitheatre after Golvin." Unpublished manu-
script, New York University Institute of Fine Arrs .1992.
White, Michael L. Building God's House in the Roman- W'Orld: Architectural Adaptation
Among Pagans, Jews, and Christians. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University
Press, 1990.
Whyte. William. City: Rediscovering the Center. Garden City, NY: Doubleday, 1988.
Wildenstein, Daniel and Guy. David: Documents supplementaires au catalogue complet
de /'oeuvre. Paris: Fondation Wildenstein, 1973.
Works Cited 413
Williams, Raymond. The Country and the City. New York: Oxford University
Press, 1973.
Willis, Thomas. Two Discourses Concerning the Soul 0/ Brutes. London, 1684.
Winckelmann. Johann Joachim. History 0/ Ancient Art. Trans. Johann Gortfried
Herder. New York: Ungar, 1969.
Winkler, John J. The Constraints 0/ Desire: The Anthropology 0/ Sex and Gender in
Ancient Greece. New York: Routledge. Chapman & Hall, 1990.
---. ''The Ephebes' Song." In Nothing to Do with Dionysos? Eds. John Winkler
and Froma Zeitlin. Princeton: Prince ton University Press, 1990.
Wittgenstein. Ludwig. The Blue and Brown Books: Preliminary Studies for the "Philo-
sophical Investigations." New York: Harper Colophon, 1965.
Woolf, Virginia. the Novels of E. M. Forster." The Death 0/ the Moth and Other
Essays. New York: Harcourt, Brace, 1970.
Wycherley, R. E. How the Greeks Built Cities: The Relationship 0/ Architecture and
Town Planning to Everyday LIfe in Ancient Greece. 2nd ed. New York: W. W.
Norron, 1976.
---. The Stones 0/ Athem. Princeton: Princeron University Press, 1978.
Xenophon. Hellenika 1-1I.310. Ed. and [rans. Peter Krenrz. Warminster, UK: Aris
& Phillips, 1989.
Yourcenar, Marguerite. Memoirs 0/ Hadrian. Trans. Grace Frick. New York: Farrar,
Straus & Giroux. 1954.
Zanker, Paul. The Power 0/ Images in the Age 0/ Augustus. Trans. Alan Shapira. Ann
Arbor: University of Michigan Press, 1990.
Zeitlin, Froma. "Playing the Other: Theatre. Theatricality. and the Feminine in
Greek Drama." In Nothing to Do with Dionysos? Eds. John Winkler and
Froma Zeidin.
Zucker. Paul Town and Square: From the Agora to the Village Green. New York:
Columbia University Press. 1969.
INDEX
Page numbers in italicJ refer co iIIustrarions.
abbeys, 151, 17 1, 172-73, 193
Abelard, Pierre, 170, 172, t 73. 203
Adam and Eve, 25, 13 1, 183, 185,225,
370-71
Adon;a, 70, 73-80, 76, 84,85,374
Adonis , 75-77. 82, 84
Adomo, Theodor, 19
Adriatic Sea, 2 17- 18, 22 1, 234
Ameid (Virgil), 95
Age of Reaso n, 340
Agnadello, battle of, 22 1-22, 227. 237
ago,. (Arhens), 33, 52-60, 53, 78, III
bodily behavior in, 55-56
Council House (BouJeurerio n) in, 39,
56-57,61,62,65
diverse activity in, 37, 38, 39. 44,52-58
equalit y in, 65-66
law cOUrtS in, 39. 55, 57
Odeion in, ')7
orkhesrra in, 54, 57-59
stoas in, SO, SI. 54-55, 54,57
Tholos in, 39, S6
Twelve Gods sanctuary in, 54
Agricola. I J 0
Agrippa, 87. 92-93
Agulhan, Maurice, 312
AIDS, 237. 357
Ai skhines, 49
Alari c, 146
Alexander IV, Pope, 237
Ali ibn Ridwan. 162, 163
almshouses, 158, 173, 174
altruism, 168, 207. 27 I
American Indians, 223
American Revolution, 265, 266,
276
androns, 339
AnualeJ PalrioliqueJ, LeJ, 307
Anselm, Saint, 168-69
Aminopoiis, 126, 128
AminousofEleusis, 126-28, 127.130-31
anti-Semitism, 2 12-51, 358
aparrmem houses, 348. 349
Roman, 95 , 334
Aphrodite, 75
Apollodorus , 96-97
arches, Roman, 121
Archidamus, 83
architecture:
basilica form in, 11 2, 113, 11 4, 142-46,
143
bodily symmetry and geometry in, 90-
9 1, 102-6,107-8, 11 3, 118, 121
demonstration of power in, 88, 89, 92-
97
peristyle form in, 11 2- 13, 120
ut alJo specific jOrHJJ
Areti no,238-39
Arginoussai , battle of, 6 1
A r i ~ s , Philippe. 170
Aris(ophanes, 44, 50, 78-79. 80
A';sror1e. 13,36,38,41-42,43,56, 8 1,
162,225
Ark of the Covenam, 130
An Medica (Galen), 162-64, 197
Arl de la midec;ne et de la chirurg;e, 16.5
Aryeh, Judah (Leon Modena), 245-48
ast ronomy, 107-8, 133
atheism, 1 34
Athena, 40, 4 1, 49. 51, 68
Athens, 15.3 1-67,32, 126.255
Academy of, 39. 44. 4.5
416 IN D E X
Athens (coll/ifJutd)
Akropolis in, 35, 37-38,38,40,54,57,
78
Assembly (Ekklesia) of, 61-67, 72
capital punishment in, 62-64
cemeteries of, 32, 35, 37
cholera plague in, 82-85, 357
countryside of, 36, 53,83-84
democracy in, 22, 32, 33. 38, SI-52,
55-57,61-67,81-83
economy of, 36, 5 I, 52
education and physical training in, 44-47,
50,86
fortification of. 35-36. 83-84
founding of, 40
Golden Age of, 39-40
gymnasia of, 24, 33,44-48.50.5 1,77,
78,86, 139
houses in, 37, 69,73-75,77-80,82, 118
Kolonos Agoraios hill in, 37
as model [0 Greece, 95
Panarhenaic Way (Dromos) of, 37. 40, 54
Persian auack on, 35-36, 37, 39
Pnyx Hill in, 33, 39, 60-61, 64-67, 72,
78,8 1,82, 116,300
politics and law in, 33. 37, 39. SS-57,
60-67,83,86
population of, 64
Poners' Quarter (Ktrameikos) of, 37
Propylaia in, 37
public speaking and acting in, 46. 52, SS,
56-67,86
resident foreigners in. 68. 74
ritual in, 70-86
social classes in, 52-53,61
social life in, 44, 50, 54, 74, 77
status of women in, 34,43, 49, 68, 70-
80
stone carving in, 37, 40-41, 41
theatres in, 33, 52, 57-60
Thriasian Gate (Dipylon Gate) in, 35,
36-37,44
trade and commerce of, 36, 37, H, 54
tribes of, 61, 65
urban design in, 35-40, 50-61, 65-67,
83-84
walls of, 32, 35-36, 37, 53, 83-84
JU aho agora Parthenon;
Peloponnesian War
atria, 118
Attica, 52. 83-84
Auden, Wystan Hugh. 210-11
Augustine, Saint, 91, 101, 130, 133, 138,
146
Augustus. Emperor of Rome, 92, 93, 94,
116
babies:
abandonment of, 158. 289-91
breast feeding of. 286-91, 292
mortality of, 288
Bahard, Vinor, 329
Banham. Reyner, 347
baptism, 139-41, 143.291
Bara, Joseph, 313, 315-16,315
Barasch, Moshe, 170
Barbari, Jacopo dei, 213
barbarians. 33, 34,40, 139, 146, 284
barber-surgeons, 262
Banhelemy, Jean-Jacques, 161
Barthelmey l'Anglais, 164
Barthes, Roland. 365
Barton, Carlin, 90, 98
basilicas, 112-14, 142-46, 143
Baudelaire, Pierre Charles, 314-15, 338
Baumgartner, M. P., 19
Beccaria, Cesare Bonesana, 298
Bur St,-ut (Hogarth), 19, 20, 310
Bell, Malcolm, 114
Benedict, Saint, 183
Benedictine order, J 73, 184
Benjamin, Waiter, 322-23, 332
bergamot, 181
Bergson, Henri, 206
Berlin, 320, 333
Bernard of Clairvaux, 169, 184-85
Beyond the PleaJun P,-inciple (Freud), 372
Bible ofS(. Louis, 22,153-55,154
bishops, 142, 143, 170-72, 174
Black Sea. 218
Boardman. John, 41
bodies:
asceticism and, 124, 131-32, 133, 134,
138, 140, 146, 148, 183
bilateral symmetries and geometrical rela-
tionships of, 90, 102-6, 104, 105
blood circulation in, 23, 255-65,
258,260,281
cleanliness and. 139-40,225-27,262-
63
clothing of, 34, 262
comfort of, 338-49
compassion and, 25, 125, 128,159-70,
175-79,207
displacement of, 349-54
duality in, 164, 165, 258
environmental experience of, 261-63
growth, aging and decay of, 91
Index 417
as machines, 255-63
nervous system of, 259-60, 261
organs of. 257-59, 261
purification of, 225-27
relationship of soul and, 255, 258-59,
261
separation of mind and, 66-67. 148
social hierarchy and, 161, 166-68, 167
suffering, 80, 82-86, 158-78, 185,207-
11,215-16
vulnerability of, 66, 132
waste products of, 262, 263, 265,
JU aIJo body heat; dead bodies; naked-
ness; posture
body heat, 34-35, 41-44, 82,132,162,
255,261
dominance and subordination related to,
34,43-44
drinking and, 196
gende< and, 34,41-43,68-70,72-73,
258
rheroric and, 34,43,63,65,66-67
temperament and, 163-64
Body in Pain, The (Scarry). 375-76
body language, 99-102
body politic, 23-24, 1)6, 167, 168
Bombast von Hohenheim (Paracelsus),
225-26
Bombay, 95
Boniface IV, Pope, 89
Book 0/ ,h, Cou,-/;,,- (Castiglione), 239
Bossuet. Bishop, 301
Boston, Mass . 317, 319
Boullee, Etienne-Louis, 293-96, 294, 295,
304,361,376
Bourdichon, Jean, 194
Bowersock, Glen W., 122
Brcmmer, jan, 60
Brilliam, Richard, 91, 100
Britain, Roman conquest of, 109, 110
British Museum, 40
Brooks, Pcter, 288
Brown, Frank, 88
Brown, Peter, 121, 132, 146,374
Brueghel the Elder, Peter, 207-8,208,
209-11, 211. 216,247
Bullough, Vern, 162
Burkert, Waiter, 80-81
Byoum, Caroline Walker, 168, 184
Byron, George Gordon, Lord, 122
cafes, 345-47
Cairo, 191-93, 197,358
Calvin, John, 245
Cambridge University, 203
Camp, John, 54
cannibalism, 138, 213
Camarella, Eva, 77
capitalism, 2"-56, 257
Carl August, Duke, 273
Caro, Robert, 363, 363
Castigiione, Baldassare, 239
castles, 151, 171, 173, 179,264
castration, 131, 134, 148,248
catechumens, 138, 143
cathedrals, 1 SS, 157, 170
Ce1sus, 126-28, 130-31, 132
cemral heating, 347-48, 349
chaics, 339-42, 341, 342
charity, 158, 170, 173-74, 175-78, 177,
271
Charles V, King of France, 171, 190
Chenier, Marie-Joseph, 307
China, 106
cholera, 82-85, 357
Christ, 25.122,126-28
"alien" body of, 128, 132, 138, 157-58,
161
birth of, 181
concepts of, 124, 125. 142, 146, 161,
168-69
divinity of, 128
Last Supper of, 136
life of, 188,205-6
Passion and Crucifixion of, 22, 124, 128,
131,133, 141,144,145,158,161,
166, 169,207-9,208,210
Resurrection of, 14 1
Second Coming of, 205
teaching and ministry of, 124, 130,225
Christianity:
community and, 157-62, 166, 170-85
compassion and, 25,125,128,159-70,
175-79,207
concept of faith in, 129, 140-41
conversion to, 91,129,131,134,136,
138-41, 142,188,244
criticism of, 147-48
equality promoted by, 131-32
hierarchy of, 143, 170-71, 172,204
images and symbolism of light in, 91,
132-34, 144, 145, 161
institutionalization of, 142-43, 146
pagan temples consecrated to, 89, 91,
134, 145, 148
persecution of, 14, 161-62; Jtt abo
martyrs
418 INDEX
Chri stianity (cM/;nutd)
poverty and humility espoused by, 132
in Rome. 123-48. 157
schism and confl ict in, 136
secrecy in, 131, 136
severing of politics and fai th in, 128-29,
17 1
sex as viewed in. 90. 9 1, 128.225
spread and growth of, 134-36, 141-42
visual images and, 9 1, 101 ,148
ChriStmas, 181
churches:
chapel sannuaries in, 172, 183
early, 141 -46
medieval, 157, 158. 159
parish, 158, 159
su also basilicas; cathed rals; specific
churrhts
Cicero. 122, 285
circumcision, 14,247-48
Cisrercian order, 184
cities:
cosmopolitan outlook on, 186-87
coumry and, 272-73
love of. 50, 51,91
markets and commerce in, 109, 110
passivi ty and insensitivity in, 282-84,
296, 302, 303-4
social (Quchi ng in, 3 10-13
space vs. place in, 188
traffic and congestion in, 257, 274, 349
as works of art, 85
ue also specific cities
City in History, The (Mumford), 21-22
City o/God, The (Augustine), 130, 146
Clark, Kenneth, 33
Clemcnceau, Georges, 319, 320-21, 322
Clement, 286-88, 287
clergy:
graft and dissolution among, 172, 176,
184,23 1
Sft abo bishops; convenu; monasteries;
priests
Cloister Garden, The, 182
Clouds, The (Aristophanes), 44, 55
coffee houses, 345
coi ns, 285
Roman, 92, 100-101, 126
Collenot d' Augremem, 299
Columbus , Chri sropher, 223
Commercial Revolution, 199, 206
communism, 136
Compendium anatomicum (Case), 260
confession, 158, 174-75,206, 225, 298-99
Con/mions (August ine), 138
Congress, V .S., 267
Constantinc. Holy Roman Emperor, 22,
133, 142-46
conversion of, 142
Lateran Basilica buih by, 22, 142-46,
143, 153,155
contraception. 49
Convent of rhe ParacJere, 168, 169
convents, 158, 169, 170, 173, 289-91
Corbin, Alai n, 262
Cord ay, Charlone, 3 13
corporations , 188, 202-4
Coryat, Thomas, 242
Costanza, 145
costumes, 90, 226
Cox, Harvey, 130
Cranach, Lucas, 298
crosses, 22,128,133, 145, 16 1, 207
Crusades, 173,206,21 7- 18
Csikszentmihal yi, MihaJy, 17
cults:
Christian, 169, 188
fire, 108
pagan, 89, 96-97, 126, 130
Custom; 0/ the Vmtlians (Grevembroch),
226,238
Cynossema, battle of, 84
Dakota Apartment House, 348
Danten, Georges Jacques, 306
Danube River, 109
Datus, 99
David, Jacques-Louis, 305-9, 3 13-16, 314,
31),343,376
Davis, Nacalie, 246-47
Day of Judgment, 205. 206
dead bodies, 68-70
burial of, 37, 176
decay of, 35, 71
dishonori ng of, 83
fcar of, 35, 169
shades of, 35, 68-70, 77
deat h:
by execurion, 98-99, 99. 101, 109, 141,
161-62,292,296-304,297
ritual tied to, 70-80, 83. 84, 169-70
Death and Li/e 0/ Great American Cities, The
(jacobs),355-57
Death 0/ Bara. The (David). 3 15- 16,315
Death 0/ Maral , The (David), 313- 15,3 14
1ndex
419
de Chelles, j ehan, 153, 155, 158, 159, 161 ,
171, 172,1 74, 175, 176,1 79, 180,
190
de Gouges, Olympe, 285
De1ph;, 40, 59
Demecer, 70-72, 82, 84
democracy, 22, 33
breakdown of, 82, 83
debate and reason in, 32, 39,44.46, 52,
55-57,61-65,81
equality and freedom of speech in. 65-
66,81-82
evolution of, SS, 8 1
murual mistrust and, 81-82
participation in, 55- 57.61-67
reform of, 65-66
voting in, 33, 61-62, 64, 65, 186
Democracy in America (Tocqueville), 323
de Mondeville, Hemi , 164-68, 183,261
Demonstrations 0/ Physiology (Hailer), 26 1
Of mol" cor-dis (Harvey), 22-23, 255, 256
Depression, Great, 364
Dervilliers, 340, 343
Descanes, R e m ~ , 259
Derienne, Marcel, 75
Dickens, Charl es, 30 I , 326
Diderot, Denis, 272
Dio Cassius, 97, 134
Diogencs of A poUonia, 4 I
Dionysius, Bishop, 142
Dioscorides, 76
Discipline and Punish (Foucaulr ), 26
divi sion of labor, 272, 281
divorce, 77
Dodds, Eric Robenson. 39-40
Dolfin, Zacaria, 233-34, 241
Dominican order, 173, 176
Domitian, Emperor of Rome, 100
Douglas, Mary, 226-27
Dover, Kenneth, 49
Duby, Georges, 155, 158
Dumont, Louis, 148
Dura-Europas, 144
Durer, Albrecht , 106
"Dying Christ ian to his Soul " (Pope), 122-
23
Easter, 169
Eclogues (Virgil ), 183
Edict of Milan, 142
Edward VII, King of England, 320
Egypt, 42, 73, 9 1,106,128,131,319
eleclricity, 348
elevators , 348-49
Elgin Marbles, 40-41, 41
Elizabeth I, Queen of England, 212-13
Ellico[[, Andrew, 266, 266, 269
Emilt (Rousseau), 288
Encyclopedia (Diderot), 272
England, 212-13, 218, 219, 228
decline of country life in, 319-20
gardens and landscaping in, 268-69
John Bull figure in, 3 19
Roman conquest of, 109, 110
S" also London
Enlighrenment, 264, 265, 267, 268. 273,
275, 293, 298, 324, 347
Epidaurus, 58
"Epistle to Diognatus," 130
Eridanos River, 37
Erienne de Bourbon, 205
Etruscans, 106
Eucharist, 138, 143, 144, 169
Euripides,43
Euryprolemos, 62
famine, 173
Fascism, 284
fast ing, 7 1
Faliea, La (Masso), 339
Fehls, Philipp, 40
feminism, 285
Ferrabosco, Alfonso, 214
fertility rituals, 70-80
feudalism, 151, 155,203
Finley, Moses I. , 39
Flagellation (Piero della Francesca), 208-9,
210,21 1,316
Flaubert, Gusrave, 122
Florence. 224
Florio, John, 214
Flour War, 278-79
Foa, Anna, 223
Foiigno, Sigismondo de'Comida, 223-24
formae, 111
Forsrcr, Edward Morgan, 23. 257, 320,
321,323- 24,334,349-54
Fortas, Mcyer, 81
Fonier, Bruno, 325
Foucault. Michel, 26
France, 109, 175,2 19,22 1,262
Ancien Regime in, 276, 278, 288, 293,
298, 299, 30 1, 308, 345
Sf{! also Paris
Franciscan order, 173, 176, 184
Francis of Assisi, Saint, 161
420
INDEX
Franco da Piacenza, 248
Franklin. Benjamin, 347
FrankJin Stove, 347
Frcderick the Great. 268
French Academy. 293
French National Assembly, 299. 308
French Revolution, 273, 27'), 278-316,
329,345,375
civic festivals in, 292, 304- 12, J05, 306,
309, 311
economic conditions and, 276-81, 284
liberty, equality and fraternity of, 291-
92, 296, 310-12
"Mariannc" figure of, 285-91,287.292,
296,3 10-13,31/,316,376
mob violence and, 278-84, 306
Reign of Terror in, 293. 303, 312
use of gui llOtine in. 292, 296-304,297
Freud. Sigmund, 84, 372
Frick, Henry Clay, 339
funeral urns, 37
Furcr, Franc;ois, 285, 293
Galen, 42, 162-64,261
galley ships. 212, 2 18-19
gambl;ng, 245, 246-47, 278
Gans, Herbert, 364
Garden of Eden, exile from, 25, 26, 27, 67,
125,183,184,257,310
gardens, 325
castle. 179
des;gn of, 179-81,268-69
earthly paradise of, 182, 183-84
Engl;sh, 268-69
Islamic "paradise," 184
labor in, 183-85
plants in, 179. 180, 181
sacred, 1)3,170,172,173,176-85,182
Tuileries, 268. 300, 325. 346
Versailles, 268-70
Gaul, 109, 110, I 13
geishas, 239
Genoa, 15 7.218
geometry, 90-91. 330
George IV, King of England, 325, 327
Ge,many, 157,222, 228-31,320,354
Giedion, Sigfried, 340
Gilbert, FeJix, 222-23
Gilman. Sander, 225
Gin Lam (Hogarr h), 20, 21
gladiators, 89-90, 98-99, 101 ,109,147
God, 101 , 128, 142, 161. 180
gods and goddesses, 111-12, 134
cults devoted ro, 89, 96-97, 126. 131
Egyptian, 126. 131
G,eek, 40-4 1, 49, 51, 54,60,62,68-
72,75-77, I11
human cnaraClerislics of. Ill, 128. 131
idolatry of, 88, 90. 248
pcopiiarion of, 108-9, 144
Rom,n, 87-89, 92, 96-97,108,111- 12,
118, 145
signs of, 89
statues 0(, 51. 88. 90, 97
s" also Pantheon; Parthenon
Goerhc.johann Wolfgang von, 273-75
Gombrich, Erns! Hans, 91
gondolas, 223
Good DutiJ, 177
Good Friday, 227
Gosscc, Franc;ois-joseph, 307
Gonmann, Jean, 361, 366
Go/z T:on Bedichingen (Goethe), 273
grace, 185
Great Tran;/ormalion, The (Polanyi), 27 1
Greece:
city-states of, 110
Roman conquest in, 110
urban design in, 35-40, 50-61,65-67,
83-84, 106
see abo agora (Athens); Athens; Parthenon
Grevembroch, 226, 238
Grimani family, 218
Gruber, Karl, 180
guilds, 200-202
Guillaume d'Auxerre, 204-5
Guillotin, Josephlgnace, 298-300, 30 1
guillotine, 292, 296-304,297
Guston, Philip, 209
Hadrian, Emperor of Rome, 87-97, 101,
108,109,111,114,116,118,119,
125-29,134,136,319-20
Antinous and, 126-28, 130-3 I
building projects of, 22, 87-89, 92-97,
98, 122, 126, 128,294
murders caused by, 92, 96-97
poetry of, 91,121-22
political sensibilities of, 92-93, 95, 96-
97, 139
succession of, 92
theatrical support of, 100
Hailer, Albrechr von, 261
Hanseatic League, 155, 157, 159
Harbison, Roben, 269
Hare. Auguscus, 346
Index 421
Harrison, Evelyn, 40
Harvey, William, 22-23, 255-61, 258,
265,281,291,365,366
Haussmann, Baron (Georges), 325, 329-
32,345,361
Hawes, Elizabeth, .349
Heaven, 133, 134, 183
Hebert, Jacques-Rene, 30 I
Hector, 49
Heers, Jacques, 191
Hegel, Georg Wilhelm Friedrich, 295-96
Heidegger, Martin, 354
Hell, 183,298
Heloise of Paris, 168
Hera,49
Herakles, 75, 312
Herben of Cherbury, Lord, 245
herbs. 181
Hercules, 99, 285, 312
heresy, 231
hermits, 183
Herodotus, 73
Hes;od, 36, 39-40, 62-63
Hippias, Tyrant of Athens, 60
Hippocrates, 42, 162. 163
Hippodamus, 106
Hippo/Ylo; (Euripides), 43
Hirschmann, Alben, 206
History 0/ StxualirJ (Foucault), 26
History O/Ihe Pe/oponnnian War (Thucyd-
;des), 31-35, 64-65, 82-83,357
Hodgen, Gerald, 201-2
Hogarth, William, 19,20,21,21,310,343
Holly, Birdsill, 347
homelessness, 15B, 176, 17B, 364-65
Home" 46, 49, 63, 70, 75
homosexuality, 356
age and, 46-47
anal intercourse and, 49
A,henian, 33,46-49,47,77,86
Christian disparagement of, 128
cross-dressing and, 223, 233
effeminacy vs., 47, 49
human displacements and, 350-51
Roman, Ill, 126-28
Venetian, 223, 233, 237
Hopkins, Keith, 98
hosp;,a1s, 158, 172, 173-74, 176,348
houses:
apartment, 95, 334, 34B. 349
Athenian, 37, 69,73-75,77-80,82,118
Parisian, 172, 179. 184, 190-97,192
plaster wall surfaces of. 263
Roman, 95, 118-21,119,136-38,140,
141
shops combined with, 234-35
Howard; End (Forster), 257, 320, 321,
323-24,349-54,358
hubris, 4 1, 64, B5
Huet, Marie-Helene, 312
Hufton. Olwen, 291
Hughes, Diane Owen, 240
Human Figurt in Cirdt, l/Iuslraling Propor-
lion; (da Vinci), 102, 105
Humbert de Romans, 17), 199-200, 205.
206,272
Hunt, Lynn, 281, 302-3. 312, 313
idolatry, 88, 90, 144, 248
Imitation of Christ, 158, 159, 161-62, 164,
168,175, 176,205-6,209,215
incense, 181
India, 217-18, 3 19
individualism, 255-56, 258, 323-24, 349
Islam:
medical practices of, 42, 162, 163
"paradise" gardens of, 184
Italian Journey (Goethe), 273-75
jacobs, Jane, 355-57
jacobus, Mary. 312
james, William, 129
Jefferson. Thomas, 265-66, 270. 275
Jesus Christ, Sft Christ
Jtlt' 0/ Malta, Tht (Marlowe), 249
Jews, 130, 134,212-13
Ashkenazic, 222, 234. 242, 244
badges worn by, 240
cultural ljfe of, 245-47
expulsion of, 222, 224, 227
fear of contact with, 215-17, 222-28,
226,237
inhuman qualities seen in, 24, 212, 226
Levantine, 234, 235
medical practice of, 2 12-13, 222, 225-
26,226,236
moneylending of, 212- 15. 220-22, 220,
224-25,234,239-40
pogroms against, 222-27, 248-49
religious faith of, Stt Judaism
Roman persecution of, 95
Sephacd;c, 222, 224, 234, 242, 244
as spiritual wanderers, 9 1, 124, 130,245,
248
stereotypes of. 242, 247-51
422 IN 0 EX
Jews (conlinud)
venereal disease and. 2 15. 223-224, 225-
26
Venetian Gheno of, 22, 24, 159,213.
21 ;-17,221-28,231-37.232.233.
235.240-)1
John, Saint, 91
Gospel of. J 33
John Chrysosrom, Saint, 132
John of Paris, 155
John of Salisbury, 23-24, 156. 166-68,
184-8;, 197,2;9
janes, Inigo, 214
Janes Beach, 362-63
Juuaism, 223, 24\-47
Christianity and, 244-46
dispossession and, 9 1
purification rites in, 141
Reform, 129
Judeo-Christian tradition, 27, 130, 132-33,
3;9,370-71,373
lullan family, 11 4
Julius Caesar, 113-16
Jumilhac Papyrus, 42
luvenai, 120-21
Kallixenos, 61
Kantorowicz, Ernst, 203
Karlsruhe, 264. 265
Katz, Jacob, 24 ')
Kazin, Alfred, 322, 354
Klcisrhencs, 65-66,81
Klibansky, Raymond, 169
Knights of the Temple. 173
Koran, 184, 191-93
Kostof, Spiro, 95
Kraurheimer. Richard, 141-42
Kubey, Robert, I 7
labor:
ancient attitudes toward, 36, 155
Christian anitude toward. 183-85
dignity of, 183-84,272
division of, 272, 281
fatigue and, 338-39
free market for, 256, 271-72, 276-81
in gardens, 183-85
industrial,338-39
productivity and, 338-39
supply of, 276
unskilled, 278
wages and, 276, 278
Landes, Joan, 279
LolldJca/N with the Fall of IcarNJ (Brueghel),
209- 11,211 .216,247
Lane. Frederick, 218
bqueur, Thomas, 42
L'lt(;:ran Council, 216
Laugicr, Emmanuel, 273
Lavin, Maril yn, 209
League of Cambrai, 230
Le Bon, Gustave, 284, 296
Le Goff, Jacques, 190, 205
Lcndit Fair, 198-99
L'Enfant, Pierre Charles, 265-70,266,273.
27\ 33 1, 360
Len<, 7\ 181,216,227,241
u:onardo da Vinci, 102, 105, 106
leprosy, 176, 178, 181-83,223-24,22;-
26
lesbianism, 42, 78, 289,290
lenuce, 75-77. 78
LI/,,/judah. The(Modena), 24;, 247
Lifton, Robert Jay, 371
Limbourg Brorhers, 189
Lit're dt' Crainlt AmOllrt'NJ(. Lt (Barthelemy),
161
Lil'rt' dt'J prollffitz rhampeJtrtJ, Lt (Crcscens),
178
L;vy, 94-9;, 108
Lloyd's of London, 345
logos, 80-82. 132-33
Lombard, Maurice, 186
London,2;7,317-29,332-38
Bloomsbury in, 32 1, 326
cafes and pubs in. 345, 346-47
Camden Town in, 327, 334
Chalk Farm in, 327
City of, 221, 322
Connaught Hotel in. 348
East End of, 334
great const rucrion projects in. 324-29,
332-38
Hyde Park in, 317
individualism in, 323-24
international business and trade in, 3 19-
21
Knightsbridge in, 3 17, 333
mansions and civic buildings in, 317-20,
333
mass consumption in, 334-38
Mayfair in, 3 17, 333
Metropolitan Board of Works in. 321
population growth in, .3 J 8, 3 19-20
poverty in, 321-22, 324, 333-34,336-
37
Index 423
Regent's Park and Regent Street in, 322,
324-29,326.328,330,332
Rome compared with. 319-21, 334
social classes in, 319, 322, 332-38
Underground in, 325, 332-38, 333, 335
urban development and design in, 321-
22,324-29
Lopez, Doctor, 213
Lope', Robert, 198-99, 20 I
Loraux, Nicole, 3 1,84
Louis, Saint, 153-55,207
Louis XIV, King of France, 268, 270.
276, 339
Louis XV, King of Francc. 306-7
Louis XVI, King of France, 275-76. 280,
289,300,301-4,302
Lovaro of Padua. 222
Lucius,92
Lukc, Gospel of, 138
Luther, Martin, 245
Lynch, Kevin. 365-66
LYJiJt rata (Aristophanes), 75, 78-79
MacDonald, William, 122
Macmillan'J Magazine, 35 I
McNeill. William, 2 17
Magna Carta, 203
Maillard,279-80
male bonding, 33. 77
Marat, Jean-Paul, 3 13-15, 314
Marcus Aurelius, 122
Marcuse, Herbert. 21
Marie-Antoinette. Queen of France. 280-
81,289, 290
Marlowe. Christopher, 249
Martial,98-99
Martyrdom of SI. Mauht'W. The (Cranach),
298
martyrium, 89. 144-46
martyrs. 89, 98, 99, lOO, 109, 126-28, 141 ,
144-46
Mary Magdaiene, 225
masochism. 13 1
Mass:
of rhc Catcchumens, 143
Eucharist in, 143, 144
of the Faithful. 143
order and Structure of, 143
Masso. Angelo, 339
masturbation, 46, 289
Mathews, Thomas, 142
matricula, 173
Matthew, Sainr. 133
Mallriu (Forsrcr), 350-5 1. 354
Mazzolani, Lidia, 95
medicine, 42-43
animal experiments in, 259, 261
Arab, 42, 162, 163
Christian, 42, 162-64
Greek. 42, 82, 162
herbal. 181
Jew;sh, 212-13, 222, 22;-26, 226, 236
medieval, 158, 162-63
syncope theory in, 158, 164-66, 168
urban practice of, 262
Mediterranean Sea, 218, 219
Meeks, Way ne, 138
MegalopoliJ (Goctmann). 361, 366
melancholy, 163, 164, 169-70, 174-7;,
179-80
MemoirJ of Hadriall , Tht (Yourcenar), 126
Minagier de Pari; (De Mondcville), 166
Menekles. 62
menopause, 42
menstruation, 41,42,248
Merchant of Vmict, The (Shakespeare). 212-
1;,218,220-2 1,228,246-47,249-
)1,256
Mercier, Sebastien, 276
Mercy d' Argenteau, 280
metaphor. 79-80, 86, 270
metonymy, 72-73, 86, 289
MidJllmmer Nighl'J Dream, A (Shakespeare),
214
mikveh pools, 141
Milan. 142, 191
Millar, Fergus, 94
Mihon,John,25 7
Mirhraism, 89
Modena, Leon Uudah Aryeh). 245-48
monasteries, 15 I, 155, J 58, 173. 176, 179.
180
gardens of. 179. 183-85
labor and prayer cthic in. 183-85
rulc of silence in, t 84
monks. 172, 176, 183-84
Monner, 3 12
monotheism, 89, 9 1-92,148
mosaics, Roman, 99
Moses, Robert, 361-66
mourning, rituals of. 70-73. 75-76, 76
Mumford, Lewis, 21-22, 359
Munsterberg, Hugo, 16
"Musee des Beaux Arts" (Auden), 210-11
Muslims, 74, 183
myrrh, 75-76, 181
426 1 NDEX
Parr hcnon (cotJIi11lud)
sculptural friezes of, 40-41, 41, 44. 50,
64,85-86
Passion plays, 169.305
PamonJ and flu InttmlJ. (Hirschmann),
206
Pane, Christian. 264, 273
Paul, Saint, 136-37, 145
Episdes of, 132, 137, 138, 141
Paul IV, Pope. 236
Peloponnesian War, 22, 31-35, 38, 39, 64-
65,82-85
Arginoussai sea battle in, 6 1
Acheni an defeat in, 3 1, 84
cas ualties of, 3 1-32, 6 1, 84
Cynossema batt le of, 84
perfume, 263
Pe. ikl es, 31-39, 43, 44, 46, 54. 59, 60,71,
82-86,89,95, Il l , 148,255
city planning of. 83-84, 85, 86
Funeral Or.uion of, 3 1-34, 36, 50, 51-
52,66,68-70,82,83,84,85, 357
unity of words and deeds expressed by.
32,34,39,64, 100
on women, 68, 70. 73
peristyles, 112-13, 120
Perkins, Franccs, 362-63
Persephone, 70-71
Persia, 35-36,37, 39
Peter, Sai nt, 137, 144, 145
Pcr(onius, 137
Phaedrus (Plato). 79
Pha[cron, 36
Pheidias, 40, 50, 51
Phil ip 11 , King of France, 171, 190
Phili stines, 130
Phillip the Fair, Ki ng of France, 204
PhiloJophit JanJ It boudoir. La (Sade), 290
Phoebe. 137
physiology, 34-35,41-44,47
Piero dell a Francesca. 208-9. 2/0, 21 I. 316
Pierre de Crescens, 178
pigs. 71-73
pilgrimage, 130, 134. 136, 146, 148, 173.
263
Pinckney, David, 329
Piracus, 35-36, 83-84
Pi rcnnc, Henri , 156- 5 7, 217
pl.gue, 82-85, 181,226, 236, 247, 357
Plan of Washington (L'Enfantl Ell icotr), 266,
266,269
Pl amer, Ernst. 26 1-62
Plato, 43, 44, 63, 79-80
Plaurus, Titus Maccius, III
Pl iny (he Elder, 98
Pliny the Younger, 134
Plutarch of Athens. 84, 85
Poikil e stoa, 54-55
Polanyi, Karl , 271. 273
PolirrariClIJ Gohn of Sali sbury) , 156, 166
Polilia, Tht (Aristode), 13. 38. 56
Poiybius, 108
polytheism, 89. 9 1-92
Pomeroy, Sarah. 72
Pope, Alexander, 122-23
pornography, 289.290
Port ugal, 219, 221
Poseidon, 40
postul ants, 138
posture:
in nowds, 55-56, 60-61, 66, 343-44,
344
erect, 49-50, 90
lovemaking. 49-50
sift ing, 60-6 1, 339-47
status and. 48-49, 60, 339
symbolism of, 60-61, 66, 339
Potomac River, 269-70
Potsdam. 265
power:
archi tecture and urban design as demon-
strations of, 88, 89, 93-97, 102,
106-2 1
brute force and, 148
cit y as site of, 25, 32, 35
nakedness and, 4 1, 42, 44, 148
sexuality and, 239-40
visual order and, 89, 90, 94. 102, 106- 11 ,
11 6- 18, 121, 144, 148
Powtr Br-oleer. Tht (Caro), 363.363
Poyet, Bernard, 292
prayer, 101, 170, 183
pregnancy, 41, 42,79
priests. 174-75,23 1
Priuli, Gi rolamo, 22 1
Procmiollro Ca/t'ary, The (Brueghel), 207-8,
208,209,21 1
prophets. 124, 132
prosritmion,49, I11
brothels and, 240-4 1
Christian atti tudes toward, 132,225
courtesansand, 76, 237-39,238, 24 1,
242
Grecian, 49, 74, 76
restrictions on, 240-4 1
Roman, 111, 132, 139,2>7-38
Venetian, 223-24, 225, 237-41, 238
publi c 114- 15
Index
427
in Athens, 46, 52, 55, 56-57, 86
body heal and, 34, 43, 63, 65, 66-67
gesture and, 99-102
metonymy and, 72-73
perils 0(, 63, 64-66
in Rome, 114-1:>
traini ng for, 46, 86
Pullan, Brian, 227. 234
purdah system, 74
purgatory, 183
Quatremcre de Qui ncy, 305. 306. 308-9
Quintillian, 100
rabbis, 244, 245-46
railway carriages, 343-44. 344
Ravid, Bcnjamin, 246
Rdormation, 230-31, 245
Reid, Forrest, 353
religious orders. 184
mendicant. 173, 175, 176
Renaissance. 24, 42. 102. 106. 159, 193.
223
Rh oluriom dt PariJ. 307
Reynolds, Joyce. 109
ritual:
agrarian myth and. 70-73
bonding and. 72-80, 82. 84-85
de .. h and, 70-80, 83, 84, 169-70
evolution of, 85
fertil ity, 70-80
healing powers of, 80
limitations of, 84-86
logos vs. myt hos and, 80-82
metonymy and, 72-73
Western ambivalence toward, 80
women and, 141, 148, 172-80,374
Roberts, Warren, 316
Rolmpitrrt. Guillolining rhe EXt(uriontr After
Hating Guillofimd All rht Frtnrh. 297
Robespierre, Maximilien Fram;ois Marie hi-
dore de, 306
Daniel, 246
Roland, Madame, 300
Roman Army, 90, 95, 109, IlD. 129
Roman ElegitJ (Goethe), 274
Roman Empire, 128,317
civil wars of, 94
coins of, 92, 100, 126
commerce and industry of. 95-96. 109,
134
decl ine of, 146, 151
growth and expansion of, 95-96. 106-
Il l, 130
mil itary camps of, 107. 108, III
national identity of captured states in. 9'5
native peoples conquered by, 110
urban in, 88, 90-91, 94.102,106-
11.116-18
visual order symbolic of power in, 89, 90.
94,102,106-11,116-18,12 1,144,
148
Roman forum, 96,108,111-16,1/2,/15.
267
basilicas in, 112, 113, 114
diverse activit y in, 111. 113. 114-16
Porrico of the Twdve Gods in, 111-12,
128
Rostra in, 1 14-15
sexual commerce in. 111
Temple of Con cordia in, 113
Romall HiJfory (Dio Cassius), 97
Roman Senate, 92, 93,1 15-16
Rome, 84-148, 88
amphitheatre of, 90, 98-99, 99. 101, 141
Basilica Acmilia in, 116
baths of, 90,139-40,262-63
Bat hs of Caracalla in, 140
Campus Martius section of. 87, 116
Capi toli ne Hill of. Il l , 1 13
Chriscian shrines in, 263
Colosseum of, 101. 162
Comitium in, 1 14
commercial and poli tical life in, 96, 1 I I,
113,1 14- 16,139- 40,236
Curia Hostii ia in, 115-\6
Curi a lul ia in, 116
daily and family life in, 95, 96,118-21,
139-40
durability and continuity of, 91, 92-93,
94-95,96
early Christian era in, 123. 124-48, 157
fire in, 136
forums of, 90, 96, 108, 1 11-18, 112. 115,
116
founding of, 94, 108, III
hi ll s of, 108, I I I, I 13, 265
House of Neptune in Acholla, 1/9
houses in, 95, 118-21,119. 136-38, 140,
141
human sacrifice in, 98-99, 99. 101, 109,
141,161-62,298
immigrants and diverse tribes in, 95
Imperial era in, 115-18
Jewish Ghetto in, 216. 236, 244
Lateran Basil ica and Bapt istry in. 22, 142-
46,143, 153,155
London compared with, 319-21, 334
428 IN D E X
Rome (conlinurd)
Palatine Hill of, 108
patriarchal culture of, 118, 120-2 1
population of, 95
poverty and violence in, 95, 96
public speaking in, 114-15
Republican era in, 93.114-16, 26S. 267
right to supremacy claimed for, 95
sack of, 146
Seprajulia in, 93
servants, slaves and workers in, 95-96,
ll9
social classes in, 118-20
status of women in, 118, 120-21,139
streets of, 90, 95, 191,216
Temple of Venus and Rama in, 96-97
Temple of Venus Genetrix in, 114, 144
Temple of Vesta in, 108
theatrical spectacle of, 96, 97-101,109
Trajan's Column in, 92
urban design of, 106-11. 121,265-66
Vatican in, 236, 237
visual image and, 90-92. 98, 101
set aIJo Pantheon; Roman forum
Romulus, 108
Rossi, L. E., 77
Roth, Emery, 349
Roubo, Andre Jacob, 340
Rousseau, JeanJacques, 288
Royal Commission on the Housing of the
Working Classes, 321-22
Royal Victorian Hospital, 348
Rude, George, 276, 278
Rykwen, Joseph, III
Saalman, Howard, 173
Sade, Marquis de, 290
St. Gall Abbey, 107, 173, 180,184
SaintGermaindesPres Abbey, 172, 173,
175, 189
St. Peter's Basilica, 144
saints:
wmbs of, 89, 144-46
veneration of, 145, 183
lU alJo martyrs
SaintVictor, Hugues de, 205
San Costanza, 145
Sancta Maria ad Martyres Church, 89, 91,
145, 148
lanJculottel, 286. 304
Sanson, 303
Sans Souci, 268
Sanuw, Giovanni, 224, 235
Sappho, 76, 78
Satyricon (Petconius), 137
Savonarola, Girolamo, 224
Scarpi, Paulo, 246
Scarry, Elaine, 375-76
Schivelbusch, Wolfgang, 343
scientific humanism, 155-57
Scirophoria, 71
Scotland, 298, 322
SCOUt Joan. 308
Seine River, 153, 155, 156, 157, 158, 184,
188,267-68
bridges and quays on, 198,204,205,292
Left Bank of, 171 , 172, 173, 189, 277,
345
Right Bank of, 172,174,1 76,189-90,
193,300
Seneca, 89-90, 139
Selio, Sebastian, 102, 104, 106
sermons, 169. 175,302
Servite order, 173, 176
Stvtn Deadly Sin] of London, 225
Sevigne, Madame de, 298
sexual intercourse:
abstinence from, 71-72
anai, 48-49, 48, 50
contraception and, 49
foreplay and, 48
illicit, 76
posture and, 49-50
sexuality, 26-27
ancient Greek concepts of, 33, 41-44,
46-50
Christianity and, 90, 91,128,225
fear of, 90
power and, 239-40
ritual celebration of, 70, 73-80, 76, 84,
85,374
Victorian concepts of, 26, 42
Jee alJo homosexuality; prostitution
Shakespeare, William, 97, 212-15, 218,
220-21,225,228,239,242,246-
47,249-5 1
Shelley, Percy Bysshe, 134
shopping malls, 16, 17. 56
Shrove Tuesday, 75
Simmei, Georg, 344
Simson, Ono von, 170
sin, 141, 174-75,206,245,298-99
Sissa, Giulia, 43
Sixtus V, Pope, 263
skyscrapers, 349, 360
Index
429
siaves, 34, 36, 43-44, 46, 52, 60, 68, 74,
95,98, 120
Smith, Adam, 256, 271-73, 274, 275, 278,
281,320
Socrates, 47, 62
Sophokles, 25, 63, 84
Son'"OWl of Young Werther, The (Goethe), 273
soui, 138, 176, 178,207
concepts of, 147, 148, 180
relationship of body and, 255, 258-59,
26i
Southern, Richard WiIliam, 155
Spain, 222, 224, 234
Spana,31-34,64,85
militarism of, 31, 32. 46, 83-84
lU alJo Peioponnesian War
sperm,41-42,162
spice trade, 217-21, 223
S/ad/ Lufl machl frei. 155, 159, 185, 215
Stafford, Barbara, 261
Starobinski, Jean, 292
Star of David, 180
statues, 92, 93, 126
Christian, 142, 145, 170, 181,207,292
pagan, 51, 88, 90, 97
steam engine, 347
stele, 37
sroas, 50, 51, 54-55, 54,57, ii4
Stoics, 25, 55
Stow, Kennerh, 242
Straits of Bosphorus, 218
StraitS of Gibraltar, 219
Sturtevant Company, 348
Suetonius, 93, 99, 100, 134
Sully, Maurice de, 172
Sumerians, 42, 106
Summa aurea (Guillaume d' Auxerre), 204-5
Summa Theologica (Thomas Aquinas), 159
symposions, 77, 13 7
synagogues, 144, 241-42,243,245,246
syncope, 158, 164-66, 168
syphilis, 223-24, 225
Tacitus, 110
Tale of Two Ciliel, A (Dickens), 301
teatrum mundi, 97-101,109
Temko, Allan, 172
Temple of Solomon, 130
temples:
bodily symmct ri es and architecture of, 90,
102-6
G,eek, 38-41, 51, 57, 68, 93, 113
Roman, 90, 96-97,108,113-14,144
Venetian, 232
Ten BookJ of Architecture (Vitruvius), 102
Tenenti , Alberto, 222
Tertullian,99
Thames River, 322, 334
theology, 203-4
Theramenes, 61
Thesmophoria, 70-73, 75, 78, 79, 80, 84,
85,374
Thomas, Saint, 225
Thomas Aquinas, Saint, 156, 159
Thomas de Cantimpre, 248
Thompson, Homer, 72
Thorney Abbey, 184
Thucydides, 31-35,44,50,64-65,82-85,
357
Tiber River, 95, 96, 265
Tilly, Chacles, 279
Timarkhos, 49
Tissot, 289
Tivoli,126
Tocqueville, Alexis de, 323, 349
"To his Soul" (Hadrian), 121-22
tOilets, 342-43
Torah, 245
Trajan, Emperor of Rome, 92, 97. 98,100,
134
Tril Riches Heum du due de Berry (Limbourg
Brothers), 189
tridinium, 339
Trojans,49
Turkey, 218, 221
Tweed, William Marcy (Boss), 321
Two Churl for Democracy (Forster), 350
Ullmann, Waiter, 156
unitarianism, 129
United Srates of America, 265, 319, 320,
359
Universal Glass Corporation, 204
universities, 202-4
urban design:
astronomy and, 107-8
in Athens, 35-40, 50-61, 65-67,83-84.
106
Baroque, 263-64
bodily symmetries and geometric princi-
ples in, 90-91,106-11,118,121
circulatory, 263-70,264
movement and circulation in, 257, 263-
70,273-8 1,282-85,292-96
open spaces in, 292-96
430 IND EX
urban design (fominud)
process of subdivision in, 110-11
propiriadon of gods and. 108-9
in Roman Empire, 88, 90-91, 94,102,
106- 11 , 11 6- 18
Roman gri d plan of. 106-11, 121, 265-
66
urban revolution, 319-21, 323-24
usury. 204-5, 224-25, 237
Valentino. Duke of, 237
Valley Forge, 266
Varielin o/ Religioll! Experience, The Qames),
12<)
Vaux, Calven, 360
Vell eius Paterculus , 11 6
venereal disease. 2 1'), 223-24, 225-26
Venerian Inquisition. 247
Venerian Senate, 224
Venice, (Renaissance), 15 7, 212-') 1
aggressive wars against, 22 1-22, 230
Arsenal of. 23 1
Ca O'Oro in, 233
Campo San Paolo in. 222
Cannaregio area of. 23 1-32
Customs House of, 219
Fondaco dei Tedeschi in, 228-31, 230.
234,244
Ghetto Nuovissimo in. 232, 236
Ghcno Nuovo in, 23 1-36, 232, 233. 235
Ghetto Vecchio in, 23 1-32, 232,235-36
. Giudecca area of, 234
Grand Canal of, 219-20, 223, 233
international trade in, 159, 214, 21 7 -23,
228-3 1,23),246
Jewish Ghc((o in, 22, 24, 159,213,215-
17,22 1-28,231-37,232.233,235,
240-) I
L'Accademia degl' lmpediti in, 246
lagoon of, 218-2 1
moral reform movement in, 222-24.
236-37,247
plague in, 226,236,247
prostitution in. 223-24. 225, 237-4 1,
238
Republic of, 221, 235
resident foreigners in, 214-1 7, 228-31,
228.236-37
Ri alto Bridge of, 215, 219-2 1,230
San Marco Cathed ral in, 219-20, 274
Scuola Grande Tedesca in, 242,243
social classes in, 227
Venus, 96-97. 11 4
Vernant. j ean-Pierre, 71-72, 86
Versailles, 265, 279-80, 298
gardens of, 268-70
palace of, 276, 280, 339-40
vestal virgins, 108
Victorian era, 26, 42, 126, 325
Vidler, Anthony, 295
Vietnam War, 16
Vinci, Leonardo da. 102, 105, 106
Virgil, 95, 183
Virgin Mary, 145
cults of, 169, 188
images of, 142, 170, 181,207,292,313
powers of, 168, 169
Vitfuvius, 90, 94, 102-6, 108, 122. 148,
293
Wailly. Charles de. 292. 36 1
walking, 49, 53, 55
Walkowitz,judith,334-38
Wanderjahre,275
Washington, D.C, 265-70,266
Capitol in, 267, 270
Mall in, 269-70
President's House in, 267, 269
streets of, 266, 275, 33 1
Washington, George, 265, 266-67, 270,
29 1
Wan, james, 347
Wtalth 0/ Nario1lJ, Tht (Smith), 256, 27 1-
73,274
Weber, Max, 155, 156,204, 2 17
Welch, Katherine, 99
wet-nurses, 29 1
White, Lynn, 36
WiIliam of Conches, 206-7
William of Malmesbury, 184
Williams, Raymond, 32 1
Willis, Thomas, 259, 261
Winckelmann, j ohann, 55
Windsor chairs, 340, 342
wi ne, 196-97
Winkler.john,80
Wollstonecraft, Mary. 288
women:
body heat of, 34, 41-43, 68-73, 2)8
bondi ng of, 72-80, 82
breasts Of. 286-91
clothing of, 34
as "Glorified Spinsters," 35 1-')2
popular prOtest of. 279-80, 312
restraints upon, 68. 70, 73-74, 80
ritual s of, 70-80, 148, 172-80.374
sexual desire of, 72-80, 148
stams of, 34, 43, 49, 68, 70-80, 11 8.
120-21,139,169,286-88
Woolf, Virginia, 324
Wo,.ks and Day; (Hesiod), 36
Wo,.1d o/Wo,.d;, A (Florio), 214
World War I, 317, 333
World War 11 , 361, 364
wrestling, 44-45, 46. 47
Wycherley. Richard Ernest, 57
Index
Xenophon, 61-62, 73
Yourcenar, Marguerire. 122, 126
Zeitiin, Froma, 60, 66
Zeno, 55
Zeus, 40-4 I
Zcuxis, 98, 99
Zoroastrianism, 131
431